Addted table of content and links
[gender-roles-text-analysis.git] / 161.txt
1 SENSE AND SENSIBILITY
2
3 by Jane Austen
4
5 (1811)
6
7
8
9
10 CHAPTER 1
11
12
13 The family of Dashwood had long been settled in Sussex. Their estate
14 was large, and their residence was at Norland Park, in the centre of
15 their property, where, for many generations, they had lived in so
16 respectable a manner as to engage the general good opinion of their
17 surrounding acquaintance. The late owner of this estate was a single
18 man, who lived to a very advanced age, and who for many years of his
19 life, had a constant companion and housekeeper in his sister. But her
20 death, which happened ten years before his own, produced a great
21 alteration in his home; for to supply her loss, he invited and received
22 into his house the family of his nephew Mr. Henry Dashwood, the legal
23 inheritor of the Norland estate, and the person to whom he intended to
24 bequeath it. In the society of his nephew and niece, and their
25 children, the old Gentleman's days were comfortably spent. His
26 attachment to them all increased. The constant attention of Mr. and
27 Mrs. Henry Dashwood to his wishes, which proceeded not merely from
28 interest, but from goodness of heart, gave him every degree of solid
29 comfort which his age could receive; and the cheerfulness of the
30 children added a relish to his existence.
31
32 By a former marriage, Mr. Henry Dashwood had one son: by his present
33 lady, three daughters. The son, a steady respectable young man, was
34 amply provided for by the fortune of his mother, which had been large,
35 and half of which devolved on him on his coming of age. By his own
36 marriage, likewise, which happened soon afterwards, he added to his
37 wealth. To him therefore the succession to the Norland estate was not
38 so really important as to his sisters; for their fortune, independent
39 of what might arise to them from their father's inheriting that
40 property, could be but small. Their mother had nothing, and their
41 father only seven thousand pounds in his own disposal; for the
42 remaining moiety of his first wife's fortune was also secured to her
43 child, and he had only a life-interest in it.
44
45 The old gentleman died: his will was read, and like almost every other
46 will, gave as much disappointment as pleasure. He was neither so
47 unjust, nor so ungrateful, as to leave his estate from his nephew;--but
48 he left it to him on such terms as destroyed half the value of the
49 bequest. Mr. Dashwood had wished for it more for the sake of his wife
50 and daughters than for himself or his son;--but to his son, and his
51 son's son, a child of four years old, it was secured, in such a way, as
52 to leave to himself no power of providing for those who were most dear
53 to him, and who most needed a provision by any charge on the estate, or
54 by any sale of its valuable woods. The whole was tied up for the
55 benefit of this child, who, in occasional visits with his father and
56 mother at Norland, had so far gained on the affections of his uncle, by
57 such attractions as are by no means unusual in children of two or three
58 years old; an imperfect articulation, an earnest desire of having his
59 own way, many cunning tricks, and a great deal of noise, as to outweigh
60 all the value of all the attention which, for years, he had received
61 from his niece and her daughters. He meant not to be unkind, however,
62 and, as a mark of his affection for the three girls, he left them a
63 thousand pounds a-piece.
64
65 Mr. Dashwood's disappointment was, at first, severe; but his temper was
66 cheerful and sanguine; and he might reasonably hope to live many years,
67 and by living economically, lay by a considerable sum from the produce
68 of an estate already large, and capable of almost immediate
69 improvement. But the fortune, which had been so tardy in coming, was
70 his only one twelvemonth. He survived his uncle no longer; and ten
71 thousand pounds, including the late legacies, was all that remained for
72 his widow and daughters.
73
74 His son was sent for as soon as his danger was known, and to him Mr.
75 Dashwood recommended, with all the strength and urgency which illness
76 could command, the interest of his mother-in-law and sisters.
77
78 Mr. John Dashwood had not the strong feelings of the rest of the
79 family; but he was affected by a recommendation of such a nature at
80 such a time, and he promised to do every thing in his power to make
81 them comfortable. His father was rendered easy by such an assurance,
82 and Mr. John Dashwood had then leisure to consider how much there might
83 prudently be in his power to do for them.
84
85 He was not an ill-disposed young man, unless to be rather cold hearted
86 and rather selfish is to be ill-disposed: but he was, in general, well
87 respected; for he conducted himself with propriety in the discharge of
88 his ordinary duties. Had he married a more amiable woman, he might
89 have been made still more respectable than he was:--he might even have
90 been made amiable himself; for he was very young when he married, and
91 very fond of his wife. But Mrs. John Dashwood was a strong caricature
92 of himself;--more narrow-minded and selfish.
93
94 When he gave his promise to his father, he meditated within himself to
95 increase the fortunes of his sisters by the present of a thousand
96 pounds a-piece. He then really thought himself equal to it. The
97 prospect of four thousand a-year, in addition to his present income,
98 besides the remaining half of his own mother's fortune, warmed his
99 heart, and made him feel capable of generosity.-- "Yes, he would give
100 them three thousand pounds: it would be liberal and handsome! It would
101 be enough to make them completely easy. Three thousand pounds! he
102 could spare so considerable a sum with little inconvenience."-- He
103 thought of it all day long, and for many days successively, and he did
104 not repent.
105
106 No sooner was his father's funeral over, than Mrs. John Dashwood,
107 without sending any notice of her intention to her mother-in-law,
108 arrived with her child and their attendants. No one could dispute her
109 right to come; the house was her husband's from the moment of his
110 father's decease; but the indelicacy of her conduct was so much the
111 greater, and to a woman in Mrs. Dashwood's situation, with only common
112 feelings, must have been highly unpleasing;--but in HER mind there was
113 a sense of honor so keen, a generosity so romantic, that any offence of
114 the kind, by whomsoever given or received, was to her a source of
115 immovable disgust. Mrs. John Dashwood had never been a favourite with
116 any of her husband's family; but she had had no opportunity, till the
117 present, of shewing them with how little attention to the comfort of
118 other people she could act when occasion required it.
119
120 So acutely did Mrs. Dashwood feel this ungracious behaviour, and so
121 earnestly did she despise her daughter-in-law for it, that, on the
122 arrival of the latter, she would have quitted the house for ever, had
123 not the entreaty of her eldest girl induced her first to reflect on the
124 propriety of going, and her own tender love for all her three children
125 determined her afterwards to stay, and for their sakes avoid a breach
126 with their brother.
127
128 Elinor, this eldest daughter, whose advice was so effectual, possessed
129 a strength of understanding, and coolness of judgment, which qualified
130 her, though only nineteen, to be the counsellor of her mother, and
131 enabled her frequently to counteract, to the advantage of them all,
132 that eagerness of mind in Mrs. Dashwood which must generally have led
133 to imprudence. She had an excellent heart;--her disposition was
134 affectionate, and her feelings were strong; but she knew how to govern
135 them: it was a knowledge which her mother had yet to learn; and which
136 one of her sisters had resolved never to be taught.
137
138 Marianne's abilities were, in many respects, quite equal to Elinor's.
139 She was sensible and clever; but eager in everything: her sorrows, her
140 joys, could have no moderation. She was generous, amiable,
141 interesting: she was everything but prudent. The resemblance between
142 her and her mother was strikingly great.
143
144 Elinor saw, with concern, the excess of her sister's sensibility; but
145 by Mrs. Dashwood it was valued and cherished. They encouraged each
146 other now in the violence of their affliction. The agony of grief
147 which overpowered them at first, was voluntarily renewed, was sought
148 for, was created again and again. They gave themselves up wholly to
149 their sorrow, seeking increase of wretchedness in every reflection that
150 could afford it, and resolved against ever admitting consolation in
151 future. Elinor, too, was deeply afflicted; but still she could
152 struggle, she could exert herself. She could consult with her brother,
153 could receive her sister-in-law on her arrival, and treat her with
154 proper attention; and could strive to rouse her mother to similar
155 exertion, and encourage her to similar forbearance.
156
157 Margaret, the other sister, was a good-humored, well-disposed girl; but
158 as she had already imbibed a good deal of Marianne's romance, without
159 having much of her sense, she did not, at thirteen, bid fair to equal
160 her sisters at a more advanced period of life.
161
162
163
164 CHAPTER 2
165
166
167 Mrs. John Dashwood now installed herself mistress of Norland; and her
168 mother and sisters-in-law were degraded to the condition of visitors.
169 As such, however, they were treated by her with quiet civility; and by
170 her husband with as much kindness as he could feel towards anybody
171 beyond himself, his wife, and their child. He really pressed them,
172 with some earnestness, to consider Norland as their home; and, as no
173 plan appeared so eligible to Mrs. Dashwood as remaining there till she
174 could accommodate herself with a house in the neighbourhood, his
175 invitation was accepted.
176
177 A continuance in a place where everything reminded her of former
178 delight, was exactly what suited her mind. In seasons of cheerfulness,
179 no temper could be more cheerful than hers, or possess, in a greater
180 degree, that sanguine expectation of happiness which is happiness
181 itself. But in sorrow she must be equally carried away by her fancy,
182 and as far beyond consolation as in pleasure she was beyond alloy.
183
184 Mrs. John Dashwood did not at all approve of what her husband intended
185 to do for his sisters. To take three thousand pounds from the fortune
186 of their dear little boy would be impoverishing him to the most
187 dreadful degree. She begged him to think again on the subject. How
188 could he answer it to himself to rob his child, and his only child too,
189 of so large a sum? And what possible claim could the Miss Dashwoods,
190 who were related to him only by half blood, which she considered as no
191 relationship at all, have on his generosity to so large an amount. It
192 was very well known that no affection was ever supposed to exist
193 between the children of any man by different marriages; and why was he
194 to ruin himself, and their poor little Harry, by giving away all his
195 money to his half sisters?
196
197 "It was my father's last request to me," replied her husband, "that I
198 should assist his widow and daughters."
199
200 "He did not know what he was talking of, I dare say; ten to one but he
201 was light-headed at the time. Had he been in his right senses, he
202 could not have thought of such a thing as begging you to give away half
203 your fortune from your own child."
204
205 "He did not stipulate for any particular sum, my dear Fanny; he only
206 requested me, in general terms, to assist them, and make their
207 situation more comfortable than it was in his power to do. Perhaps it
208 would have been as well if he had left it wholly to myself. He could
209 hardly suppose I should neglect them. But as he required the promise,
210 I could not do less than give it; at least I thought so at the time.
211 The promise, therefore, was given, and must be performed. Something
212 must be done for them whenever they leave Norland and settle in a new
213 home."
214
215 "Well, then, LET something be done for them; but THAT something need
216 not be three thousand pounds. Consider," she added, "that when the
217 money is once parted with, it never can return. Your sisters will
218 marry, and it will be gone for ever. If, indeed, it could be restored
219 to our poor little boy--"
220
221 "Why, to be sure," said her husband, very gravely, "that would make
222 great difference. The time may come when Harry will regret that so
223 large a sum was parted with. If he should have a numerous family, for
224 instance, it would be a very convenient addition."
225
226 "To be sure it would."
227
228 "Perhaps, then, it would be better for all parties, if the sum were
229 diminished one half.--Five hundred pounds would be a prodigious
230 increase to their fortunes!"
231
232 "Oh! beyond anything great! What brother on earth would do half so
233 much for his sisters, even if REALLY his sisters! And as it is--only
234 half blood!--But you have such a generous spirit!"
235
236 "I would not wish to do any thing mean," he replied. "One had rather,
237 on such occasions, do too much than too little. No one, at least, can
238 think I have not done enough for them: even themselves, they can hardly
239 expect more."
240
241 "There is no knowing what THEY may expect," said the lady, "but we are
242 not to think of their expectations: the question is, what you can
243 afford to do."
244
245 "Certainly--and I think I may afford to give them five hundred pounds
246 a-piece. As it is, without any addition of mine, they will each have
247 about three thousand pounds on their mother's death--a very comfortable
248 fortune for any young woman."
249
250 "To be sure it is; and, indeed, it strikes me that they can want no
251 addition at all. They will have ten thousand pounds divided amongst
252 them. If they marry, they will be sure of doing well, and if they do
253 not, they may all live very comfortably together on the interest of ten
254 thousand pounds."
255
256 "That is very true, and, therefore, I do not know whether, upon the
257 whole, it would not be more advisable to do something for their mother
258 while she lives, rather than for them--something of the annuity kind I
259 mean.--My sisters would feel the good effects of it as well as herself.
260 A hundred a year would make them all perfectly comfortable."
261
262 His wife hesitated a little, however, in giving her consent to this
263 plan.
264
265 "To be sure," said she, "it is better than parting with fifteen hundred
266 pounds at once. But, then, if Mrs. Dashwood should live fifteen years
267 we shall be completely taken in."
268
269 "Fifteen years! my dear Fanny; her life cannot be worth half that
270 purchase."
271
272 "Certainly not; but if you observe, people always live for ever when
273 there is an annuity to be paid them; and she is very stout and healthy,
274 and hardly forty. An annuity is a very serious business; it comes over
275 and over every year, and there is no getting rid of it. You are not
276 aware of what you are doing. I have known a great deal of the trouble
277 of annuities; for my mother was clogged with the payment of three to
278 old superannuated servants by my father's will, and it is amazing how
279 disagreeable she found it. Twice every year these annuities were to be
280 paid; and then there was the trouble of getting it to them; and then
281 one of them was said to have died, and afterwards it turned out to be
282 no such thing. My mother was quite sick of it. Her income was not her
283 own, she said, with such perpetual claims on it; and it was the more
284 unkind in my father, because, otherwise, the money would have been
285 entirely at my mother's disposal, without any restriction whatever. It
286 has given me such an abhorrence of annuities, that I am sure I would
287 not pin myself down to the payment of one for all the world."
288
289 "It is certainly an unpleasant thing," replied Mr. Dashwood, "to have
290 those kind of yearly drains on one's income. One's fortune, as your
291 mother justly says, is NOT one's own. To be tied down to the regular
292 payment of such a sum, on every rent day, is by no means desirable: it
293 takes away one's independence."
294
295 "Undoubtedly; and after all you have no thanks for it. They think
296 themselves secure, you do no more than what is expected, and it raises
297 no gratitude at all. If I were you, whatever I did should be done at
298 my own discretion entirely. I would not bind myself to allow them any
299 thing yearly. It may be very inconvenient some years to spare a
300 hundred, or even fifty pounds from our own expenses."
301
302 "I believe you are right, my love; it will be better that there should
303 be no annuity in the case; whatever I may give them occasionally will
304 be of far greater assistance than a yearly allowance, because they
305 would only enlarge their style of living if they felt sure of a larger
306 income, and would not be sixpence the richer for it at the end of the
307 year. It will certainly be much the best way. A present of fifty
308 pounds, now and then, will prevent their ever being distressed for
309 money, and will, I think, be amply discharging my promise to my father."
310
311 "To be sure it will. Indeed, to say the truth, I am convinced within
312 myself that your father had no idea of your giving them any money at
313 all. The assistance he thought of, I dare say, was only such as might
314 be reasonably expected of you; for instance, such as looking out for a
315 comfortable small house for them, helping them to move their things,
316 and sending them presents of fish and game, and so forth, whenever they
317 are in season. I'll lay my life that he meant nothing farther; indeed,
318 it would be very strange and unreasonable if he did. Do but consider,
319 my dear Mr. Dashwood, how excessively comfortable your mother-in-law
320 and her daughters may live on the interest of seven thousand pounds,
321 besides the thousand pounds belonging to each of the girls, which
322 brings them in fifty pounds a year a-piece, and, of course, they will
323 pay their mother for their board out of it. Altogether, they will have
324 five hundred a-year amongst them, and what on earth can four women want
325 for more than that?--They will live so cheap! Their housekeeping will
326 be nothing at all. They will have no carriage, no horses, and hardly
327 any servants; they will keep no company, and can have no expenses of
328 any kind! Only conceive how comfortable they will be! Five hundred a
329 year! I am sure I cannot imagine how they will spend half of it; and as
330 to your giving them more, it is quite absurd to think of it. They will
331 be much more able to give YOU something."
332
333 "Upon my word," said Mr. Dashwood, "I believe you are perfectly right.
334 My father certainly could mean nothing more by his request to me than
335 what you say. I clearly understand it now, and I will strictly fulfil
336 my engagement by such acts of assistance and kindness to them as you
337 have described. When my mother removes into another house my services
338 shall be readily given to accommodate her as far as I can. Some little
339 present of furniture too may be acceptable then."
340
341 "Certainly," returned Mrs. John Dashwood. "But, however, ONE thing
342 must be considered. When your father and mother moved to Norland,
343 though the furniture of Stanhill was sold, all the china, plate, and
344 linen was saved, and is now left to your mother. Her house will
345 therefore be almost completely fitted up as soon as she takes it."
346
347 "That is a material consideration undoubtedly. A valuable legacy
348 indeed! And yet some of the plate would have been a very pleasant
349 addition to our own stock here."
350
351 "Yes; and the set of breakfast china is twice as handsome as what
352 belongs to this house. A great deal too handsome, in my opinion, for
353 any place THEY can ever afford to live in. But, however, so it is.
354 Your father thought only of THEM. And I must say this: that you owe no
355 particular gratitude to him, nor attention to his wishes; for we very
356 well know that if he could, he would have left almost everything in the
357 world to THEM."
358
359 This argument was irresistible. It gave to his intentions whatever of
360 decision was wanting before; and he finally resolved, that it would be
361 absolutely unnecessary, if not highly indecorous, to do more for the
362 widow and children of his father, than such kind of neighbourly acts as
363 his own wife pointed out.
364
365
366
367 CHAPTER 3
368
369
370 Mrs. Dashwood remained at Norland several months; not from any
371 disinclination to move when the sight of every well known spot ceased
372 to raise the violent emotion which it produced for a while; for when
373 her spirits began to revive, and her mind became capable of some other
374 exertion than that of heightening its affliction by melancholy
375 remembrances, she was impatient to be gone, and indefatigable in her
376 inquiries for a suitable dwelling in the neighbourhood of Norland; for
377 to remove far from that beloved spot was impossible. But she could
378 hear of no situation that at once answered her notions of comfort and
379 ease, and suited the prudence of her eldest daughter, whose steadier
380 judgment rejected several houses as too large for their income, which
381 her mother would have approved.
382
383 Mrs. Dashwood had been informed by her husband of the solemn promise on
384 the part of his son in their favour, which gave comfort to his last
385 earthly reflections. She doubted the sincerity of this assurance no
386 more than he had doubted it himself, and she thought of it for her
387 daughters' sake with satisfaction, though as for herself she was
388 persuaded that a much smaller provision than 7000L would support her in
389 affluence. For their brother's sake, too, for the sake of his own
390 heart, she rejoiced; and she reproached herself for being unjust to his
391 merit before, in believing him incapable of generosity. His attentive
392 behaviour to herself and his sisters convinced her that their welfare
393 was dear to him, and, for a long time, she firmly relied on the
394 liberality of his intentions.
395
396 The contempt which she had, very early in their acquaintance, felt for
397 her daughter-in-law, was very much increased by the farther knowledge
398 of her character, which half a year's residence in her family afforded;
399 and perhaps in spite of every consideration of politeness or maternal
400 affection on the side of the former, the two ladies might have found it
401 impossible to have lived together so long, had not a particular
402 circumstance occurred to give still greater eligibility, according to
403 the opinions of Mrs. Dashwood, to her daughters' continuance at Norland.
404
405 This circumstance was a growing attachment between her eldest girl and
406 the brother of Mrs. John Dashwood, a gentleman-like and pleasing young
407 man, who was introduced to their acquaintance soon after his sister's
408 establishment at Norland, and who had since spent the greatest part of
409 his time there.
410
411 Some mothers might have encouraged the intimacy from motives of
412 interest, for Edward Ferrars was the eldest son of a man who had died
413 very rich; and some might have repressed it from motives of prudence,
414 for, except a trifling sum, the whole of his fortune depended on the
415 will of his mother. But Mrs. Dashwood was alike uninfluenced by either
416 consideration. It was enough for her that he appeared to be amiable,
417 that he loved her daughter, and that Elinor returned the partiality.
418 It was contrary to every doctrine of hers that difference of fortune
419 should keep any couple asunder who were attracted by resemblance of
420 disposition; and that Elinor's merit should not be acknowledged by
421 every one who knew her, was to her comprehension impossible.
422
423 Edward Ferrars was not recommended to their good opinion by any
424 peculiar graces of person or address. He was not handsome, and his
425 manners required intimacy to make them pleasing. He was too diffident
426 to do justice to himself; but when his natural shyness was overcome,
427 his behaviour gave every indication of an open, affectionate heart.
428 His understanding was good, and his education had given it solid
429 improvement. But he was neither fitted by abilities nor disposition to
430 answer the wishes of his mother and sister, who longed to see him
431 distinguished--as--they hardly knew what. They wanted him to make a
432 fine figure in the world in some manner or other. His mother wished to
433 interest him in political concerns, to get him into parliament, or to
434 see him connected with some of the great men of the day. Mrs. John
435 Dashwood wished it likewise; but in the mean while, till one of these
436 superior blessings could be attained, it would have quieted her
437 ambition to see him driving a barouche. But Edward had no turn for
438 great men or barouches. All his wishes centered in domestic comfort
439 and the quiet of private life. Fortunately he had a younger brother
440 who was more promising.
441
442 Edward had been staying several weeks in the house before he engaged
443 much of Mrs. Dashwood's attention; for she was, at that time, in such
444 affliction as rendered her careless of surrounding objects. She saw
445 only that he was quiet and unobtrusive, and she liked him for it. He
446 did not disturb the wretchedness of her mind by ill-timed conversation.
447 She was first called to observe and approve him farther, by a
448 reflection which Elinor chanced one day to make on the difference
449 between him and his sister. It was a contrast which recommended him
450 most forcibly to her mother.
451
452 "It is enough," said she; "to say that he is unlike Fanny is enough.
453 It implies everything amiable. I love him already."
454
455 "I think you will like him," said Elinor, "when you know more of him."
456
457 "Like him!" replied her mother with a smile. "I feel no sentiment of
458 approbation inferior to love."
459
460 "You may esteem him."
461
462 "I have never yet known what it was to separate esteem and love."
463
464 Mrs. Dashwood now took pains to get acquainted with him. Her manners
465 were attaching, and soon banished his reserve. She speedily
466 comprehended all his merits; the persuasion of his regard for Elinor
467 perhaps assisted her penetration; but she really felt assured of his
468 worth: and even that quietness of manner, which militated against all
469 her established ideas of what a young man's address ought to be, was no
470 longer uninteresting when she knew his heart to be warm and his temper
471 affectionate.
472
473 No sooner did she perceive any symptom of love in his behaviour to
474 Elinor, than she considered their serious attachment as certain, and
475 looked forward to their marriage as rapidly approaching.
476
477 "In a few months, my dear Marianne." said she, "Elinor will, in all
478 probability be settled for life. We shall miss her; but SHE will be
479 happy."
480
481 "Oh! Mama, how shall we do without her?"
482
483 "My love, it will be scarcely a separation. We shall live within a few
484 miles of each other, and shall meet every day of our lives. You will
485 gain a brother, a real, affectionate brother. I have the highest
486 opinion in the world of Edward's heart. But you look grave, Marianne;
487 do you disapprove your sister's choice?"
488
489 "Perhaps," said Marianne, "I may consider it with some surprise.
490 Edward is very amiable, and I love him tenderly. But yet--he is not
491 the kind of young man--there is something wanting--his figure is not
492 striking; it has none of that grace which I should expect in the man
493 who could seriously attach my sister. His eyes want all that spirit,
494 that fire, which at once announce virtue and intelligence. And besides
495 all this, I am afraid, Mama, he has no real taste. Music seems
496 scarcely to attract him, and though he admires Elinor's drawings very
497 much, it is not the admiration of a person who can understand their
498 worth. It is evident, in spite of his frequent attention to her while
499 she draws, that in fact he knows nothing of the matter. He admires as
500 a lover, not as a connoisseur. To satisfy me, those characters must be
501 united. I could not be happy with a man whose taste did not in every
502 point coincide with my own. He must enter into all my feelings; the
503 same books, the same music must charm us both. Oh! mama, how
504 spiritless, how tame was Edward's manner in reading to us last night!
505 I felt for my sister most severely. Yet she bore it with so much
506 composure, she seemed scarcely to notice it. I could hardly keep my
507 seat. To hear those beautiful lines which have frequently almost
508 driven me wild, pronounced with such impenetrable calmness, such
509 dreadful indifference!"
510
511 "He would certainly have done more justice to simple and elegant prose.
512 I thought so at the time; but you WOULD give him Cowper."
513
514 "Nay, Mama, if he is not to be animated by Cowper!--but we must allow
515 for difference of taste. Elinor has not my feelings, and therefore she
516 may overlook it, and be happy with him. But it would have broke MY
517 heart, had I loved him, to hear him read with so little sensibility.
518 Mama, the more I know of the world, the more am I convinced that I
519 shall never see a man whom I can really love. I require so much! He
520 must have all Edward's virtues, and his person and manners must
521 ornament his goodness with every possible charm."
522
523 "Remember, my love, that you are not seventeen. It is yet too early in
524 life to despair of such a happiness. Why should you be less fortunate
525 than your mother? In one circumstance only, my Marianne, may your
526 destiny be different from hers!"
527
528
529
530 CHAPTER 4
531
532
533 "What a pity it is, Elinor," said Marianne, "that Edward should have no
534 taste for drawing."
535
536 "No taste for drawing!" replied Elinor, "why should you think so? He
537 does not draw himself, indeed, but he has great pleasure in seeing the
538 performances of other people, and I assure you he is by no means
539 deficient in natural taste, though he has not had opportunities of
540 improving it. Had he ever been in the way of learning, I think he
541 would have drawn very well. He distrusts his own judgment in such
542 matters so much, that he is always unwilling to give his opinion on any
543 picture; but he has an innate propriety and simplicity of taste, which
544 in general direct him perfectly right."
545
546 Marianne was afraid of offending, and said no more on the subject; but
547 the kind of approbation which Elinor described as excited in him by the
548 drawings of other people, was very far from that rapturous delight,
549 which, in her opinion, could alone be called taste. Yet, though
550 smiling within herself at the mistake, she honoured her sister for that
551 blind partiality to Edward which produced it.
552
553 "I hope, Marianne," continued Elinor, "you do not consider him as
554 deficient in general taste. Indeed, I think I may say that you cannot,
555 for your behaviour to him is perfectly cordial, and if THAT were your
556 opinion, I am sure you could never be civil to him."
557
558 Marianne hardly knew what to say. She would not wound the feelings of
559 her sister on any account, and yet to say what she did not believe was
560 impossible. At length she replied:
561
562 "Do not be offended, Elinor, if my praise of him is not in every thing
563 equal to your sense of his merits. I have not had so many
564 opportunities of estimating the minuter propensities of his mind, his
565 inclinations and tastes, as you have; but I have the highest opinion in
566 the world of his goodness and sense. I think him every thing that is
567 worthy and amiable."
568
569 "I am sure," replied Elinor, with a smile, "that his dearest friends
570 could not be dissatisfied with such commendation as that. I do not
571 perceive how you could express yourself more warmly."
572
573 Marianne was rejoiced to find her sister so easily pleased.
574
575 "Of his sense and his goodness," continued Elinor, "no one can, I
576 think, be in doubt, who has seen him often enough to engage him in
577 unreserved conversation. The excellence of his understanding and his
578 principles can be concealed only by that shyness which too often keeps
579 him silent. You know enough of him to do justice to his solid worth.
580 But of his minuter propensities, as you call them you have from
581 peculiar circumstances been kept more ignorant than myself. He and I
582 have been at times thrown a good deal together, while you have been
583 wholly engrossed on the most affectionate principle by my mother. I
584 have seen a great deal of him, have studied his sentiments and heard
585 his opinion on subjects of literature and taste; and, upon the whole, I
586 venture to pronounce that his mind is well-informed, enjoyment of books
587 exceedingly great, his imagination lively, his observation just and
588 correct, and his taste delicate and pure. His abilities in every
589 respect improve as much upon acquaintance as his manners and person.
590 At first sight, his address is certainly not striking; and his person
591 can hardly be called handsome, till the expression of his eyes, which
592 are uncommonly good, and the general sweetness of his countenance, is
593 perceived. At present, I know him so well, that I think him really
594 handsome; or at least, almost so. What say you, Marianne?"
595
596 "I shall very soon think him handsome, Elinor, if I do not now. When
597 you tell me to love him as a brother, I shall no more see imperfection
598 in his face, than I now do in his heart."
599
600 Elinor started at this declaration, and was sorry for the warmth she
601 had been betrayed into, in speaking of him. She felt that Edward stood
602 very high in her opinion. She believed the regard to be mutual; but
603 she required greater certainty of it to make Marianne's conviction of
604 their attachment agreeable to her. She knew that what Marianne and her
605 mother conjectured one moment, they believed the next--that with them,
606 to wish was to hope, and to hope was to expect. She tried to explain
607 the real state of the case to her sister.
608
609 "I do not attempt to deny," said she, "that I think very highly of
610 him--that I greatly esteem, that I like him."
611
612 Marianne here burst forth with indignation--
613
614 "Esteem him! Like him! Cold-hearted Elinor! Oh! worse than
615 cold-hearted! Ashamed of being otherwise. Use those words again, and I
616 will leave the room this moment."
617
618 Elinor could not help laughing. "Excuse me," said she; "and be assured
619 that I meant no offence to you, by speaking, in so quiet a way, of my
620 own feelings. Believe them to be stronger than I have declared;
621 believe them, in short, to be such as his merit, and the suspicion--the
622 hope of his affection for me may warrant, without imprudence or folly.
623 But farther than this you must not believe. I am by no means assured
624 of his regard for me. There are moments when the extent of it seems
625 doubtful; and till his sentiments are fully known, you cannot wonder at
626 my wishing to avoid any encouragement of my own partiality, by
627 believing or calling it more than it is. In my heart I feel
628 little--scarcely any doubt of his preference. But there are other
629 points to be considered besides his inclination. He is very far from
630 being independent. What his mother really is we cannot know; but, from
631 Fanny's occasional mention of her conduct and opinions, we have never
632 been disposed to think her amiable; and I am very much mistaken if
633 Edward is not himself aware that there would be many difficulties in
634 his way, if he were to wish to marry a woman who had not either a great
635 fortune or high rank."
636
637 Marianne was astonished to find how much the imagination of her mother
638 and herself had outstripped the truth.
639
640 "And you really are not engaged to him!" said she. "Yet it certainly
641 soon will happen. But two advantages will proceed from this delay. I
642 shall not lose you so soon, and Edward will have greater opportunity of
643 improving that natural taste for your favourite pursuit which must be
644 so indispensably necessary to your future felicity. Oh! if he should
645 be so far stimulated by your genius as to learn to draw himself, how
646 delightful it would be!"
647
648 Elinor had given her real opinion to her sister. She could not
649 consider her partiality for Edward in so prosperous a state as Marianne
650 had believed it. There was, at times, a want of spirits about him
651 which, if it did not denote indifference, spoke of something almost as
652 unpromising. A doubt of her regard, supposing him to feel it, need not
653 give him more than inquietude. It would not be likely to produce that
654 dejection of mind which frequently attended him. A more reasonable
655 cause might be found in the dependent situation which forbade the
656 indulgence of his affection. She knew that his mother neither behaved
657 to him so as to make his home comfortable at present, nor to give him
658 any assurance that he might form a home for himself, without strictly
659 attending to her views for his aggrandizement. With such a knowledge
660 as this, it was impossible for Elinor to feel easy on the subject. She
661 was far from depending on that result of his preference of her, which
662 her mother and sister still considered as certain. Nay, the longer
663 they were together the more doubtful seemed the nature of his regard;
664 and sometimes, for a few painful minutes, she believed it to be no more
665 than friendship.
666
667 But, whatever might really be its limits, it was enough, when perceived
668 by his sister, to make her uneasy, and at the same time, (which was
669 still more common,) to make her uncivil. She took the first
670 opportunity of affronting her mother-in-law on the occasion, talking to
671 her so expressively of her brother's great expectations, of Mrs.
672 Ferrars's resolution that both her sons should marry well, and of the
673 danger attending any young woman who attempted to DRAW HIM IN; that
674 Mrs. Dashwood could neither pretend to be unconscious, nor endeavor to
675 be calm. She gave her an answer which marked her contempt, and
676 instantly left the room, resolving that, whatever might be the
677 inconvenience or expense of so sudden a removal, her beloved Elinor
678 should not be exposed another week to such insinuations.
679
680 In this state of her spirits, a letter was delivered to her from the
681 post, which contained a proposal particularly well timed. It was the
682 offer of a small house, on very easy terms, belonging to a relation of
683 her own, a gentleman of consequence and property in Devonshire. The
684 letter was from this gentleman himself, and written in the true spirit
685 of friendly accommodation. He understood that she was in need of a
686 dwelling; and though the house he now offered her was merely a cottage,
687 he assured her that everything should be done to it which she might
688 think necessary, if the situation pleased her. He earnestly pressed
689 her, after giving the particulars of the house and garden, to come with
690 her daughters to Barton Park, the place of his own residence, from
691 whence she might judge, herself, whether Barton Cottage, for the houses
692 were in the same parish, could, by any alteration, be made comfortable
693 to her. He seemed really anxious to accommodate them and the whole of
694 his letter was written in so friendly a style as could not fail of
695 giving pleasure to his cousin; more especially at a moment when she was
696 suffering under the cold and unfeeling behaviour of her nearer
697 connections. She needed no time for deliberation or inquiry. Her
698 resolution was formed as she read. The situation of Barton, in a
699 county so far distant from Sussex as Devonshire, which, but a few hours
700 before, would have been a sufficient objection to outweigh every
701 possible advantage belonging to the place, was now its first
702 recommendation. To quit the neighbourhood of Norland was no longer an
703 evil; it was an object of desire; it was a blessing, in comparison of
704 the misery of continuing her daughter-in-law's guest; and to remove for
705 ever from that beloved place would be less painful than to inhabit or
706 visit it while such a woman was its mistress. She instantly wrote Sir
707 John Middleton her acknowledgment of his kindness, and her acceptance
708 of his proposal; and then hastened to shew both letters to her
709 daughters, that she might be secure of their approbation before her
710 answer were sent.
711
712 Elinor had always thought it would be more prudent for them to settle
713 at some distance from Norland, than immediately amongst their present
714 acquaintance. On THAT head, therefore, it was not for her to oppose
715 her mother's intention of removing into Devonshire. The house, too, as
716 described by Sir John, was on so simple a scale, and the rent so
717 uncommonly moderate, as to leave her no right of objection on either
718 point; and, therefore, though it was not a plan which brought any charm
719 to her fancy, though it was a removal from the vicinity of Norland
720 beyond her wishes, she made no attempt to dissuade her mother from
721 sending a letter of acquiescence.
722
723
724
725 CHAPTER 5
726
727
728 No sooner was her answer dispatched, than Mrs. Dashwood indulged herself
729 in the pleasure of announcing to her son-in-law and his wife that she
730 was provided with a house, and should incommode them no longer than till
731 every thing were ready for her inhabiting it. They heard her with
732 surprise. Mrs. John Dashwood said nothing; but her husband civilly hoped
733 that she would not be settled far from Norland. She had great
734 satisfaction in replying that she was going into Devonshire.--Edward
735 turned hastily towards her, on hearing this, and, in a voice of surprise
736 and concern, which required no explanation to her, repeated,
737 "Devonshire! Are you, indeed, going there? So far from hence! And to
738 what part of it?" She explained the situation. It was within four miles
739 northward of Exeter.
740
741 "It is but a cottage," she continued, "but I hope to see many of my
742 friends in it. A room or two can easily be added; and if my friends
743 find no difficulty in travelling so far to see me, I am sure I will
744 find none in accommodating them."
745
746 She concluded with a very kind invitation to Mr. and Mrs. John Dashwood
747 to visit her at Barton; and to Edward she gave one with still greater
748 affection. Though her late conversation with her daughter-in-law had
749 made her resolve on remaining at Norland no longer than was
750 unavoidable, it had not produced the smallest effect on her in that
751 point to which it principally tended. To separate Edward and Elinor
752 was as far from being her object as ever; and she wished to show Mrs.
753 John Dashwood, by this pointed invitation to her brother, how totally
754 she disregarded her disapprobation of the match.
755
756 Mr. John Dashwood told his mother again and again how exceedingly sorry
757 he was that she had taken a house at such a distance from Norland as to
758 prevent his being of any service to her in removing her furniture. He
759 really felt conscientiously vexed on the occasion; for the very
760 exertion to which he had limited the performance of his promise to his
761 father was by this arrangement rendered impracticable.-- The furniture
762 was all sent around by water. It chiefly consisted of household linen,
763 plate, china, and books, with a handsome pianoforte of Marianne's.
764 Mrs. John Dashwood saw the packages depart with a sigh: she could not
765 help feeling it hard that as Mrs. Dashwood's income would be so
766 trifling in comparison with their own, she should have any handsome
767 article of furniture.
768
769 Mrs. Dashwood took the house for a twelvemonth; it was ready furnished,
770 and she might have immediate possession. No difficulty arose on either
771 side in the agreement; and she waited only for the disposal of her
772 effects at Norland, and to determine her future household, before she
773 set off for the west; and this, as she was exceedingly rapid in the
774 performance of everything that interested her, was soon done.--The
775 horses which were left her by her husband had been sold soon after his
776 death, and an opportunity now offering of disposing of her carriage,
777 she agreed to sell that likewise at the earnest advice of her eldest
778 daughter. For the comfort of her children, had she consulted only her
779 own wishes, she would have kept it; but the discretion of Elinor
780 prevailed. HER wisdom too limited the number of their servants to
781 three; two maids and a man, with whom they were speedily provided from
782 amongst those who had formed their establishment at Norland.
783
784 The man and one of the maids were sent off immediately into Devonshire,
785 to prepare the house for their mistress's arrival; for as Lady
786 Middleton was entirely unknown to Mrs. Dashwood, she preferred going
787 directly to the cottage to being a visitor at Barton Park; and she
788 relied so undoubtingly on Sir John's description of the house, as to
789 feel no curiosity to examine it herself till she entered it as her own.
790 Her eagerness to be gone from Norland was preserved from diminution by
791 the evident satisfaction of her daughter-in-law in the prospect of her
792 removal; a satisfaction which was but feebly attempted to be concealed
793 under a cold invitation to her to defer her departure. Now was the
794 time when her son-in-law's promise to his father might with particular
795 propriety be fulfilled. Since he had neglected to do it on first
796 coming to the estate, their quitting his house might be looked on as
797 the most suitable period for its accomplishment. But Mrs. Dashwood
798 began shortly to give over every hope of the kind, and to be convinced,
799 from the general drift of his discourse, that his assistance extended
800 no farther than their maintenance for six months at Norland. He so
801 frequently talked of the increasing expenses of housekeeping, and of
802 the perpetual demands upon his purse, which a man of any consequence in
803 the world was beyond calculation exposed to, that he seemed rather to
804 stand in need of more money himself than to have any design of giving
805 money away.
806
807 In a very few weeks from the day which brought Sir John Middleton's
808 first letter to Norland, every thing was so far settled in their future
809 abode as to enable Mrs. Dashwood and her daughters to begin their
810 journey.
811
812 Many were the tears shed by them in their last adieus to a place so
813 much beloved. "Dear, dear Norland!" said Marianne, as she wandered
814 alone before the house, on the last evening of their being there; "when
815 shall I cease to regret you!--when learn to feel a home elsewhere!--Oh!
816 happy house, could you know what I suffer in now viewing you from this
817 spot, from whence perhaps I may view you no more!--And you, ye
818 well-known trees!--but you will continue the same.--No leaf will decay
819 because we are removed, nor any branch become motionless although we
820 can observe you no longer!--No; you will continue the same; unconscious
821 of the pleasure or the regret you occasion, and insensible of any
822 change in those who walk under your shade!--But who will remain to
823 enjoy you?"
824
825
826
827 CHAPTER 6
828
829
830 The first part of their journey was performed in too melancholy a
831 disposition to be otherwise than tedious and unpleasant. But as they
832 drew towards the end of it, their interest in the appearance of a
833 country which they were to inhabit overcame their dejection, and a view
834 of Barton Valley as they entered it gave them cheerfulness. It was a
835 pleasant fertile spot, well wooded, and rich in pasture. After winding
836 along it for more than a mile, they reached their own house. A small
837 green court was the whole of its demesne in front; and a neat wicket
838 gate admitted them into it.
839
840 As a house, Barton Cottage, though small, was comfortable and compact;
841 but as a cottage it was defective, for the building was regular, the
842 roof was tiled, the window shutters were not painted green, nor were
843 the walls covered with honeysuckles. A narrow passage led directly
844 through the house into the garden behind. On each side of the entrance
845 was a sitting room, about sixteen feet square; and beyond them were the
846 offices and the stairs. Four bed-rooms and two garrets formed the rest
847 of the house. It had not been built many years and was in good repair.
848 In comparison of Norland, it was poor and small indeed!--but the tears
849 which recollection called forth as they entered the house were soon
850 dried away. They were cheered by the joy of the servants on their
851 arrival, and each for the sake of the others resolved to appear happy.
852 It was very early in September; the season was fine, and from first
853 seeing the place under the advantage of good weather, they received an
854 impression in its favour which was of material service in recommending
855 it to their lasting approbation.
856
857 The situation of the house was good. High hills rose immediately
858 behind, and at no great distance on each side; some of which were open
859 downs, the others cultivated and woody. The village of Barton was
860 chiefly on one of these hills, and formed a pleasant view from the
861 cottage windows. The prospect in front was more extensive; it
862 commanded the whole of the valley, and reached into the country beyond.
863 The hills which surrounded the cottage terminated the valley in that
864 direction; under another name, and in another course, it branched out
865 again between two of the steepest of them.
866
867 With the size and furniture of the house Mrs. Dashwood was upon the
868 whole well satisfied; for though her former style of life rendered many
869 additions to the latter indispensable, yet to add and improve was a
870 delight to her; and she had at this time ready money enough to supply
871 all that was wanted of greater elegance to the apartments. "As for the
872 house itself, to be sure," said she, "it is too small for our family,
873 but we will make ourselves tolerably comfortable for the present, as it
874 is too late in the year for improvements. Perhaps in the spring, if I
875 have plenty of money, as I dare say I shall, we may think about
876 building. These parlors are both too small for such parties of our
877 friends as I hope to see often collected here; and I have some thoughts
878 of throwing the passage into one of them with perhaps a part of the
879 other, and so leave the remainder of that other for an entrance; this,
880 with a new drawing room which may be easily added, and a bed-chamber
881 and garret above, will make it a very snug little cottage. I could
882 wish the stairs were handsome. But one must not expect every thing;
883 though I suppose it would be no difficult matter to widen them. I
884 shall see how much I am before-hand with the world in the spring, and
885 we will plan our improvements accordingly."
886
887 In the mean time, till all these alterations could be made from the
888 savings of an income of five hundred a-year by a woman who never saved
889 in her life, they were wise enough to be contented with the house as it
890 was; and each of them was busy in arranging their particular concerns,
891 and endeavoring, by placing around them books and other possessions, to
892 form themselves a home. Marianne's pianoforte was unpacked and
893 properly disposed of; and Elinor's drawings were affixed to the walls
894 of their sitting room.
895
896 In such employments as these they were interrupted soon after breakfast
897 the next day by the entrance of their landlord, who called to welcome
898 them to Barton, and to offer them every accommodation from his own
899 house and garden in which theirs might at present be deficient. Sir
900 John Middleton was a good looking man about forty. He had formerly
901 visited at Stanhill, but it was too long for his young cousins to
902 remember him. His countenance was thoroughly good-humoured; and his
903 manners were as friendly as the style of his letter. Their arrival
904 seemed to afford him real satisfaction, and their comfort to be an
905 object of real solicitude to him. He said much of his earnest desire
906 of their living in the most sociable terms with his family, and pressed
907 them so cordially to dine at Barton Park every day till they were
908 better settled at home, that, though his entreaties were carried to a
909 point of perseverance beyond civility, they could not give offence.
910 His kindness was not confined to words; for within an hour after he
911 left them, a large basket full of garden stuff and fruit arrived from
912 the park, which was followed before the end of the day by a present of
913 game. He insisted, moreover, on conveying all their letters to and
914 from the post for them, and would not be denied the satisfaction of
915 sending them his newspaper every day.
916
917 Lady Middleton had sent a very civil message by him, denoting her
918 intention of waiting on Mrs. Dashwood as soon as she could be assured
919 that her visit would be no inconvenience; and as this message was
920 answered by an invitation equally polite, her ladyship was introduced
921 to them the next day.
922
923 They were, of course, very anxious to see a person on whom so much of
924 their comfort at Barton must depend; and the elegance of her appearance
925 was favourable to their wishes. Lady Middleton was not more than six
926 or seven and twenty; her face was handsome, her figure tall and
927 striking, and her address graceful. Her manners had all the elegance
928 which her husband's wanted. But they would have been improved by some
929 share of his frankness and warmth; and her visit was long enough to
930 detract something from their first admiration, by shewing that, though
931 perfectly well-bred, she was reserved, cold, and had nothing to say for
932 herself beyond the most common-place inquiry or remark.
933
934 Conversation however was not wanted, for Sir John was very chatty, and
935 Lady Middleton had taken the wise precaution of bringing with her their
936 eldest child, a fine little boy about six years old, by which means
937 there was one subject always to be recurred to by the ladies in case of
938 extremity, for they had to enquire his name and age, admire his beauty,
939 and ask him questions which his mother answered for him, while he hung
940 about her and held down his head, to the great surprise of her
941 ladyship, who wondered at his being so shy before company, as he could
942 make noise enough at home. On every formal visit a child ought to be
943 of the party, by way of provision for discourse. In the present case
944 it took up ten minutes to determine whether the boy were most like his
945 father or mother, and in what particular he resembled either, for of
946 course every body differed, and every body was astonished at the
947 opinion of the others.
948
949 An opportunity was soon to be given to the Dashwoods of debating on the
950 rest of the children, as Sir John would not leave the house without
951 securing their promise of dining at the park the next day.
952
953
954
955 CHAPTER 7
956
957
958 Barton Park was about half a mile from the cottage. The ladies had
959 passed near it in their way along the valley, but it was screened from
960 their view at home by the projection of a hill. The house was large
961 and handsome; and the Middletons lived in a style of equal hospitality
962 and elegance. The former was for Sir John's gratification, the latter
963 for that of his lady. They were scarcely ever without some friends
964 staying with them in the house, and they kept more company of every
965 kind than any other family in the neighbourhood. It was necessary to
966 the happiness of both; for however dissimilar in temper and outward
967 behaviour, they strongly resembled each other in that total want of
968 talent and taste which confined their employments, unconnected with
969 such as society produced, within a very narrow compass. Sir John was a
970 sportsman, Lady Middleton a mother. He hunted and shot, and she
971 humoured her children; and these were their only resources. Lady
972 Middleton had the advantage of being able to spoil her children all the
973 year round, while Sir John's independent employments were in existence
974 only half the time. Continual engagements at home and abroad, however,
975 supplied all the deficiencies of nature and education; supported the
976 good spirits of Sir John, and gave exercise to the good breeding of his
977 wife.
978
979 Lady Middleton piqued herself upon the elegance of her table, and of
980 all her domestic arrangements; and from this kind of vanity was her
981 greatest enjoyment in any of their parties. But Sir John's
982 satisfaction in society was much more real; he delighted in collecting
983 about him more young people than his house would hold, and the noisier
984 they were the better was he pleased. He was a blessing to all the
985 juvenile part of the neighbourhood, for in summer he was for ever
986 forming parties to eat cold ham and chicken out of doors, and in winter
987 his private balls were numerous enough for any young lady who was not
988 suffering under the unsatiable appetite of fifteen.
989
990 The arrival of a new family in the country was always a matter of joy
991 to him, and in every point of view he was charmed with the inhabitants
992 he had now procured for his cottage at Barton. The Miss Dashwoods were
993 young, pretty, and unaffected. It was enough to secure his good
994 opinion; for to be unaffected was all that a pretty girl could want to
995 make her mind as captivating as her person. The friendliness of his
996 disposition made him happy in accommodating those, whose situation
997 might be considered, in comparison with the past, as unfortunate. In
998 showing kindness to his cousins therefore he had the real satisfaction
999 of a good heart; and in settling a family of females only in his
1000 cottage, he had all the satisfaction of a sportsman; for a sportsman,
1001 though he esteems only those of his sex who are sportsmen likewise, is
1002 not often desirous of encouraging their taste by admitting them to a
1003 residence within his own manor.
1004
1005 Mrs. Dashwood and her daughters were met at the door of the house by
1006 Sir John, who welcomed them to Barton Park with unaffected sincerity;
1007 and as he attended them to the drawing room repeated to the young
1008 ladies the concern which the same subject had drawn from him the day
1009 before, at being unable to get any smart young men to meet them. They
1010 would see, he said, only one gentleman there besides himself; a
1011 particular friend who was staying at the park, but who was neither very
1012 young nor very gay. He hoped they would all excuse the smallness of
1013 the party, and could assure them it should never happen so again. He
1014 had been to several families that morning in hopes of procuring some
1015 addition to their number, but it was moonlight and every body was full
1016 of engagements. Luckily Lady Middleton's mother had arrived at Barton
1017 within the last hour, and as she was a very cheerful agreeable woman,
1018 he hoped the young ladies would not find it so very dull as they might
1019 imagine. The young ladies, as well as their mother, were perfectly
1020 satisfied with having two entire strangers of the party, and wished for
1021 no more.
1022
1023 Mrs. Jennings, Lady Middleton's mother, was a good-humoured, merry,
1024 fat, elderly woman, who talked a great deal, seemed very happy, and
1025 rather vulgar. She was full of jokes and laughter, and before dinner
1026 was over had said many witty things on the subject of lovers and
1027 husbands; hoped they had not left their hearts behind them in Sussex,
1028 and pretended to see them blush whether they did or not. Marianne was
1029 vexed at it for her sister's sake, and turned her eyes towards Elinor
1030 to see how she bore these attacks, with an earnestness which gave
1031 Elinor far more pain than could arise from such common-place raillery
1032 as Mrs. Jennings's.
1033
1034 Colonel Brandon, the friend of Sir John, seemed no more adapted by
1035 resemblance of manner to be his friend, than Lady Middleton was to be
1036 his wife, or Mrs. Jennings to be Lady Middleton's mother. He was
1037 silent and grave. His appearance however was not unpleasing, in spite
1038 of his being in the opinion of Marianne and Margaret an absolute old
1039 bachelor, for he was on the wrong side of five and thirty; but though
1040 his face was not handsome, his countenance was sensible, and his
1041 address was particularly gentlemanlike.
1042
1043 There was nothing in any of the party which could recommend them as
1044 companions to the Dashwoods; but the cold insipidity of Lady Middleton
1045 was so particularly repulsive, that in comparison of it the gravity of
1046 Colonel Brandon, and even the boisterous mirth of Sir John and his
1047 mother-in-law was interesting. Lady Middleton seemed to be roused to
1048 enjoyment only by the entrance of her four noisy children after dinner,
1049 who pulled her about, tore her clothes, and put an end to every kind of
1050 discourse except what related to themselves.
1051
1052 In the evening, as Marianne was discovered to be musical, she was
1053 invited to play. The instrument was unlocked, every body prepared to
1054 be charmed, and Marianne, who sang very well, at their request went
1055 through the chief of the songs which Lady Middleton had brought into
1056 the family on her marriage, and which perhaps had lain ever since in
1057 the same position on the pianoforte, for her ladyship had celebrated
1058 that event by giving up music, although by her mother's account, she
1059 had played extremely well, and by her own was very fond of it.
1060
1061 Marianne's performance was highly applauded. Sir John was loud in his
1062 admiration at the end of every song, and as loud in his conversation
1063 with the others while every song lasted. Lady Middleton frequently
1064 called him to order, wondered how any one's attention could be diverted
1065 from music for a moment, and asked Marianne to sing a particular song
1066 which Marianne had just finished. Colonel Brandon alone, of all the
1067 party, heard her without being in raptures. He paid her only the
1068 compliment of attention; and she felt a respect for him on the
1069 occasion, which the others had reasonably forfeited by their shameless
1070 want of taste. His pleasure in music, though it amounted not to that
1071 ecstatic delight which alone could sympathize with her own, was
1072 estimable when contrasted against the horrible insensibility of the
1073 others; and she was reasonable enough to allow that a man of five and
1074 thirty might well have outlived all acuteness of feeling and every
1075 exquisite power of enjoyment. She was perfectly disposed to make every
1076 allowance for the colonel's advanced state of life which humanity
1077 required.
1078
1079
1080
1081 CHAPTER 8
1082
1083
1084 Mrs. Jennings was a widow with an ample jointure. She had only two
1085 daughters, both of whom she had lived to see respectably married, and
1086 she had now therefore nothing to do but to marry all the rest of the
1087 world. In the promotion of this object she was zealously active, as
1088 far as her ability reached; and missed no opportunity of projecting
1089 weddings among all the young people of her acquaintance. She was
1090 remarkably quick in the discovery of attachments, and had enjoyed the
1091 advantage of raising the blushes and the vanity of many a young lady by
1092 insinuations of her power over such a young man; and this kind of
1093 discernment enabled her soon after her arrival at Barton decisively to
1094 pronounce that Colonel Brandon was very much in love with Marianne
1095 Dashwood. She rather suspected it to be so, on the very first evening
1096 of their being together, from his listening so attentively while she
1097 sang to them; and when the visit was returned by the Middletons' dining
1098 at the cottage, the fact was ascertained by his listening to her again.
1099 It must be so. She was perfectly convinced of it. It would be an
1100 excellent match, for HE was rich, and SHE was handsome. Mrs. Jennings
1101 had been anxious to see Colonel Brandon well married, ever since her
1102 connection with Sir John first brought him to her knowledge; and she
1103 was always anxious to get a good husband for every pretty girl.
1104
1105 The immediate advantage to herself was by no means inconsiderable, for
1106 it supplied her with endless jokes against them both. At the park she
1107 laughed at the colonel, and in the cottage at Marianne. To the former
1108 her raillery was probably, as far as it regarded only himself,
1109 perfectly indifferent; but to the latter it was at first
1110 incomprehensible; and when its object was understood, she hardly knew
1111 whether most to laugh at its absurdity, or censure its impertinence,
1112 for she considered it as an unfeeling reflection on the colonel's
1113 advanced years, and on his forlorn condition as an old bachelor.
1114
1115 Mrs. Dashwood, who could not think a man five years younger than
1116 herself, so exceedingly ancient as he appeared to the youthful fancy of
1117 her daughter, ventured to clear Mrs. Jennings from the probability of
1118 wishing to throw ridicule on his age.
1119
1120 "But at least, Mama, you cannot deny the absurdity of the accusation,
1121 though you may not think it intentionally ill-natured. Colonel Brandon
1122 is certainly younger than Mrs. Jennings, but he is old enough to be MY
1123 father; and if he were ever animated enough to be in love, must have
1124 long outlived every sensation of the kind. It is too ridiculous! When
1125 is a man to be safe from such wit, if age and infirmity will not
1126 protect him?"
1127
1128 "Infirmity!" said Elinor, "do you call Colonel Brandon infirm? I can
1129 easily suppose that his age may appear much greater to you than to my
1130 mother; but you can hardly deceive yourself as to his having the use of
1131 his limbs!"
1132
1133 "Did not you hear him complain of the rheumatism? and is not that the
1134 commonest infirmity of declining life?"
1135
1136 "My dearest child," said her mother, laughing, "at this rate you must
1137 be in continual terror of MY decay; and it must seem to you a miracle
1138 that my life has been extended to the advanced age of forty."
1139
1140 "Mama, you are not doing me justice. I know very well that Colonel
1141 Brandon is not old enough to make his friends yet apprehensive of
1142 losing him in the course of nature. He may live twenty years longer.
1143 But thirty-five has nothing to do with matrimony."
1144
1145 "Perhaps," said Elinor, "thirty-five and seventeen had better not have
1146 any thing to do with matrimony together. But if there should by any
1147 chance happen to be a woman who is single at seven and twenty, I should
1148 not think Colonel Brandon's being thirty-five any objection to his
1149 marrying HER."
1150
1151 "A woman of seven and twenty," said Marianne, after pausing a moment,
1152 "can never hope to feel or inspire affection again, and if her home be
1153 uncomfortable, or her fortune small, I can suppose that she might bring
1154 herself to submit to the offices of a nurse, for the sake of the
1155 provision and security of a wife. In his marrying such a woman
1156 therefore there would be nothing unsuitable. It would be a compact of
1157 convenience, and the world would be satisfied. In my eyes it would be
1158 no marriage at all, but that would be nothing. To me it would seem
1159 only a commercial exchange, in which each wished to be benefited at the
1160 expense of the other."
1161
1162 "It would be impossible, I know," replied Elinor, "to convince you that
1163 a woman of seven and twenty could feel for a man of thirty-five
1164 anything near enough to love, to make him a desirable companion to her.
1165 But I must object to your dooming Colonel Brandon and his wife to the
1166 constant confinement of a sick chamber, merely because he chanced to
1167 complain yesterday (a very cold damp day) of a slight rheumatic feel in
1168 one of his shoulders."
1169
1170 "But he talked of flannel waistcoats," said Marianne; "and with me a
1171 flannel waistcoat is invariably connected with aches, cramps,
1172 rheumatisms, and every species of ailment that can afflict the old and
1173 the feeble."
1174
1175 "Had he been only in a violent fever, you would not have despised him
1176 half so much. Confess, Marianne, is not there something interesting to
1177 you in the flushed cheek, hollow eye, and quick pulse of a fever?"
1178
1179 Soon after this, upon Elinor's leaving the room, "Mama," said
1180 Marianne, "I have an alarm on the subject of illness which I cannot
1181 conceal from you. I am sure Edward Ferrars is not well. We have now
1182 been here almost a fortnight, and yet he does not come. Nothing but
1183 real indisposition could occasion this extraordinary delay. What else
1184 can detain him at Norland?"
1185
1186 "Had you any idea of his coming so soon?" said Mrs. Dashwood. "I had
1187 none. On the contrary, if I have felt any anxiety at all on the
1188 subject, it has been in recollecting that he sometimes showed a want of
1189 pleasure and readiness in accepting my invitation, when I talked of his
1190 coming to Barton. Does Elinor expect him already?"
1191
1192 "I have never mentioned it to her, but of course she must."
1193
1194 "I rather think you are mistaken, for when I was talking to her
1195 yesterday of getting a new grate for the spare bedchamber, she observed
1196 that there was no immediate hurry for it, as it was not likely that the
1197 room would be wanted for some time."
1198
1199 "How strange this is! what can be the meaning of it! But the whole of
1200 their behaviour to each other has been unaccountable! How cold, how
1201 composed were their last adieus! How languid their conversation the
1202 last evening of their being together! In Edward's farewell there was no
1203 distinction between Elinor and me: it was the good wishes of an
1204 affectionate brother to both. Twice did I leave them purposely
1205 together in the course of the last morning, and each time did he most
1206 unaccountably follow me out of the room. And Elinor, in quitting
1207 Norland and Edward, cried not as I did. Even now her self-command is
1208 invariable. When is she dejected or melancholy? When does she try to
1209 avoid society, or appear restless and dissatisfied in it?"
1210
1211
1212
1213 CHAPTER 9
1214
1215
1216 The Dashwoods were now settled at Barton with tolerable comfort to
1217 themselves. The house and the garden, with all the objects surrounding
1218 them, were now become familiar, and the ordinary pursuits which had
1219 given to Norland half its charms were engaged in again with far greater
1220 enjoyment than Norland had been able to afford, since the loss of their
1221 father. Sir John Middleton, who called on them every day for the first
1222 fortnight, and who was not in the habit of seeing much occupation at
1223 home, could not conceal his amazement on finding them always employed.
1224
1225 Their visitors, except those from Barton Park, were not many; for, in
1226 spite of Sir John's urgent entreaties that they would mix more in the
1227 neighbourhood, and repeated assurances of his carriage being always at
1228 their service, the independence of Mrs. Dashwood's spirit overcame the
1229 wish of society for her children; and she was resolute in declining to
1230 visit any family beyond the distance of a walk. There were but few who
1231 could be so classed; and it was not all of them that were attainable.
1232 About a mile and a half from the cottage, along the narrow winding
1233 valley of Allenham, which issued from that of Barton, as formerly
1234 described, the girls had, in one of their earliest walks, discovered an
1235 ancient respectable looking mansion which, by reminding them a little
1236 of Norland, interested their imagination and made them wish to be
1237 better acquainted with it. But they learnt, on enquiry, that its
1238 possessor, an elderly lady of very good character, was unfortunately
1239 too infirm to mix with the world, and never stirred from home.
1240
1241 The whole country about them abounded in beautiful walks. The high
1242 downs which invited them from almost every window of the cottage to
1243 seek the exquisite enjoyment of air on their summits, were a happy
1244 alternative when the dirt of the valleys beneath shut up their superior
1245 beauties; and towards one of these hills did Marianne and Margaret one
1246 memorable morning direct their steps, attracted by the partial sunshine
1247 of a showery sky, and unable longer to bear the confinement which the
1248 settled rain of the two preceding days had occasioned. The weather was
1249 not tempting enough to draw the two others from their pencil and their
1250 book, in spite of Marianne's declaration that the day would be
1251 lastingly fair, and that every threatening cloud would be drawn off
1252 from their hills; and the two girls set off together.
1253
1254 They gaily ascended the downs, rejoicing in their own penetration at
1255 every glimpse of blue sky; and when they caught in their faces the
1256 animating gales of a high south-westerly wind, they pitied the fears
1257 which had prevented their mother and Elinor from sharing such
1258 delightful sensations.
1259
1260 "Is there a felicity in the world," said Marianne, "superior to
1261 this?--Margaret, we will walk here at least two hours."
1262
1263 Margaret agreed, and they pursued their way against the wind, resisting
1264 it with laughing delight for about twenty minutes longer, when suddenly
1265 the clouds united over their heads, and a driving rain set full in
1266 their face.-- Chagrined and surprised, they were obliged, though
1267 unwillingly, to turn back, for no shelter was nearer than their own
1268 house. One consolation however remained for them, to which the
1269 exigence of the moment gave more than usual propriety; it was that of
1270 running with all possible speed down the steep side of the hill which
1271 led immediately to their garden gate.
1272
1273 They set off. Marianne had at first the advantage, but a false step
1274 brought her suddenly to the ground; and Margaret, unable to stop
1275 herself to assist her, was involuntarily hurried along, and reached the
1276 bottom in safety.
1277
1278 A gentleman carrying a gun, with two pointers playing round him, was
1279 passing up the hill and within a few yards of Marianne, when her
1280 accident happened. He put down his gun and ran to her assistance. She
1281 had raised herself from the ground, but her foot had been twisted in
1282 her fall, and she was scarcely able to stand. The gentleman offered
1283 his services; and perceiving that her modesty declined what her
1284 situation rendered necessary, took her up in his arms without farther
1285 delay, and carried her down the hill. Then passing through the garden,
1286 the gate of which had been left open by Margaret, he bore her directly
1287 into the house, whither Margaret was just arrived, and quitted not his
1288 hold till he had seated her in a chair in the parlour.
1289
1290 Elinor and her mother rose up in amazement at their entrance, and while
1291 the eyes of both were fixed on him with an evident wonder and a secret
1292 admiration which equally sprung from his appearance, he apologized for
1293 his intrusion by relating its cause, in a manner so frank and so
1294 graceful that his person, which was uncommonly handsome, received
1295 additional charms from his voice and expression. Had he been even old,
1296 ugly, and vulgar, the gratitude and kindness of Mrs. Dashwood would
1297 have been secured by any act of attention to her child; but the
1298 influence of youth, beauty, and elegance, gave an interest to the
1299 action which came home to her feelings.
1300
1301 She thanked him again and again; and, with a sweetness of address which
1302 always attended her, invited him to be seated. But this he declined,
1303 as he was dirty and wet. Mrs. Dashwood then begged to know to whom she
1304 was obliged. His name, he replied, was Willoughby, and his present
1305 home was at Allenham, from whence he hoped she would allow him the
1306 honour of calling tomorrow to enquire after Miss Dashwood. The honour
1307 was readily granted, and he then departed, to make himself still more
1308 interesting, in the midst of a heavy rain.
1309
1310 His manly beauty and more than common gracefulness were instantly the
1311 theme of general admiration, and the laugh which his gallantry raised
1312 against Marianne received particular spirit from his exterior
1313 attractions.-- Marianne herself had seen less of his Mama the
1314 rest, for the confusion which crimsoned over her face, on his lifting
1315 her up, had robbed her of the power of regarding him after their
1316 entering the house. But she had seen enough of him to join in all the
1317 admiration of the others, and with an energy which always adorned her
1318 praise. His person and air were equal to what her fancy had ever drawn
1319 for the hero of a favourite story; and in his carrying her into the
1320 house with so little previous formality, there was a rapidity of
1321 thought which particularly recommended the action to her. Every
1322 circumstance belonging to him was interesting. His name was good, his
1323 residence was in their favourite village, and she soon found out that
1324 of all manly dresses a shooting-jacket was the most becoming. Her
1325 imagination was busy, her reflections were pleasant, and the pain of a
1326 sprained ankle was disregarded.
1327
1328 Sir John called on them as soon as the next interval of fair weather
1329 that morning allowed him to get out of doors; and Marianne's accident
1330 being related to him, he was eagerly asked whether he knew any
1331 gentleman of the name of Willoughby at Allenham.
1332
1333 "Willoughby!" cried Sir John; "what, is HE in the country? That is good
1334 news however; I will ride over tomorrow, and ask him to dinner on
1335 Thursday."
1336
1337 "You know him then," said Mrs. Dashwood.
1338
1339 "Know him! to be sure I do. Why, he is down here every year."
1340
1341 "And what sort of a young man is he?"
1342
1343 "As good a kind of fellow as ever lived, I assure you. A very decent
1344 shot, and there is not a bolder rider in England."
1345
1346 "And is that all you can say for him?" cried Marianne, indignantly.
1347 "But what are his manners on more intimate acquaintance? What his
1348 pursuits, his talents, and genius?"
1349
1350 Sir John was rather puzzled.
1351
1352 "Upon my soul," said he, "I do not know much about him as to all THAT.
1353 But he is a pleasant, good humoured fellow, and has got the nicest
1354 little black bitch of a pointer I ever saw. Was she out with him
1355 today?"
1356
1357 But Marianne could no more satisfy him as to the colour of Mr.
1358 Willoughby's pointer, than he could describe to her the shades of his
1359 mind.
1360
1361 "But who is he?" said Elinor. "Where does he come from? Has he a
1362 house at Allenham?"
1363
1364 On this point Sir John could give more certain intelligence; and he
1365 told them that Mr. Willoughby had no property of his own in the
1366 country; that he resided there only while he was visiting the old lady
1367 at Allenham Court, to whom he was related, and whose possessions he was
1368 to inherit; adding, "Yes, yes, he is very well worth catching I can
1369 tell you, Miss Dashwood; he has a pretty little estate of his own in
1370 Somersetshire besides; and if I were you, I would not give him up to my
1371 younger sister, in spite of all this tumbling down hills. Miss
1372 Marianne must not expect to have all the men to herself. Brandon will
1373 be jealous, if she does not take care."
1374
1375 "I do not believe," said Mrs. Dashwood, with a good humoured smile,
1376 "that Mr. Willoughby will be incommoded by the attempts of either of MY
1377 daughters towards what you call CATCHING him. It is not an employment
1378 to which they have been brought up. Men are very safe with us, let
1379 them be ever so rich. I am glad to find, however, from what you say,
1380 that he is a respectable young man, and one whose acquaintance will not
1381 be ineligible."
1382
1383 "He is as good a sort of fellow, I believe, as ever lived," repeated
1384 Sir John. "I remember last Christmas at a little hop at the park, he
1385 danced from eight o'clock till four, without once sitting down."
1386
1387 "Did he indeed?" cried Marianne with sparkling eyes, "and with
1388 elegance, with spirit?"
1389
1390 "Yes; and he was up again at eight to ride to covert."
1391
1392 "That is what I like; that is what a young man ought to be. Whatever
1393 be his pursuits, his eagerness in them should know no moderation, and
1394 leave him no sense of fatigue."
1395
1396 "Aye, aye, I see how it will be," said Sir John, "I see how it will be.
1397 You will be setting your cap at him now, and never think of poor
1398 Brandon."
1399
1400 "That is an expression, Sir John," said Marianne, warmly, "which I
1401 particularly dislike. I abhor every common-place phrase by which wit
1402 is intended; and 'setting one's cap at a man,' or 'making a conquest,'
1403 are the most odious of all. Their tendency is gross and illiberal; and
1404 if their construction could ever be deemed clever, time has long ago
1405 destroyed all its ingenuity."
1406
1407 Sir John did not much understand this reproof; but he laughed as
1408 heartily as if he did, and then replied,
1409
1410 "Ay, you will make conquests enough, I dare say, one way or other.
1411 Poor Brandon! he is quite smitten already, and he is very well worth
1412 setting your cap at, I can tell you, in spite of all this tumbling
1413 about and spraining of ankles."
1414
1415
1416
1417 CHAPTER 10
1418
1419
1420 Marianne's preserver, as Margaret, with more elegance than precision,
1421 styled Willoughby, called at the cottage early the next morning to make
1422 his personal enquiries. He was received by Mrs. Dashwood with more
1423 than politeness; with a kindness which Sir John's account of him and
1424 her own gratitude prompted; and every thing that passed during the
1425 visit tended to assure him of the sense, elegance, mutual affection,
1426 and domestic comfort of the family to whom accident had now introduced
1427 him. Of their personal charms he had not required a second interview
1428 to be convinced.
1429
1430 Miss Dashwood had a delicate complexion, regular features, and a
1431 remarkably pretty figure. Marianne was still handsomer. Her form,
1432 though not so correct as her sister's, in having the advantage of
1433 height, was more striking; and her face was so lovely, that when in the
1434 common cant of praise, she was called a beautiful girl, truth was less
1435 violently outraged than usually happens. Her skin was very brown, but,
1436 from its transparency, her complexion was uncommonly brilliant; her
1437 features were all good; her smile was sweet and attractive; and in her
1438 eyes, which were very dark, there was a life, a spirit, an eagerness,
1439 which could hardily be seen without delight. From Willoughby their
1440 expression was at first held back, by the embarrassment which the
1441 remembrance of his assistance created. But when this passed away, when
1442 her spirits became collected, when she saw that to the perfect
1443 good-breeding of the gentleman, he united frankness and vivacity, and
1444 above all, when she heard him declare, that of music and dancing he was
1445 passionately fond, she gave him such a look of approbation as secured
1446 the largest share of his discourse to herself for the rest of his stay.
1447
1448 It was only necessary to mention any favourite amusement to engage her
1449 to talk. She could not be silent when such points were introduced, and
1450 she had neither shyness nor reserve in their discussion. They speedily
1451 discovered that their enjoyment of dancing and music was mutual, and
1452 that it arose from a general conformity of judgment in all that related
1453 to either. Encouraged by this to a further examination of his
1454 opinions, she proceeded to question him on the subject of books; her
1455 favourite authors were brought forward and dwelt upon with so rapturous
1456 a delight, that any young man of five and twenty must have been
1457 insensible indeed, not to become an immediate convert to the excellence
1458 of such works, however disregarded before. Their taste was strikingly
1459 alike. The same books, the same passages were idolized by each--or if
1460 any difference appeared, any objection arose, it lasted no longer than
1461 till the force of her arguments and the brightness of her eyes could be
1462 displayed. He acquiesced in all her decisions, caught all her
1463 enthusiasm; and long before his visit concluded, they conversed with
1464 the familiarity of a long-established acquaintance.
1465
1466 "Well, Marianne," said Elinor, as soon as he had left them, "for ONE
1467 morning I think you have done pretty well. You have already
1468 ascertained Mr. Willoughby's opinion in almost every matter of
1469 importance. You know what he thinks of Cowper and Scott; you are
1470 certain of his estimating their beauties as he ought, and you have
1471 received every assurance of his admiring Pope no more than is proper.
1472 But how is your acquaintance to be long supported, under such
1473 extraordinary despatch of every subject for discourse? You will soon
1474 have exhausted each favourite topic. Another meeting will suffice to
1475 explain his sentiments on picturesque beauty, and second marriages, and
1476 then you can have nothing farther to ask."--
1477
1478 "Elinor," cried Marianne, "is this fair? is this just? are my ideas so
1479 scanty? But I see what you mean. I have been too much at my ease, too
1480 happy, too frank. I have erred against every common-place notion of
1481 decorum; I have been open and sincere where I ought to have been
1482 reserved, spiritless, dull, and deceitful--had I talked only of the
1483 weather and the roads, and had I spoken only once in ten minutes, this
1484 reproach would have been spared."
1485
1486 "My love," said her mother, "you must not be offended with Elinor--she
1487 was only in jest. I should scold her myself, if she were capable of
1488 wishing to check the delight of your conversation with our new
1489 friend."-- Marianne was softened in a moment.
1490
1491 Willoughby, on his side, gave every proof of his pleasure in their
1492 acquaintance, which an evident wish of improving it could offer. He
1493 came to them every day. To enquire after Marianne was at first his
1494 excuse; but the encouragement of his reception, to which every day gave
1495 greater kindness, made such an excuse unnecessary before it had ceased
1496 to be possible, by Marianne's perfect recovery. She was confined for
1497 some days to the house; but never had any confinement been less
1498 irksome. Willoughby was a young man of good abilities, quick
1499 imagination, lively spirits, and open, affectionate manners. He was
1500 exactly formed to engage Marianne's heart, for with all this, he joined
1501 not only a captivating person, but a natural ardour of mind which was
1502 now roused and increased by the example of her own, and which
1503 recommended him to her affection beyond every thing else.
1504
1505 His society became gradually her most exquisite enjoyment. They read,
1506 they talked, they sang together; his musical talents were considerable;
1507 and he read with all the sensibility and spirit which Edward had
1508 unfortunately wanted.
1509
1510 In Mrs. Dashwood's estimation he was as faultless as in Marianne's; and
1511 Elinor saw nothing to censure in him but a propensity, in which he
1512 strongly resembled and peculiarly delighted her sister, of saying too
1513 much what he thought on every occasion, without attention to persons or
1514 circumstances. In hastily forming and giving his opinion of other
1515 people, in sacrificing general politeness to the enjoyment of undivided
1516 attention where his heart was engaged, and in slighting too easily the
1517 forms of worldly propriety, he displayed a want of caution which Elinor
1518 could not approve, in spite of all that he and Marianne could say in
1519 its support.
1520
1521 Marianne began now to perceive that the desperation which had seized
1522 her at sixteen and a half, of ever seeing a man who could satisfy her
1523 ideas of perfection, had been rash and unjustifiable. Willoughby was
1524 all that her fancy had delineated in that unhappy hour and in every
1525 brighter period, as capable of attaching her; and his behaviour
1526 declared his wishes to be in that respect as earnest, as his abilities
1527 were strong.
1528
1529 Her mother too, in whose mind not one speculative thought of their
1530 marriage had been raised, by his prospect of riches, was led before the
1531 end of a week to hope and expect it; and secretly to congratulate
1532 herself on having gained two such sons-in-law as Edward and Willoughby.
1533
1534 Colonel Brandon's partiality for Marianne, which had so early been
1535 discovered by his friends, now first became perceptible to Elinor, when
1536 it ceased to be noticed by them. Their attention and wit were drawn
1537 off to his more fortunate rival; and the raillery which the other had
1538 incurred before any partiality arose, was removed when his feelings
1539 began really to call for the ridicule so justly annexed to sensibility.
1540 Elinor was obliged, though unwillingly, to believe that the sentiments
1541 which Mrs. Jennings had assigned him for her own satisfaction, were now
1542 actually excited by her sister; and that however a general resemblance
1543 of disposition between the parties might forward the affection of Mr.
1544 Willoughby, an equally striking opposition of character was no
1545 hindrance to the regard of Colonel Brandon. She saw it with concern;
1546 for what could a silent man of five and thirty hope, when opposed to a
1547 very lively one of five and twenty? and as she could not even wish him
1548 successful, she heartily wished him indifferent. She liked him--in
1549 spite of his gravity and reserve, she beheld in him an object of
1550 interest. His manners, though serious, were mild; and his reserve
1551 appeared rather the result of some oppression of spirits than of any
1552 natural gloominess of temper. Sir John had dropped hints of past
1553 injuries and disappointments, which justified her belief of his being
1554 an unfortunate man, and she regarded him with respect and compassion.
1555
1556 Perhaps she pitied and esteemed him the more because he was slighted by
1557 Willoughby and Marianne, who, prejudiced against him for being neither
1558 lively nor young, seemed resolved to undervalue his merits.
1559
1560 "Brandon is just the kind of man," said Willoughby one day, when they
1561 were talking of him together, "whom every body speaks well of, and
1562 nobody cares about; whom all are delighted to see, and nobody remembers
1563 to talk to."
1564
1565 "That is exactly what I think of him," cried Marianne.
1566
1567 "Do not boast of it, however," said Elinor, "for it is injustice in
1568 both of you. He is highly esteemed by all the family at the park, and
1569 I never see him myself without taking pains to converse with him."
1570
1571 "That he is patronised by YOU," replied Willoughby, "is certainly in
1572 his favour; but as for the esteem of the others, it is a reproach in
1573 itself. Who would submit to the indignity of being approved by such a
1574 woman as Lady Middleton and Mrs. Jennings, that could command the
1575 indifference of any body else?"
1576
1577 "But perhaps the abuse of such people as yourself and Marianne will
1578 make amends for the regard of Lady Middleton and her mother. If their
1579 praise is censure, your censure may be praise, for they are not more
1580 undiscerning, than you are prejudiced and unjust."
1581
1582 "In defence of your protege you can even be saucy."
1583
1584 "My protege, as you call him, is a sensible man; and sense will always
1585 have attractions for me. Yes, Marianne, even in a man between thirty
1586 and forty. He has seen a great deal of the world; has been abroad, has
1587 read, and has a thinking mind. I have found him capable of giving me
1588 much information on various subjects; and he has always answered my
1589 inquiries with readiness of good-breeding and good nature."
1590
1591 "That is to say," cried Marianne contemptuously, "he has told you, that
1592 in the East Indies the climate is hot, and the mosquitoes are
1593 troublesome."
1594
1595 "He WOULD have told me so, I doubt not, had I made any such inquiries,
1596 but they happened to be points on which I had been previously informed."
1597
1598 "Perhaps," said Willoughby, "his observations may have extended to the
1599 existence of nabobs, gold mohrs, and palanquins."
1600
1601 "I may venture to say that HIS observations have stretched much further
1602 than your candour. But why should you dislike him?"
1603
1604 "I do not dislike him. I consider him, on the contrary, as a very
1605 respectable man, who has every body's good word, and nobody's notice;
1606 who, has more money than he can spend, more time than he knows how to
1607 employ, and two new coats every year."
1608
1609 "Add to which," cried Marianne, "that he has neither genius, taste, nor
1610 spirit. That his understanding has no brilliancy, his feelings no
1611 ardour, and his voice no expression."
1612
1613 "You decide on his imperfections so much in the mass," replied Elinor,
1614 "and so much on the strength of your own imagination, that the
1615 commendation I am able to give of him is comparatively cold and
1616 insipid. I can only pronounce him to be a sensible man, well-bred,
1617 well-informed, of gentle address, and, I believe, possessing an amiable
1618 heart."
1619
1620 "Miss Dashwood," cried Willoughby, "you are now using me unkindly. You
1621 are endeavouring to disarm me by reason, and to convince me against my
1622 will. But it will not do. You shall find me as stubborn as you can be
1623 artful. I have three unanswerable reasons for disliking Colonel
1624 Brandon; he threatened me with rain when I wanted it to be fine; he has
1625 found fault with the hanging of my curricle, and I cannot persuade him
1626 to buy my brown mare. If it will be any satisfaction to you, however,
1627 to be told, that I believe his character to be in other respects
1628 irreproachable, I am ready to confess it. And in return for an
1629 acknowledgment, which must give me some pain, you cannot deny me the
1630 privilege of disliking him as much as ever."
1631
1632
1633
1634 CHAPTER 11
1635
1636
1637 Little had Mrs. Dashwood or her daughters imagined when they first came
1638 into Devonshire, that so many engagements would arise to occupy their
1639 time as shortly presented themselves, or that they should have such
1640 frequent invitations and such constant visitors as to leave them little
1641 leisure for serious employment. Yet such was the case. When Marianne
1642 was recovered, the schemes of amusement at home and abroad, which Sir
1643 John had been previously forming, were put into execution. The private
1644 balls at the park then began; and parties on the water were made and
1645 accomplished as often as a showery October would allow. In every
1646 meeting of the kind Willoughby was included; and the ease and
1647 familiarity which naturally attended these parties were exactly
1648 calculated to give increasing intimacy to his acquaintance with the
1649 Dashwoods, to afford him opportunity of witnessing the excellencies of
1650 Marianne, of marking his animated admiration of her, and of receiving,
1651 in her behaviour to himself, the most pointed assurance of her
1652 affection.
1653
1654 Elinor could not be surprised at their attachment. She only wished
1655 that it were less openly shewn; and once or twice did venture to
1656 suggest the propriety of some self-command to Marianne. But Marianne
1657 abhorred all concealment where no real disgrace could attend unreserve;
1658 and to aim at the restraint of sentiments which were not in themselves
1659 illaudable, appeared to her not merely an unnecessary effort, but a
1660 disgraceful subjection of reason to common-place and mistaken notions.
1661 Willoughby thought the same; and their behaviour at all times, was an
1662 illustration of their opinions.
1663
1664 When he was present she had no eyes for any one else. Every thing he
1665 did, was right. Every thing he said, was clever. If their evenings at
1666 the park were concluded with cards, he cheated himself and all the rest
1667 of the party to get her a good hand. If dancing formed the amusement
1668 of the night, they were partners for half the time; and when obliged to
1669 separate for a couple of dances, were careful to stand together and
1670 scarcely spoke a word to any body else. Such conduct made them of
1671 course most exceedingly laughed at; but ridicule could not shame, and
1672 seemed hardly to provoke them.
1673
1674 Mrs. Dashwood entered into all their feelings with a warmth which left
1675 her no inclination for checking this excessive display of them. To her
1676 it was but the natural consequence of a strong affection in a young and
1677 ardent mind.
1678
1679 This was the season of happiness to Marianne. Her heart was devoted to
1680 Willoughby, and the fond attachment to Norland, which she brought with
1681 her from Sussex, was more likely to be softened than she had thought it
1682 possible before, by the charms which his society bestowed on her
1683 present home.
1684
1685 Elinor's happiness was not so great. Her heart was not so much at
1686 ease, nor her satisfaction in their amusements so pure. They afforded
1687 her no companion that could make amends for what she had left behind,
1688 nor that could teach her to think of Norland with less regret than
1689 ever. Neither Lady Middleton nor Mrs. Jennings could supply to her the
1690 conversation she missed; although the latter was an everlasting talker,
1691 and from the first had regarded her with a kindness which ensured her a
1692 large share of her discourse. She had already repeated her own history
1693 to Elinor three or four times; and had Elinor's memory been equal to
1694 her means of improvement, she might have known very early in their
1695 acquaintance all the particulars of Mr. Jennings's last illness, and
1696 what he said to his wife a few minutes before he died. Lady Middleton
1697 was more agreeable than her mother only in being more silent. Elinor
1698 needed little observation to perceive that her reserve was a mere
1699 calmness of manner with which sense had nothing to do. Towards her
1700 husband and mother she was the same as to them; and intimacy was
1701 therefore neither to be looked for nor desired. She had nothing to say
1702 one day that she had not said the day before. Her insipidity was
1703 invariable, for even her spirits were always the same; and though she
1704 did not oppose the parties arranged by her husband, provided every
1705 thing were conducted in style and her two eldest children attended her,
1706 she never appeared to receive more enjoyment from them than she might
1707 have experienced in sitting at home;--and so little did her presence
1708 add to the pleasure of the others, by any share in their conversation,
1709 that they were sometimes only reminded of her being amongst them by her
1710 solicitude about her troublesome boys.
1711
1712 In Colonel Brandon alone, of all her new acquaintance, did Elinor find
1713 a person who could in any degree claim the respect of abilities, excite
1714 the interest of friendship, or give pleasure as a companion.
1715 Willoughby was out of the question. Her admiration and regard, even
1716 her sisterly regard, was all his own; but he was a lover; his
1717 attentions were wholly Marianne's, and a far less agreeable man might
1718 have been more generally pleasing. Colonel Brandon, unfortunately for
1719 himself, had no such encouragement to think only of Marianne, and in
1720 conversing with Elinor he found the greatest consolation for the
1721 indifference of her sister.
1722
1723 Elinor's compassion for him increased, as she had reason to suspect
1724 that the misery of disappointed love had already been known to him.
1725 This suspicion was given by some words which accidentally dropped from
1726 him one evening at the park, when they were sitting down together by
1727 mutual consent, while the others were dancing. His eyes were fixed on
1728 Marianne, and, after a silence of some minutes, he said, with a faint
1729 smile, "Your sister, I understand, does not approve of second
1730 attachments."
1731
1732 "No," replied Elinor, "her opinions are all romantic."
1733
1734 "Or rather, as I believe, she considers them impossible to exist."
1735
1736 "I believe she does. But how she contrives it without reflecting on
1737 the character of her own father, who had himself two wives, I know not.
1738 A few years however will settle her opinions on the reasonable basis of
1739 common sense and observation; and then they may be more easy to define
1740 and to justify than they now are, by any body but herself."
1741
1742 "This will probably be the case," he replied; "and yet there is
1743 something so amiable in the prejudices of a young mind, that one is
1744 sorry to see them give way to the reception of more general opinions."
1745
1746 "I cannot agree with you there," said Elinor. "There are
1747 inconveniences attending such feelings as Marianne's, which all the
1748 charms of enthusiasm and ignorance of the world cannot atone for. Her
1749 systems have all the unfortunate tendency of setting propriety at
1750 nought; and a better acquaintance with the world is what I look forward
1751 to as her greatest possible advantage."
1752
1753 After a short pause he resumed the conversation by saying,--
1754
1755 "Does your sister make no distinction in her objections against a
1756 second attachment? or is it equally criminal in every body? Are those
1757 who have been disappointed in their first choice, whether from the
1758 inconstancy of its object, or the perverseness of circumstances, to be
1759 equally indifferent during the rest of their lives?"
1760
1761 "Upon my word, I am not acquainted with the minutiae of her principles.
1762 I only know that I never yet heard her admit any instance of a second
1763 attachment's being pardonable."
1764
1765 "This," said he, "cannot hold; but a change, a total change of
1766 sentiments--No, no, do not desire it; for when the romantic refinements
1767 of a young mind are obliged to give way, how frequently are they
1768 succeeded by such opinions as are but too common, and too dangerous! I
1769 speak from experience. I once knew a lady who in temper and mind
1770 greatly resembled your sister, who thought and judged like her, but who
1771 from an inforced change--from a series of unfortunate circumstances"--
1772 Here he stopt suddenly; appeared to think that he had said too much,
1773 and by his countenance gave rise to conjectures, which might not
1774 otherwise have entered Elinor's head. The lady would probably have
1775 passed without suspicion, had he not convinced Miss Dashwood that what
1776 concerned her ought not to escape his lips. As it was, it required but
1777 a slight effort of fancy to connect his emotion with the tender
1778 recollection of past regard. Elinor attempted no more. But Marianne,
1779 in her place, would not have done so little. The whole story would
1780 have been speedily formed under her active imagination; and every thing
1781 established in the most melancholy order of disastrous love.
1782
1783
1784
1785 CHAPTER 12
1786
1787
1788 As Elinor and Marianne were walking together the next morning the
1789 latter communicated a piece of news to her sister, which in spite of
1790 all that she knew before of Marianne's imprudence and want of thought,
1791 surprised her by its extravagant testimony of both. Marianne told her,
1792 with the greatest delight, that Willoughby had given her a horse, one
1793 that he had bred himself on his estate in Somersetshire, and which was
1794 exactly calculated to carry a woman. Without considering that it was
1795 not in her mother's plan to keep any horse, that if she were to alter
1796 her resolution in favour of this gift, she must buy another for the
1797 servant, and keep a servant to ride it, and after all, build a stable
1798 to receive them, she had accepted the present without hesitation, and
1799 told her sister of it in raptures.
1800
1801 "He intends to send his groom into Somersetshire immediately for it,"
1802 she added, "and when it arrives we will ride every day. You shall
1803 share its use with me. Imagine to yourself, my dear Elinor, the
1804 delight of a gallop on some of these downs."
1805
1806 Most unwilling was she to awaken from such a dream of felicity to
1807 comprehend all the unhappy truths which attended the affair; and for
1808 some time she refused to submit to them. As to an additional servant,
1809 the expense would be a trifle; Mama she was sure would never object to
1810 it; and any horse would do for HIM; he might always get one at the
1811 park; as to a stable, the merest shed would be sufficient. Elinor then
1812 ventured to doubt the propriety of her receiving such a present from a
1813 man so little, or at least so lately known to her. This was too much.
1814
1815 "You are mistaken, Elinor," said she warmly, "in supposing I know very
1816 little of Willoughby. I have not known him long indeed, but I am much
1817 better acquainted with him, than I am with any other creature in the
1818 world, except yourself and mama. It is not time or opportunity that is
1819 to determine intimacy;--it is disposition alone. Seven years would be
1820 insufficient to make some people acquainted with each other, and seven
1821 days are more than enough for others. I should hold myself guilty of
1822 greater impropriety in accepting a horse from my brother, than from
1823 Willoughby. Of John I know very little, though we have lived together
1824 for years; but of Willoughby my judgment has long been formed."
1825
1826 Elinor thought it wisest to touch that point no more. She knew her
1827 sister's temper. Opposition on so tender a subject would only attach
1828 her the more to her own opinion. But by an appeal to her affection for
1829 her mother, by representing the inconveniences which that indulgent
1830 mother must draw on herself, if (as would probably be the case) she
1831 consented to this increase of establishment, Marianne was shortly
1832 subdued; and she promised not to tempt her mother to such imprudent
1833 kindness by mentioning the offer, and to tell Willoughby when she saw
1834 him next, that it must be declined.
1835
1836 She was faithful to her word; and when Willoughby called at the
1837 cottage, the same day, Elinor heard her express her disappointment to
1838 him in a low voice, on being obliged to forego the acceptance of his
1839 present. The reasons for this alteration were at the same time
1840 related, and they were such as to make further entreaty on his side
1841 impossible. His concern however was very apparent; and after
1842 expressing it with earnestness, he added, in the same low voice,--"But,
1843 Marianne, the horse is still yours, though you cannot use it now. I
1844 shall keep it only till you can claim it. When you leave Barton to
1845 form your own establishment in a more lasting home, Queen Mab shall
1846 receive you."
1847
1848 This was all overheard by Miss Dashwood; and in the whole of the
1849 sentence, in his manner of pronouncing it, and in his addressing her
1850 sister by her Christian name alone, she instantly saw an intimacy so
1851 decided, a meaning so direct, as marked a perfect agreement between
1852 them. From that moment she doubted not of their being engaged to each
1853 other; and the belief of it created no other surprise than that she, or
1854 any of their friends, should be left by tempers so frank, to discover
1855 it by accident.
1856
1857 Margaret related something to her the next day, which placed this
1858 matter in a still clearer light. Willoughby had spent the preceding
1859 evening with them, and Margaret, by being left some time in the parlour
1860 with only him and Marianne, had had opportunity for observations,
1861 which, with a most important face, she communicated to her eldest
1862 sister, when they were next by themselves.
1863
1864 "Oh, Elinor!" she cried, "I have such a secret to tell you about
1865 Marianne. I am sure she will be married to Mr. Willoughby very soon."
1866
1867 "You have said so," replied Elinor, "almost every day since they first
1868 met on High-church Down; and they had not known each other a week, I
1869 believe, before you were certain that Marianne wore his picture round
1870 her neck; but it turned out to be only the miniature of our great
1871 uncle."
1872
1873 "But indeed this is quite another thing. I am sure they will be
1874 married very soon, for he has got a lock of her hair."
1875
1876 "Take care, Margaret. It may be only the hair of some great uncle of
1877 HIS."
1878
1879 "But, indeed, Elinor, it is Marianne's. I am almost sure it is, for I
1880 saw him cut it off. Last night after tea, when you and mama went out
1881 of the room, they were whispering and talking together as fast as could
1882 be, and he seemed to be begging something of her, and presently he took
1883 up her scissors and cut off a long lock of her hair, for it was all
1884 tumbled down her back; and he kissed it, and folded it up in a piece of
1885 white paper; and put it into his pocket-book."
1886
1887 For such particulars, stated on such authority, Elinor could not
1888 withhold her credit; nor was she disposed to it, for the circumstance
1889 was in perfect unison with what she had heard and seen herself.
1890
1891 Margaret's sagacity was not always displayed in a way so satisfactory
1892 to her sister. When Mrs. Jennings attacked her one evening at the
1893 park, to give the name of the young man who was Elinor's particular
1894 favourite, which had been long a matter of great curiosity to her,
1895 Margaret answered by looking at her sister, and saying, "I must not
1896 tell, may I, Elinor?"
1897
1898 This of course made every body laugh; and Elinor tried to laugh too.
1899 But the effort was painful. She was convinced that Margaret had fixed
1900 on a person whose name she could not bear with composure to become a
1901 standing joke with Mrs. Jennings.
1902
1903 Marianne felt for her most sincerely; but she did more harm than good
1904 to the cause, by turning very red and saying in an angry manner to
1905 Margaret,
1906
1907 "Remember that whatever your conjectures may be, you have no right to
1908 repeat them."
1909
1910 "I never had any conjectures about it," replied Margaret; "it was you
1911 who told me of it yourself."
1912
1913 This increased the mirth of the company, and Margaret was eagerly
1914 pressed to say something more.
1915
1916 "Oh! pray, Miss Margaret, let us know all about it," said Mrs.
1917 Jennings. "What is the gentleman's name?"
1918
1919 "I must not tell, ma'am. But I know very well what it is; and I know
1920 where he is too."
1921
1922 "Yes, yes, we can guess where he is; at his own house at Norland to be
1923 sure. He is the curate of the parish I dare say."
1924
1925 "No, THAT he is not. He is of no profession at all."
1926
1927 "Margaret," said Marianne with great warmth, "you know that all this is
1928 an invention of your own, and that there is no such person in
1929 existence."
1930
1931 "Well, then, he is lately dead, Marianne, for I am sure there was such
1932 a man once, and his name begins with an F."
1933
1934 Most grateful did Elinor feel to Lady Middleton for observing, at this
1935 moment, "that it rained very hard," though she believed the
1936 interruption to proceed less from any attention to her, than from her
1937 ladyship's great dislike of all such inelegant subjects of raillery as
1938 delighted her husband and mother. The idea however started by her, was
1939 immediately pursued by Colonel Brandon, who was on every occasion
1940 mindful of the feelings of others; and much was said on the subject of
1941 rain by both of them. Willoughby opened the piano-forte, and asked
1942 Marianne to sit down to it; and thus amidst the various endeavours of
1943 different people to quit the topic, it fell to the ground. But not so
1944 easily did Elinor recover from the alarm into which it had thrown her.
1945
1946 A party was formed this evening for going on the following day to see a
1947 very fine place about twelve miles from Barton, belonging to a
1948 brother-in-law of Colonel Brandon, without whose interest it could not
1949 be seen, as the proprietor, who was then abroad, had left strict orders
1950 on that head. The grounds were declared to be highly beautiful, and
1951 Sir John, who was particularly warm in their praise, might be allowed
1952 to be a tolerable judge, for he had formed parties to visit them, at
1953 least, twice every summer for the last ten years. They contained a
1954 noble piece of water; a sail on which was to a form a great part of the
1955 morning's amusement; cold provisions were to be taken, open carriages
1956 only to be employed, and every thing conducted in the usual style of a
1957 complete party of pleasure.
1958
1959 To some few of the company it appeared rather a bold undertaking,
1960 considering the time of year, and that it had rained every day for the
1961 last fortnight;--and Mrs. Dashwood, who had already a cold, was
1962 persuaded by Elinor to stay at home.
1963
1964
1965
1966 CHAPTER 13
1967
1968
1969 Their intended excursion to Whitwell turned out very different from
1970 what Elinor had expected. She was prepared to be wet through,
1971 fatigued, and frightened; but the event was still more unfortunate, for
1972 they did not go at all.
1973
1974 By ten o'clock the whole party was assembled at the park, where they
1975 were to breakfast. The morning was rather favourable, though it had
1976 rained all night, as the clouds were then dispersing across the sky,
1977 and the sun frequently appeared. They were all in high spirits and
1978 good humour, eager to be happy, and determined to submit to the
1979 greatest inconveniences and hardships rather than be otherwise.
1980
1981 While they were at breakfast the letters were brought in. Among the
1982 rest there was one for Colonel Brandon;--he took it, looked at the
1983 direction, changed colour, and immediately left the room.
1984
1985 "What is the matter with Brandon?" said Sir John.
1986
1987 Nobody could tell.
1988
1989 "I hope he has had no bad news," said Lady Middleton. "It must be
1990 something extraordinary that could make Colonel Brandon leave my
1991 breakfast table so suddenly."
1992
1993 In about five minutes he returned.
1994
1995 "No bad news, Colonel, I hope;" said Mrs. Jennings, as soon as he
1996 entered the room.
1997
1998 "None at all, ma'am, I thank you."
1999
2000 "Was it from Avignon? I hope it is not to say that your sister is
2001 worse."
2002
2003 "No, ma'am. It came from town, and is merely a letter of business."
2004
2005 "But how came the hand to discompose you so much, if it was only a
2006 letter of business? Come, come, this won't do, Colonel; so let us hear
2007 the truth of it."
2008
2009 "My dear madam," said Lady Middleton, "recollect what you are saying."
2010
2011 "Perhaps it is to tell you that your cousin Fanny is married?" said
2012 Mrs. Jennings, without attending to her daughter's reproof.
2013
2014 "No, indeed, it is not."
2015
2016 "Well, then, I know who it is from, Colonel. And I hope she is well."
2017
2018 "Whom do you mean, ma'am?" said he, colouring a little.
2019
2020 "Oh! you know who I mean."
2021
2022 "I am particularly sorry, ma'am," said he, addressing Lady Middleton,
2023 "that I should receive this letter today, for it is on business which
2024 requires my immediate attendance in town."
2025
2026 "In town!" cried Mrs. Jennings. "What can you have to do in town at
2027 this time of year?"
2028
2029 "My own loss is great," he continued, "in being obliged to leave so
2030 agreeable a party; but I am the more concerned, as I fear my presence
2031 is necessary to gain your admittance at Whitwell."
2032
2033 What a blow upon them all was this!
2034
2035 "But if you write a note to the housekeeper, Mr. Brandon," said
2036 Marianne, eagerly, "will it not be sufficient?"
2037
2038 He shook his head.
2039
2040 "We must go," said Sir John.--"It shall not be put off when we are so
2041 near it. You cannot go to town till tomorrow, Brandon, that is all."
2042
2043 "I wish it could be so easily settled. But it is not in my power to
2044 delay my journey for one day!"
2045
2046 "If you would but let us know what your business is," said Mrs.
2047 Jennings, "we might see whether it could be put off or not."
2048
2049 "You would not be six hours later," said Willoughby, "if you were to
2050 defer your journey till our return."
2051
2052 "I cannot afford to lose ONE hour."--
2053
2054 Elinor then heard Willoughby say, in a low voice to Marianne, "There
2055 are some people who cannot bear a party of pleasure. Brandon is one of
2056 them. He was afraid of catching cold I dare say, and invented this
2057 trick for getting out of it. I would lay fifty guineas the letter was
2058 of his own writing."
2059
2060 "I have no doubt of it," replied Marianne.
2061
2062 "There is no persuading you to change your mind, Brandon, I know of
2063 old," said Sir John, "when once you are determined on anything. But,
2064 however, I hope you will think better of it. Consider, here are the
2065 two Miss Careys come over from Newton, the three Miss Dashwoods walked
2066 up from the cottage, and Mr. Willoughby got up two hours before his
2067 usual time, on purpose to go to Whitwell."
2068
2069 Colonel Brandon again repeated his sorrow at being the cause of
2070 disappointing the party; but at the same time declared it to be
2071 unavoidable.
2072
2073 "Well, then, when will you come back again?"
2074
2075 "I hope we shall see you at Barton," added her ladyship, "as soon as
2076 you can conveniently leave town; and we must put off the party to
2077 Whitwell till you return."
2078
2079 "You are very obliging. But it is so uncertain, when I may have it in
2080 my power to return, that I dare not engage for it at all."
2081
2082 "Oh! he must and shall come back," cried Sir John. "If he is not here
2083 by the end of the week, I shall go after him."
2084
2085 "Ay, so do, Sir John," cried Mrs. Jennings, "and then perhaps you may
2086 find out what his business is."
2087
2088 "I do not want to pry into other men's concerns. I suppose it is
2089 something he is ashamed of."
2090
2091 Colonel Brandon's horses were announced.
2092
2093 "You do not go to town on horseback, do you?" added Sir John.
2094
2095 "No. Only to Honiton. I shall then go post."
2096
2097 "Well, as you are resolved to go, I wish you a good journey. But you
2098 had better change your mind."
2099
2100 "I assure you it is not in my power."
2101
2102 He then took leave of the whole party.
2103
2104 "Is there no chance of my seeing you and your sisters in town this
2105 winter, Miss Dashwood?"
2106
2107 "I am afraid, none at all."
2108
2109 "Then I must bid you farewell for a longer time than I should wish to
2110 do."
2111
2112 To Marianne, he merely bowed and said nothing.
2113
2114 "Come Colonel," said Mrs. Jennings, "before you go, do let us know what
2115 you are going about."
2116
2117 He wished her a good morning, and, attended by Sir John, left the room.
2118
2119 The complaints and lamentations which politeness had hitherto
2120 restrained, now burst forth universally; and they all agreed again and
2121 again how provoking it was to be so disappointed.
2122
2123 "I can guess what his business is, however," said Mrs. Jennings
2124 exultingly.
2125
2126 "Can you, ma'am?" said almost every body.
2127
2128 "Yes; it is about Miss Williams, I am sure."
2129
2130 "And who is Miss Williams?" asked Marianne.
2131
2132 "What! do not you know who Miss Williams is? I am sure you must have
2133 heard of her before. She is a relation of the Colonel's, my dear; a
2134 very near relation. We will not say how near, for fear of shocking the
2135 young ladies." Then, lowering her voice a little, she said to Elinor,
2136 "She is his natural daughter."
2137
2138 "Indeed!"
2139
2140 "Oh, yes; and as like him as she can stare. I dare say the Colonel
2141 will leave her all his fortune."
2142
2143 When Sir John returned, he joined most heartily in the general regret
2144 on so unfortunate an event; concluding however by observing, that as
2145 they were all got together, they must do something by way of being
2146 happy; and after some consultation it was agreed, that although
2147 happiness could only be enjoyed at Whitwell, they might procure a
2148 tolerable composure of mind by driving about the country. The
2149 carriages were then ordered; Willoughby's was first, and Marianne never
2150 looked happier than when she got into it. He drove through the park
2151 very fast, and they were soon out of sight; and nothing more of them
2152 was seen till their return, which did not happen till after the return
2153 of all the rest. They both seemed delighted with their drive; but said
2154 only in general terms that they had kept in the lanes, while the others
2155 went on the downs.
2156
2157 It was settled that there should be a dance in the evening, and that
2158 every body should be extremely merry all day long. Some more of the
2159 Careys came to dinner, and they had the pleasure of sitting down nearly
2160 twenty to table, which Sir John observed with great contentment.
2161 Willoughby took his usual place between the two elder Miss Dashwoods.
2162 Mrs. Jennings sat on Elinor's right hand; and they had not been long
2163 seated, before she leant behind her and Willoughby, and said to
2164 Marianne, loud enough for them both to hear, "I have found you out in
2165 spite of all your tricks. I know where you spent the morning."
2166
2167 Marianne coloured, and replied very hastily, "Where, pray?"--
2168
2169 "Did not you know," said Willoughby, "that we had been out in my
2170 curricle?"
2171
2172 "Yes, yes, Mr. Impudence, I know that very well, and I was determined
2173 to find out WHERE you had been to.-- I hope you like your house, Miss
2174 Marianne. It is a very large one, I know; and when I come to see you,
2175 I hope you will have new-furnished it, for it wanted it very much when
2176 I was there six years ago."
2177
2178 Marianne turned away in great confusion. Mrs. Jennings laughed
2179 heartily; and Elinor found that in her resolution to know where they
2180 had been, she had actually made her own woman enquire of Mr.
2181 Willoughby's groom; and that she had by that method been informed that
2182 they had gone to Allenham, and spent a considerable time there in
2183 walking about the garden and going all over the house.
2184
2185 Elinor could hardly believe this to be true, as it seemed very unlikely
2186 that Willoughby should propose, or Marianne consent, to enter the house
2187 while Mrs. Smith was in it, with whom Marianne had not the smallest
2188 acquaintance.
2189
2190 As soon as they left the dining-room, Elinor enquired of her about it;
2191 and great was her surprise when she found that every circumstance
2192 related by Mrs. Jennings was perfectly true. Marianne was quite angry
2193 with her for doubting it.
2194
2195 "Why should you imagine, Elinor, that we did not go there, or that we
2196 did not see the house? Is not it what you have often wished to do
2197 yourself?"
2198
2199 "Yes, Marianne, but I would not go while Mrs. Smith was there, and with
2200 no other companion than Mr. Willoughby."
2201
2202 "Mr. Willoughby however is the only person who can have a right to shew
2203 that house; and as he went in an open carriage, it was impossible to
2204 have any other companion. I never spent a pleasanter morning in my
2205 life."
2206
2207 "I am afraid," replied Elinor, "that the pleasantness of an employment
2208 does not always evince its propriety."
2209
2210 "On the contrary, nothing can be a stronger proof of it, Elinor; for if
2211 there had been any real impropriety in what I did, I should have been
2212 sensible of it at the time, for we always know when we are acting
2213 wrong, and with such a conviction I could have had no pleasure."
2214
2215 "But, my dear Marianne, as it has already exposed you to some very
2216 impertinent remarks, do you not now begin to doubt the discretion of
2217 your own conduct?"
2218
2219 "If the impertinent remarks of Mrs. Jennings are to be the proof of
2220 impropriety in conduct, we are all offending every moment of our lives.
2221 I value not her censure any more than I should do her commendation. I
2222 am not sensible of having done anything wrong in walking over Mrs.
2223 Smith's grounds, or in seeing her house. They will one day be Mr.
2224 Willoughby's, and--"
2225
2226 "If they were one day to be your own, Marianne, you would not be
2227 justified in what you have done."
2228
2229 She blushed at this hint; but it was even visibly gratifying to her;
2230 and after a ten minutes' interval of earnest thought, she came to her
2231 sister again, and said with great good humour, "Perhaps, Elinor, it WAS
2232 rather ill-judged in me to go to Allenham; but Mr. Willoughby wanted
2233 particularly to shew me the place; and it is a charming house, I assure
2234 you.--There is one remarkably pretty sitting room up stairs; of a nice
2235 comfortable size for constant use, and with modern furniture it would
2236 be delightful. It is a corner room, and has windows on two sides. On
2237 one side you look across the bowling-green, behind the house, to a
2238 beautiful hanging wood, and on the other you have a view of the church
2239 and village, and, beyond them, of those fine bold hills that we have so
2240 often admired. I did not see it to advantage, for nothing could be
2241 more forlorn than the furniture,--but if it were newly fitted up--a
2242 couple of hundred pounds, Willoughby says, would make it one of the
2243 pleasantest summer-rooms in England."
2244
2245 Could Elinor have listened to her without interruption from the others,
2246 she would have described every room in the house with equal delight.
2247
2248
2249
2250 CHAPTER 14
2251
2252
2253 The sudden termination of Colonel Brandon's visit at the park, with his
2254 steadiness in concealing its cause, filled the mind, and raised the
2255 wonder of Mrs. Jennings for two or three days; she was a great
2256 wonderer, as every one must be who takes a very lively interest in all
2257 the comings and goings of all their acquaintance. She wondered, with
2258 little intermission what could be the reason of it; was sure there must
2259 be some bad news, and thought over every kind of distress that could
2260 have befallen him, with a fixed determination that he should not escape
2261 them all.
2262
2263 "Something very melancholy must be the matter, I am sure," said she.
2264 "I could see it in his face. Poor man! I am afraid his circumstances
2265 may be bad. The estate at Delaford was never reckoned more than two
2266 thousand a year, and his brother left everything sadly involved. I do
2267 think he must have been sent for about money matters, for what else can
2268 it be? I wonder whether it is so. I would give anything to know the
2269 truth of it. Perhaps it is about Miss Williams and, by the bye, I dare
2270 say it is, because he looked so conscious when I mentioned her. May be
2271 she is ill in town; nothing in the world more likely, for I have a
2272 notion she is always rather sickly. I would lay any wager it is about
2273 Miss Williams. It is not so very likely he should be distressed in his
2274 circumstances NOW, for he is a very prudent man, and to be sure must
2275 have cleared the estate by this time. I wonder what it can be! May be
2276 his sister is worse at Avignon, and has sent for him over. His setting
2277 off in such a hurry seems very like it. Well, I wish him out of all
2278 his trouble with all my heart, and a good wife into the bargain."
2279
2280 So wondered, so talked Mrs. Jennings. Her opinion varying with every
2281 fresh conjecture, and all seeming equally probable as they arose.
2282 Elinor, though she felt really interested in the welfare of Colonel
2283 Brandon, could not bestow all the wonder on his going so suddenly away,
2284 which Mrs. Jennings was desirous of her feeling; for besides that the
2285 circumstance did not in her opinion justify such lasting amazement or
2286 variety of speculation, her wonder was otherwise disposed of. It was
2287 engrossed by the extraordinary silence of her sister and Willoughby on
2288 the subject, which they must know to be peculiarly interesting to them
2289 all. As this silence continued, every day made it appear more strange
2290 and more incompatible with the disposition of both. Why they should
2291 not openly acknowledge to her mother and herself, what their constant
2292 behaviour to each other declared to have taken place, Elinor could not
2293 imagine.
2294
2295 She could easily conceive that marriage might not be immediately in
2296 their power; for though Willoughby was independent, there was no reason
2297 to believe him rich. His estate had been rated by Sir John at about
2298 six or seven hundred a year; but he lived at an expense to which that
2299 income could hardly be equal, and he had himself often complained of
2300 his poverty. But for this strange kind of secrecy maintained by them
2301 relative to their engagement, which in fact concealed nothing at all,
2302 she could not account; and it was so wholly contradictory to their
2303 general opinions and practice, that a doubt sometimes entered her mind
2304 of their being really engaged, and this doubt was enough to prevent her
2305 making any inquiry of Marianne.
2306
2307 Nothing could be more expressive of attachment to them all, than
2308 Willoughby's behaviour. To Marianne it had all the distinguishing
2309 tenderness which a lover's heart could give, and to the rest of the
2310 family it was the affectionate attention of a son and a brother. The
2311 cottage seemed to be considered and loved by him as his home; many more
2312 of his hours were spent there than at Allenham; and if no general
2313 engagement collected them at the park, the exercise which called him
2314 out in the morning was almost certain of ending there, where the rest
2315 of the day was spent by himself at the side of Marianne, and by his
2316 favourite pointer at her feet.
2317
2318 One evening in particular, about a week after Colonel Brandon left the
2319 country, his heart seemed more than usually open to every feeling of
2320 attachment to the objects around him; and on Mrs. Dashwood's happening
2321 to mention her design of improving the cottage in the spring, he warmly
2322 opposed every alteration of a place which affection had established as
2323 perfect with him.
2324
2325 "What!" he exclaimed--"Improve this dear cottage! No. THAT I will
2326 never consent to. Not a stone must be added to its walls, not an inch
2327 to its size, if my feelings are regarded."
2328
2329 "Do not be alarmed," said Miss Dashwood, "nothing of the kind will be
2330 done; for my mother will never have money enough to attempt it."
2331
2332 "I am heartily glad of it," he cried. "May she always be poor, if she
2333 can employ her riches no better."
2334
2335 "Thank you, Willoughby. But you may be assured that I would not
2336 sacrifice one sentiment of local attachment of yours, or of any one
2337 whom I loved, for all the improvements in the world. Depend upon it
2338 that whatever unemployed sum may remain, when I make up my accounts in
2339 the spring, I would even rather lay it uselessly by than dispose of it
2340 in a manner so painful to you. But are you really so attached to this
2341 place as to see no defect in it?"
2342
2343 "I am," said he. "To me it is faultless. Nay, more, I consider it as
2344 the only form of building in which happiness is attainable, and were I
2345 rich enough I would instantly pull Combe down, and build it up again in
2346 the exact plan of this cottage."
2347
2348 "With dark narrow stairs and a kitchen that smokes, I suppose," said
2349 Elinor.
2350
2351 "Yes," cried he in the same eager tone, "with all and every thing
2352 belonging to it;--in no one convenience or INconvenience about it,
2353 should the least variation be perceptible. Then, and then only, under
2354 such a roof, I might perhaps be as happy at Combe as I have been at
2355 Barton."
2356
2357 "I flatter myself," replied Elinor, "that even under the disadvantage
2358 of better rooms and a broader staircase, you will hereafter find your
2359 own house as faultless as you now do this."
2360
2361 "There certainly are circumstances," said Willoughby, "which might
2362 greatly endear it to me; but this place will always have one claim of
2363 my affection, which no other can possibly share."
2364
2365 Mrs. Dashwood looked with pleasure at Marianne, whose fine eyes were
2366 fixed so expressively on Willoughby, as plainly denoted how well she
2367 understood him.
2368
2369 "How often did I wish," added he, "when I was at Allenham this time
2370 twelvemonth, that Barton cottage were inhabited! I never passed within
2371 view of it without admiring its situation, and grieving that no one
2372 should live in it. How little did I then think that the very first
2373 news I should hear from Mrs. Smith, when I next came into the country,
2374 would be that Barton cottage was taken: and I felt an immediate
2375 satisfaction and interest in the event, which nothing but a kind of
2376 prescience of what happiness I should experience from it, can account
2377 for. Must it not have been so, Marianne?" speaking to her in a lowered
2378 voice. Then continuing his former tone, he said, "And yet this house
2379 you would spoil, Mrs. Dashwood? You would rob it of its simplicity by
2380 imaginary improvement! and this dear parlour in which our acquaintance
2381 first began, and in which so many happy hours have been since spent by
2382 us together, you would degrade to the condition of a common entrance,
2383 and every body would be eager to pass through the room which has
2384 hitherto contained within itself more real accommodation and comfort
2385 than any other apartment of the handsomest dimensions in the world
2386 could possibly afford."
2387
2388 Mrs. Dashwood again assured him that no alteration of the kind should
2389 be attempted.
2390
2391 "You are a good woman," he warmly replied. "Your promise makes me
2392 easy. Extend it a little farther, and it will make me happy. Tell me
2393 that not only your house will remain the same, but that I shall ever
2394 find you and yours as unchanged as your dwelling; and that you will
2395 always consider me with the kindness which has made everything
2396 belonging to you so dear to me."
2397
2398 The promise was readily given, and Willoughby's behaviour during the
2399 whole of the evening declared at once his affection and happiness.
2400
2401 "Shall we see you tomorrow to dinner?" said Mrs. Dashwood, when he was
2402 leaving them. "I do not ask you to come in the morning, for we must
2403 walk to the park, to call on Lady Middleton."
2404
2405 He engaged to be with them by four o'clock.
2406
2407
2408
2409 CHAPTER 15
2410
2411
2412 Mrs. Dashwood's visit to Lady Middleton took place the next day, and
2413 two of her daughters went with her; but Marianne excused herself from
2414 being of the party, under some trifling pretext of employment; and her
2415 mother, who concluded that a promise had been made by Willoughby the
2416 night before of calling on her while they were absent, was perfectly
2417 satisfied with her remaining at home.
2418
2419 On their return from the park they found Willoughby's curricle and
2420 servant in waiting at the cottage, and Mrs. Dashwood was convinced that
2421 her conjecture had been just. So far it was all as she had foreseen;
2422 but on entering the house she beheld what no foresight had taught her
2423 to expect. They were no sooner in the passage than Marianne came
2424 hastily out of the parlour apparently in violent affliction, with her
2425 handkerchief at her eyes; and without noticing them ran up stairs.
2426 Surprised and alarmed they proceeded directly into the room she had
2427 just quitted, where they found only Willoughby, who was leaning against
2428 the mantel-piece with his back towards them. He turned round on their
2429 coming in, and his countenance shewed that he strongly partook of the
2430 emotion which over-powered Marianne.
2431
2432 "Is anything the matter with her?" cried Mrs. Dashwood as she
2433 entered--"is she ill?"
2434
2435 "I hope not," he replied, trying to look cheerful; and with a forced
2436 smile presently added, "It is I who may rather expect to be ill--for I
2437 am now suffering under a very heavy disappointment!"
2438
2439 "Disappointment?"
2440
2441 "Yes, for I am unable to keep my engagement with you. Mrs. Smith has
2442 this morning exercised the privilege of riches upon a poor dependent
2443 cousin, by sending me on business to London. I have just received my
2444 dispatches, and taken my farewell of Allenham; and by way of
2445 exhilaration I am now come to take my farewell of you."
2446
2447 "To London!--and are you going this morning?"
2448
2449 "Almost this moment."
2450
2451 "This is very unfortunate. But Mrs. Smith must be obliged;--and her
2452 business will not detain you from us long I hope."
2453
2454 He coloured as he replied, "You are very kind, but I have no idea of
2455 returning into Devonshire immediately. My visits to Mrs. Smith are
2456 never repeated within the twelvemonth."
2457
2458 "And is Mrs. Smith your only friend? Is Allenham the only house in the
2459 neighbourhood to which you will be welcome? For shame, Willoughby, can
2460 you wait for an invitation here?"
2461
2462 His colour increased; and with his eyes fixed on the ground he only
2463 replied, "You are too good."
2464
2465 Mrs. Dashwood looked at Elinor with surprise. Elinor felt equal
2466 amazement. For a few moments every one was silent. Mrs. Dashwood
2467 first spoke.
2468
2469 "I have only to add, my dear Willoughby, that at Barton cottage you
2470 will always be welcome; for I will not press you to return here
2471 immediately, because you only can judge how far THAT might be pleasing
2472 to Mrs. Smith; and on this head I shall be no more disposed to question
2473 your judgment than to doubt your inclination."
2474
2475 "My engagements at present," replied Willoughby, confusedly, "are of
2476 such a nature--that--I dare not flatter myself"--
2477
2478 He stopt. Mrs. Dashwood was too much astonished to speak, and another
2479 pause succeeded. This was broken by Willoughby, who said with a faint
2480 smile, "It is folly to linger in this manner. I will not torment
2481 myself any longer by remaining among friends whose society it is
2482 impossible for me now to enjoy."
2483
2484 He then hastily took leave of them all and left the room. They saw him
2485 step into his carriage, and in a minute it was out of sight.
2486
2487 Mrs. Dashwood felt too much for speech, and instantly quitted the
2488 parlour to give way in solitude to the concern and alarm which this
2489 sudden departure occasioned.
2490
2491 Elinor's uneasiness was at least equal to her mother's. She thought of
2492 what had just passed with anxiety and distrust. Willoughby's behaviour
2493 in taking leave of them, his embarrassment, and affectation of
2494 cheerfulness, and, above all, his unwillingness to accept her mother's
2495 invitation, a backwardness so unlike a lover, so unlike himself,
2496 greatly disturbed her. One moment she feared that no serious design
2497 had ever been formed on his side; and the next that some unfortunate
2498 quarrel had taken place between him and her sister;--the distress in
2499 which Marianne had quitted the room was such as a serious quarrel could
2500 most reasonably account for, though when she considered what Marianne's
2501 love for him was, a quarrel seemed almost impossible.
2502
2503 But whatever might be the particulars of their separation, her sister's
2504 affliction was indubitable; and she thought with the tenderest
2505 compassion of that violent sorrow which Marianne was in all probability
2506 not merely giving way to as a relief, but feeding and encouraging as a
2507 duty.
2508
2509 In about half an hour her mother returned, and though her eyes were
2510 red, her countenance was not uncheerful.
2511
2512 "Our dear Willoughby is now some miles from Barton, Elinor," said she,
2513 as she sat down to work, "and with how heavy a heart does he travel?"
2514
2515 "It is all very strange. So suddenly to be gone! It seems but the work
2516 of a moment. And last night he was with us so happy, so cheerful, so
2517 affectionate? And now, after only ten minutes notice--Gone too without
2518 intending to return!--Something more than what he owned to us must have
2519 happened. He did not speak, he did not behave like himself. YOU must
2520 have seen the difference as well as I. What can it be? Can they have
2521 quarrelled? Why else should he have shewn such unwillingness to accept
2522 your invitation here?"--
2523
2524 "It was not inclination that he wanted, Elinor; I could plainly see
2525 THAT. He had not the power of accepting it. I have thought it all
2526 over I assure you, and I can perfectly account for every thing that at
2527 first seemed strange to me as well as to you."
2528
2529 "Can you, indeed!"
2530
2531 "Yes. I have explained it to myself in the most satisfactory way;--but
2532 you, Elinor, who love to doubt where you can--it will not satisfy YOU,
2533 I know; but you shall not talk ME out of my trust in it. I am
2534 persuaded that Mrs. Smith suspects his regard for Marianne, disapproves
2535 of it, (perhaps because she has other views for him,) and on that
2536 account is eager to get him away;--and that the business which she
2537 sends him off to transact is invented as an excuse to dismiss him.
2538 This is what I believe to have happened. He is, moreover, aware that
2539 she DOES disapprove the connection, he dares not therefore at present
2540 confess to her his engagement with Marianne, and he feels himself
2541 obliged, from his dependent situation, to give into her schemes, and
2542 absent himself from Devonshire for a while. You will tell me, I know,
2543 that this may or may NOT have happened; but I will listen to no cavil,
2544 unless you can point out any other method of understanding the affair
2545 as satisfactory at this. And now, Elinor, what have you to say?"
2546
2547 "Nothing, for you have anticipated my answer."
2548
2549 "Then you would have told me, that it might or might not have happened.
2550 Oh, Elinor, how incomprehensible are your feelings! You had rather
2551 take evil upon credit than good. You had rather look out for misery
2552 for Marianne, and guilt for poor Willoughby, than an apology for the
2553 latter. You are resolved to think him blameable, because he took leave
2554 of us with less affection than his usual behaviour has shewn. And is
2555 no allowance to be made for inadvertence, or for spirits depressed by
2556 recent disappointment? Are no probabilities to be accepted, merely
2557 because they are not certainties? Is nothing due to the man whom we
2558 have all such reason to love, and no reason in the world to think ill
2559 of? To the possibility of motives unanswerable in themselves, though
2560 unavoidably secret for a while? And, after all, what is it you suspect
2561 him of?"
2562
2563 "I can hardly tell myself. But suspicion of something unpleasant is
2564 the inevitable consequence of such an alteration as we just witnessed
2565 in him. There is great truth, however, in what you have now urged of
2566 the allowances which ought to be made for him, and it is my wish to be
2567 candid in my judgment of every body. Willoughby may undoubtedly have
2568 very sufficient reasons for his conduct, and I will hope that he has.
2569 But it would have been more like Willoughby to acknowledge them at
2570 once. Secrecy may be advisable; but still I cannot help wondering at
2571 its being practiced by him."
2572
2573 "Do not blame him, however, for departing from his character, where the
2574 deviation is necessary. But you really do admit the justice of what I
2575 have said in his defence?--I am happy--and he is acquitted."
2576
2577 "Not entirely. It may be proper to conceal their engagement (if they
2578 ARE engaged) from Mrs. Smith--and if that is the case, it must be
2579 highly expedient for Willoughby to be but little in Devonshire at
2580 present. But this is no excuse for their concealing it from us."
2581
2582 "Concealing it from us! my dear child, do you accuse Willoughby and
2583 Marianne of concealment? This is strange indeed, when your eyes have
2584 been reproaching them every day for incautiousness."
2585
2586 "I want no proof of their affection," said Elinor; "but of their
2587 engagement I do."
2588
2589 "I am perfectly satisfied of both."
2590
2591 "Yet not a syllable has been said to you on the subject, by either of
2592 them."
2593
2594 "I have not wanted syllables where actions have spoken so plainly. Has
2595 not his behaviour to Marianne and to all of us, for at least the last
2596 fortnight, declared that he loved and considered her as his future
2597 wife, and that he felt for us the attachment of the nearest relation?
2598 Have we not perfectly understood each other? Has not my consent been
2599 daily asked by his looks, his manner, his attentive and affectionate
2600 respect? My Elinor, is it possible to doubt their engagement? How
2601 could such a thought occur to you? How is it to be supposed that
2602 Willoughby, persuaded as he must be of your sister's love, should leave
2603 her, and leave her perhaps for months, without telling her of his
2604 affection;--that they should part without a mutual exchange of
2605 confidence?"
2606
2607 "I confess," replied Elinor, "that every circumstance except ONE is in
2608 favour of their engagement; but that ONE is the total silence of both
2609 on the subject, and with me it almost outweighs every other."
2610
2611 "How strange this is! You must think wretchedly indeed of Willoughby,
2612 if, after all that has openly passed between them, you can doubt the
2613 nature of the terms on which they are together. Has he been acting a
2614 part in his behaviour to your sister all this time? Do you suppose him
2615 really indifferent to her?"
2616
2617 "No, I cannot think that. He must and does love her I am sure."
2618
2619 "But with a strange kind of tenderness, if he can leave her with such
2620 indifference, such carelessness of the future, as you attribute to him."
2621
2622 "You must remember, my dear mother, that I have never considered this
2623 matter as certain. I have had my doubts, I confess; but they are
2624 fainter than they were, and they may soon be entirely done away. If we
2625 find they correspond, every fear of mine will be removed."
2626
2627 "A mighty concession indeed! If you were to see them at the altar, you
2628 would suppose they were going to be married. Ungracious girl! But I
2629 require no such proof. Nothing in my opinion has ever passed to
2630 justify doubt; no secrecy has been attempted; all has been uniformly
2631 open and unreserved. You cannot doubt your sister's wishes. It must
2632 be Willoughby therefore whom you suspect. But why? Is he not a man of
2633 honour and feeling? Has there been any inconsistency on his side to
2634 create alarm? can he be deceitful?"
2635
2636 "I hope not, I believe not," cried Elinor. "I love Willoughby,
2637 sincerely love him; and suspicion of his integrity cannot be more
2638 painful to yourself than to me. It has been involuntary, and I will
2639 not encourage it. I was startled, I confess, by the alteration in his
2640 manners this morning;--he did not speak like himself, and did not
2641 return your kindness with any cordiality. But all this may be
2642 explained by such a situation of his affairs as you have supposed. He
2643 had just parted from my sister, had seen her leave him in the greatest
2644 affliction; and if he felt obliged, from a fear of offending Mrs.
2645 Smith, to resist the temptation of returning here soon, and yet aware
2646 that by declining your invitation, by saying that he was going away for
2647 some time, he should seem to act an ungenerous, a suspicious part by
2648 our family, he might well be embarrassed and disturbed. In such a
2649 case, a plain and open avowal of his difficulties would have been more
2650 to his honour I think, as well as more consistent with his general
2651 character;--but I will not raise objections against any one's conduct
2652 on so illiberal a foundation, as a difference in judgment from myself,
2653 or a deviation from what I may think right and consistent."
2654
2655 "You speak very properly. Willoughby certainly does not deserve to be
2656 suspected. Though WE have not known him long, he is no stranger in
2657 this part of the world; and who has ever spoken to his disadvantage?
2658 Had he been in a situation to act independently and marry immediately,
2659 it might have been odd that he should leave us without acknowledging
2660 everything to me at once: but this is not the case. It is an
2661 engagement in some respects not prosperously begun, for their marriage
2662 must be at a very uncertain distance; and even secrecy, as far as it
2663 can be observed, may now be very advisable."
2664
2665 They were interrupted by the entrance of Margaret; and Elinor was then
2666 at liberty to think over the representations of her mother, to
2667 acknowledge the probability of many, and hope for the justice of all.
2668
2669 They saw nothing of Marianne till dinner time, when she entered the
2670 room and took her place at the table without saying a word. Her eyes
2671 were red and swollen; and it seemed as if her tears were even then
2672 restrained with difficulty. She avoided the looks of them all, could
2673 neither eat nor speak, and after some time, on her mother's silently
2674 pressing her hand with tender compassion, her small degree of fortitude
2675 was quite overcome, she burst into tears and left the room.
2676
2677 This violent oppression of spirits continued the whole evening. She
2678 was without any power, because she was without any desire of command
2679 over herself. The slightest mention of anything relative to Willoughby
2680 overpowered her in an instant; and though her family were most
2681 anxiously attentive to her comfort, it was impossible for them, if they
2682 spoke at all, to keep clear of every subject which her feelings
2683 connected with him.
2684
2685
2686
2687 CHAPTER 16
2688
2689
2690 Marianne would have thought herself very inexcusable had she been able
2691 to sleep at all the first night after parting from Willoughby. She
2692 would have been ashamed to look her family in the face the next
2693 morning, had she not risen from her bed in more need of repose than
2694 when she lay down in it. But the feelings which made such composure a
2695 disgrace, left her in no danger of incurring it. She was awake the
2696 whole night, and she wept the greatest part of it. She got up with a
2697 headache, was unable to talk, and unwilling to take any nourishment;
2698 giving pain every moment to her mother and sisters, and forbidding all
2699 attempt at consolation from either. Her sensibility was potent enough!
2700
2701 When breakfast was over she walked out by herself, and wandered about
2702 the village of Allenham, indulging the recollection of past enjoyment
2703 and crying over the present reverse for the chief of the morning.
2704
2705 The evening passed off in the equal indulgence of feeling. She played
2706 over every favourite song that she had been used to play to Willoughby,
2707 every air in which their voices had been oftenest joined, and sat at
2708 the instrument gazing on every line of music that he had written out
2709 for her, till her heart was so heavy that no farther sadness could be
2710 gained; and this nourishment of grief was every day applied. She spent
2711 whole hours at the pianoforte alternately singing and crying; her voice
2712 often totally suspended by her tears. In books too, as well as in
2713 music, she courted the misery which a contrast between the past and
2714 present was certain of giving. She read nothing but what they had been
2715 used to read together.
2716
2717 Such violence of affliction indeed could not be supported for ever; it
2718 sunk within a few days into a calmer melancholy; but these employments,
2719 to which she daily recurred, her solitary walks and silent meditations,
2720 still produced occasional effusions of sorrow as lively as ever.
2721
2722 No letter from Willoughby came; and none seemed expected by Marianne.
2723 Her mother was surprised, and Elinor again became uneasy. But Mrs.
2724 Dashwood could find explanations whenever she wanted them, which at
2725 least satisfied herself.
2726
2727 "Remember, Elinor," said she, "how very often Sir John fetches our
2728 letters himself from the post, and carries them to it. We have already
2729 agreed that secrecy may be necessary, and we must acknowledge that it
2730 could not be maintained if their correspondence were to pass through
2731 Sir John's hands."
2732
2733 Elinor could not deny the truth of this, and she tried to find in it a
2734 motive sufficient for their silence. But there was one method so
2735 direct, so simple, and in her opinion so eligible of knowing the real
2736 state of the affair, and of instantly removing all mystery, that she
2737 could not help suggesting it to her mother.
2738
2739 "Why do you not ask Marianne at once," said she, "whether she is or she
2740 is not engaged to Willoughby? From you, her mother, and so kind, so
2741 indulgent a mother, the question could not give offence. It would be
2742 the natural result of your affection for her. She used to be all
2743 unreserve, and to you more especially."
2744
2745 "I would not ask such a question for the world. Supposing it possible
2746 that they are not engaged, what distress would not such an enquiry
2747 inflict! At any rate it would be most ungenerous. I should never
2748 deserve her confidence again, after forcing from her a confession of
2749 what is meant at present to be unacknowledged to any one. I know
2750 Marianne's heart: I know that she dearly loves me, and that I shall not
2751 be the last to whom the affair is made known, when circumstances make
2752 the revealment of it eligible. I would not attempt to force the
2753 confidence of any one; of a child much less; because a sense of duty
2754 would prevent the denial which her wishes might direct."
2755
2756 Elinor thought this generosity overstrained, considering her sister's
2757 youth, and urged the matter farther, but in vain; common sense, common
2758 care, common prudence, were all sunk in Mrs. Dashwood's romantic
2759 delicacy.
2760
2761 It was several days before Willoughby's name was mentioned before
2762 Marianne by any of her family; Sir John and Mrs. Jennings, indeed, were
2763 not so nice; their witticisms added pain to many a painful hour;--but
2764 one evening, Mrs. Dashwood, accidentally taking up a volume of
2765 Shakespeare, exclaimed,
2766
2767 "We have never finished Hamlet, Marianne; our dear Willoughby went away
2768 before we could get through it. We will put it by, that when he comes
2769 again...But it may be months, perhaps, before THAT happens."
2770
2771 "Months!" cried Marianne, with strong surprise. "No--nor many weeks."
2772
2773 Mrs. Dashwood was sorry for what she had said; but it gave Elinor
2774 pleasure, as it produced a reply from Marianne so expressive of
2775 confidence in Willoughby and knowledge of his intentions.
2776
2777 One morning, about a week after his leaving the country, Marianne was
2778 prevailed on to join her sisters in their usual walk, instead of
2779 wandering away by herself. Hitherto she had carefully avoided every
2780 companion in her rambles. If her sisters intended to walk on the
2781 downs, she directly stole away towards the lanes; if they talked of the
2782 valley, she was as speedy in climbing the hills, and could never be
2783 found when the others set off. But at length she was secured by the
2784 exertions of Elinor, who greatly disapproved such continual seclusion.
2785 They walked along the road through the valley, and chiefly in silence,
2786 for Marianne's MIND could not be controlled, and Elinor, satisfied with
2787 gaining one point, would not then attempt more. Beyond the entrance of
2788 the valley, where the country, though still rich, was less wild and
2789 more open, a long stretch of the road which they had travelled on first
2790 coming to Barton, lay before them; and on reaching that point, they
2791 stopped to look around them, and examine a prospect which formed the
2792 distance of their view from the cottage, from a spot which they had
2793 never happened to reach in any of their walks before.
2794
2795 Amongst the objects in the scene, they soon discovered an animated one;
2796 it was a man on horseback riding towards them. In a few minutes they
2797 could distinguish him to be a gentleman; and in a moment afterwards
2798 Marianne rapturously exclaimed,
2799
2800 "It is he; it is indeed;--I know it is!"--and was hastening to meet
2801 him, when Elinor cried out,
2802
2803 "Indeed, Marianne, I think you are mistaken. It is not Willoughby.
2804 The person is not tall enough for him, and has not his air."
2805
2806 "He has, he has," cried Marianne, "I am sure he has. His air, his
2807 coat, his horse. I knew how soon he would come."
2808
2809 She walked eagerly on as she spoke; and Elinor, to screen Marianne from
2810 particularity, as she felt almost certain of its not being Willoughby,
2811 quickened her pace and kept up with her. They were soon within thirty
2812 yards of the gentleman. Marianne looked again; her heart sunk within
2813 her; and abruptly turning round, she was hurrying back, when the voices
2814 of both her sisters were raised to detain her; a third, almost as well
2815 known as Willoughby's, joined them in begging her to stop, and she
2816 turned round with surprise to see and welcome Edward Ferrars.
2817
2818 He was the only person in the world who could at that moment be
2819 forgiven for not being Willoughby; the only one who could have gained a
2820 smile from her; but she dispersed her tears to smile on HIM, and in her
2821 sister's happiness forgot for a time her own disappointment.
2822
2823 He dismounted, and giving his horse to his servant, walked back with
2824 them to Barton, whither he was purposely coming to visit them.
2825
2826 He was welcomed by them all with great cordiality, but especially by
2827 Marianne, who showed more warmth of regard in her reception of him than
2828 even Elinor herself. To Marianne, indeed, the meeting between Edward
2829 and her sister was but a continuation of that unaccountable coldness
2830 which she had often observed at Norland in their mutual behaviour. On
2831 Edward's side, more particularly, there was a deficiency of all that a
2832 lover ought to look and say on such an occasion. He was confused,
2833 seemed scarcely sensible of pleasure in seeing them, looked neither
2834 rapturous nor gay, said little but what was forced from him by
2835 questions, and distinguished Elinor by no mark of affection. Marianne
2836 saw and listened with increasing surprise. She began almost to feel a
2837 dislike of Edward; and it ended, as every feeling must end with her, by
2838 carrying back her thoughts to Willoughby, whose manners formed a
2839 contrast sufficiently striking to those of his brother elect.
2840
2841 After a short silence which succeeded the first surprise and enquiries
2842 of meeting, Marianne asked Edward if he came directly from London. No,
2843 he had been in Devonshire a fortnight.
2844
2845 "A fortnight!" she repeated, surprised at his being so long in the same
2846 county with Elinor without seeing her before.
2847
2848 He looked rather distressed as he added, that he had been staying with
2849 some friends near Plymouth.
2850
2851 "Have you been lately in Sussex?" said Elinor.
2852
2853 "I was at Norland about a month ago."
2854
2855 "And how does dear, dear Norland look?" cried Marianne.
2856
2857 "Dear, dear Norland," said Elinor, "probably looks much as it always
2858 does at this time of the year. The woods and walks thickly covered
2859 with dead leaves."
2860
2861 "Oh," cried Marianne, "with what transporting sensation have I formerly
2862 seen them fall! How have I delighted, as I walked, to see them driven
2863 in showers about me by the wind! What feelings have they, the season,
2864 the air altogether inspired! Now there is no one to regard them. They
2865 are seen only as a nuisance, swept hastily off, and driven as much as
2866 possible from the sight."
2867
2868 "It is not every one," said Elinor, "who has your passion for dead
2869 leaves."
2870
2871 "No; my feelings are not often shared, not often understood. But
2872 SOMETIMES they are."--As she said this, she sunk into a reverie for a
2873 few moments;--but rousing herself again, "Now, Edward," said she,
2874 calling his attention to the prospect, "here is Barton valley. Look up
2875 to it, and be tranquil if you can. Look at those hills! Did you ever
2876 see their equals? To the left is Barton park, amongst those woods and
2877 plantations. You may see the end of the house. And there, beneath
2878 that farthest hill, which rises with such grandeur, is our cottage."
2879
2880 "It is a beautiful country," he replied; "but these bottoms must be
2881 dirty in winter."
2882
2883 "How can you think of dirt, with such objects before you?"
2884
2885 "Because," replied he, smiling, "among the rest of the objects before
2886 me, I see a very dirty lane."
2887
2888 "How strange!" said Marianne to herself as she walked on.
2889
2890 "Have you an agreeable neighbourhood here? Are the Middletons pleasant
2891 people?"
2892
2893 "No, not all," answered Marianne; "we could not be more unfortunately
2894 situated."
2895
2896 "Marianne," cried her sister, "how can you say so? How can you be so
2897 unjust? They are a very respectable family, Mr. Ferrars; and towards
2898 us have behaved in the friendliest manner. Have you forgot, Marianne,
2899 how many pleasant days we have owed to them?"
2900
2901 "No," said Marianne, in a low voice, "nor how many painful moments."
2902
2903 Elinor took no notice of this; and directing her attention to their
2904 visitor, endeavoured to support something like discourse with him, by
2905 talking of their present residence, its conveniences, &c. extorting
2906 from him occasional questions and remarks. His coldness and reserve
2907 mortified her severely; she was vexed and half angry; but resolving to
2908 regulate her behaviour to him by the past rather than the present, she
2909 avoided every appearance of resentment or displeasure, and treated him
2910 as she thought he ought to be treated from the family connection.
2911
2912
2913
2914 CHAPTER 17
2915
2916
2917 Mrs. Dashwood was surprised only for a moment at seeing him; for his
2918 coming to Barton was, in her opinion, of all things the most natural.
2919 Her joy and expression of regard long outlived her wonder. He received
2920 the kindest welcome from her; and shyness, coldness, reserve could not
2921 stand against such a reception. They had begun to fail him before he
2922 entered the house, and they were quite overcome by the captivating
2923 manners of Mrs. Dashwood. Indeed a man could not very well be in love
2924 with either of her daughters, without extending the passion to her; and
2925 Elinor had the satisfaction of seeing him soon become more like
2926 himself. His affections seemed to reanimate towards them all, and his
2927 interest in their welfare again became perceptible. He was not in
2928 spirits, however; he praised their house, admired its prospect, was
2929 attentive, and kind; but still he was not in spirits. The whole family
2930 perceived it, and Mrs. Dashwood, attributing it to some want of
2931 liberality in his mother, sat down to table indignant against all
2932 selfish parents.
2933
2934 "What are Mrs. Ferrars's views for you at present, Edward?" said she,
2935 when dinner was over and they had drawn round the fire; "are you still
2936 to be a great orator in spite of yourself?"
2937
2938 "No. I hope my mother is now convinced that I have no more talents than
2939 inclination for a public life!"
2940
2941 "But how is your fame to be established? for famous you must be to
2942 satisfy all your family; and with no inclination for expense, no
2943 affection for strangers, no profession, and no assurance, you may find
2944 it a difficult matter."
2945
2946 "I shall not attempt it. I have no wish to be distinguished; and have
2947 every reason to hope I never shall. Thank Heaven! I cannot be forced
2948 into genius and eloquence."
2949
2950 "You have no ambition, I well know. Your wishes are all moderate."
2951
2952 "As moderate as those of the rest of the world, I believe. I wish as
2953 well as every body else to be perfectly happy; but, like every body
2954 else it must be in my own way. Greatness will not make me so."
2955
2956 "Strange that it would!" cried Marianne. "What have wealth or grandeur
2957 to do with happiness?"
2958
2959 "Grandeur has but little," said Elinor, "but wealth has much to do with
2960 it."
2961
2962 "Elinor, for shame!" said Marianne, "money can only give happiness
2963 where there is nothing else to give it. Beyond a competence, it can
2964 afford no real satisfaction, as far as mere self is concerned."
2965
2966 "Perhaps," said Elinor, smiling, "we may come to the same point. YOUR
2967 competence and MY wealth are very much alike, I dare say; and without
2968 them, as the world goes now, we shall both agree that every kind of
2969 external comfort must be wanting. Your ideas are only more noble than
2970 mine. Come, what is your competence?"
2971
2972 "About eighteen hundred or two thousand a year; not more than THAT."
2973
2974 Elinor laughed. "TWO thousand a year! ONE is my wealth! I guessed how
2975 it would end."
2976
2977 "And yet two thousand a-year is a very moderate income," said Marianne.
2978 "A family cannot well be maintained on a smaller. I am sure I am not
2979 extravagant in my demands. A proper establishment of servants, a
2980 carriage, perhaps two, and hunters, cannot be supported on less."
2981
2982 Elinor smiled again, to hear her sister describing so accurately their
2983 future expenses at Combe Magna.
2984
2985 "Hunters!" repeated Edward--"but why must you have hunters? Every body
2986 does not hunt."
2987
2988 Marianne coloured as she replied, "But most people do."
2989
2990 "I wish," said Margaret, striking out a novel thought, "that somebody
2991 would give us all a large fortune apiece!"
2992
2993 "Oh that they would!" cried Marianne, her eyes sparkling with
2994 animation, and her cheeks glowing with the delight of such imaginary
2995 happiness.
2996
2997 "We are all unanimous in that wish, I suppose," said Elinor, "in spite
2998 of the insufficiency of wealth."
2999
3000 "Oh dear!" cried Margaret, "how happy I should be! I wonder what I
3001 should do with it!"
3002
3003 Marianne looked as if she had no doubt on that point.
3004
3005 "I should be puzzled to spend so large a fortune myself," said Mrs.
3006 Dashwood, "if my children were all to be rich without my help."
3007
3008 "You must begin your improvements on this house," observed Elinor, "and
3009 your difficulties will soon vanish."
3010
3011 "What magnificent orders would travel from this family to London," said
3012 Edward, "in such an event! What a happy day for booksellers,
3013 music-sellers, and print-shops! You, Miss Dashwood, would give a
3014 general commission for every new print of merit to be sent you--and as
3015 for Marianne, I know her greatness of soul, there would not be music
3016 enough in London to content her. And books!--Thomson, Cowper,
3017 Scott--she would buy them all over and over again: she would buy up
3018 every copy, I believe, to prevent their falling into unworthy hands;
3019 and she would have every book that tells her how to admire an old
3020 twisted tree. Should not you, Marianne? Forgive me, if I am very
3021 saucy. But I was willing to shew you that I had not forgot our old
3022 disputes."
3023
3024 "I love to be reminded of the past, Edward--whether it be melancholy or
3025 gay, I love to recall it--and you will never offend me by talking of
3026 former times. You are very right in supposing how my money would be
3027 spent--some of it, at least--my loose cash would certainly be employed
3028 in improving my collection of music and books."
3029
3030 "And the bulk of your fortune would be laid out in annuities on the
3031 authors or their heirs."
3032
3033 "No, Edward, I should have something else to do with it."
3034
3035 "Perhaps, then, you would bestow it as a reward on that person who
3036 wrote the ablest defence of your favourite maxim, that no one can ever
3037 be in love more than once in their life--your opinion on that point is
3038 unchanged, I presume?"
3039
3040 "Undoubtedly. At my time of life opinions are tolerably fixed. It is
3041 not likely that I should now see or hear any thing to change them."
3042
3043 "Marianne is as steadfast as ever, you see," said Elinor, "she is not
3044 at all altered."
3045
3046 "She is only grown a little more grave than she was."
3047
3048 "Nay, Edward," said Marianne, "you need not reproach me. You are not
3049 very gay yourself."
3050
3051 "Why should you think so!" replied he, with a sigh. "But gaiety never
3052 was a part of MY character."
3053
3054 "Nor do I think it a part of Marianne's," said Elinor; "I should hardly
3055 call her a lively girl--she is very earnest, very eager in all she
3056 does--sometimes talks a great deal and always with animation--but she
3057 is not often really merry."
3058
3059 "I believe you are right," he replied, "and yet I have always set her
3060 down as a lively girl."
3061
3062 "I have frequently detected myself in such kind of mistakes," said
3063 Elinor, "in a total misapprehension of character in some point or
3064 other: fancying people so much more gay or grave, or ingenious or
3065 stupid than they really are, and I can hardly tell why or in what the
3066 deception originated. Sometimes one is guided by what they say of
3067 themselves, and very frequently by what other people say of them,
3068 without giving oneself time to deliberate and judge."
3069
3070 "But I thought it was right, Elinor," said Marianne, "to be guided
3071 wholly by the opinion of other people. I thought our judgments were
3072 given us merely to be subservient to those of neighbours. This has
3073 always been your doctrine, I am sure."
3074
3075 "No, Marianne, never. My doctrine has never aimed at the subjection of
3076 the understanding. All I have ever attempted to influence has been the
3077 behaviour. You must not confound my meaning. I am guilty, I confess,
3078 of having often wished you to treat our acquaintance in general with
3079 greater attention; but when have I advised you to adopt their
3080 sentiments or to conform to their judgment in serious matters?"
3081
3082 "You have not been able to bring your sister over to your plan of
3083 general civility," said Edward to Elinor. "Do you gain no ground?"
3084
3085 "Quite the contrary," replied Elinor, looking expressively at Marianne.
3086
3087 "My judgment," he returned, "is all on your side of the question; but I
3088 am afraid my practice is much more on your sister's. I never wish to
3089 offend, but I am so foolishly shy, that I often seem negligent, when I
3090 am only kept back by my natural awkwardness. I have frequently thought
3091 that I must have been intended by nature to be fond of low company, I
3092 am so little at my ease among strangers of gentility!"
3093
3094 "Marianne has not shyness to excuse any inattention of hers," said
3095 Elinor.
3096
3097 "She knows her own worth too well for false shame," replied Edward.
3098 "Shyness is only the effect of a sense of inferiority in some way or
3099 other. If I could persuade myself that my manners were perfectly easy
3100 and graceful, I should not be shy."
3101
3102 "But you would still be reserved," said Marianne, "and that is worse."
3103
3104 Edward started--"Reserved! Am I reserved, Marianne?"
3105
3106 "Yes, very."
3107
3108 "I do not understand you," replied he, colouring. "Reserved!--how, in
3109 what manner? What am I to tell you? What can you suppose?"
3110
3111 Elinor looked surprised at his emotion; but trying to laugh off the
3112 subject, she said to him, "Do not you know my sister well enough to
3113 understand what she means? Do not you know she calls every one
3114 reserved who does not talk as fast, and admire what she admires as
3115 rapturously as herself?"
3116
3117 Edward made no answer. His gravity and thoughtfulness returned on him
3118 in their fullest extent--and he sat for some time silent and dull.
3119
3120
3121
3122 CHAPTER 18
3123
3124
3125 Elinor saw, with great uneasiness the low spirits of her friend. His
3126 visit afforded her but a very partial satisfaction, while his own
3127 enjoyment in it appeared so imperfect. It was evident that he was
3128 unhappy; she wished it were equally evident that he still distinguished
3129 her by the same affection which once she had felt no doubt of
3130 inspiring; but hitherto the continuance of his preference seemed very
3131 uncertain; and the reservedness of his manner towards her contradicted
3132 one moment what a more animated look had intimated the preceding one.
3133
3134 He joined her and Marianne in the breakfast-room the next morning
3135 before the others were down; and Marianne, who was always eager to
3136 promote their happiness as far as she could, soon left them to
3137 themselves. But before she was half way upstairs she heard the parlour
3138 door open, and, turning round, was astonished to see Edward himself
3139 come out.
3140
3141 "I am going into the village to see my horses," said he, "as you are
3142 not yet ready for breakfast; I shall be back again presently."
3143
3144 ***
3145
3146 Edward returned to them with fresh admiration of the surrounding
3147 country; in his walk to the village, he had seen many parts of the
3148 valley to advantage; and the village itself, in a much higher situation
3149 than the cottage, afforded a general view of the whole, which had
3150 exceedingly pleased him. This was a subject which ensured Marianne's
3151 attention, and she was beginning to describe her own admiration of
3152 these scenes, and to question him more minutely on the objects that had
3153 particularly struck him, when Edward interrupted her by saying, "You
3154 must not enquire too far, Marianne--remember I have no knowledge in the
3155 picturesque, and I shall offend you by my ignorance and want of taste
3156 if we come to particulars. I shall call hills steep, which ought to be
3157 bold; surfaces strange and uncouth, which ought to be irregular and
3158 rugged; and distant objects out of sight, which ought only to be
3159 indistinct through the soft medium of a hazy atmosphere. You must be
3160 satisfied with such admiration as I can honestly give. I call it a
3161 very fine country--the hills are steep, the woods seem full of fine
3162 timber, and the valley looks comfortable and snug--with rich meadows
3163 and several neat farm houses scattered here and there. It exactly
3164 answers my idea of a fine country, because it unites beauty with
3165 utility--and I dare say it is a picturesque one too, because you admire
3166 it; I can easily believe it to be full of rocks and promontories, grey
3167 moss and brush wood, but these are all lost on me. I know nothing of
3168 the picturesque."
3169
3170 "I am afraid it is but too true," said Marianne; "but why should you
3171 boast of it?"
3172
3173 "I suspect," said Elinor, "that to avoid one kind of affectation,
3174 Edward here falls into another. Because he believes many people
3175 pretend to more admiration of the beauties of nature than they really
3176 feel, and is disgusted with such pretensions, he affects greater
3177 indifference and less discrimination in viewing them himself than he
3178 possesses. He is fastidious and will have an affectation of his own."
3179
3180 "It is very true," said Marianne, "that admiration of landscape scenery
3181 is become a mere jargon. Every body pretends to feel and tries to
3182 describe with the taste and elegance of him who first defined what
3183 picturesque beauty was. I detest jargon of every kind, and sometimes I
3184 have kept my feelings to myself, because I could find no language to
3185 describe them in but what was worn and hackneyed out of all sense and
3186 meaning."
3187
3188 "I am convinced," said Edward, "that you really feel all the delight in
3189 a fine prospect which you profess to feel. But, in return, your sister
3190 must allow me to feel no more than I profess. I like a fine prospect,
3191 but not on picturesque principles. I do not like crooked, twisted,
3192 blasted trees. I admire them much more if they are tall, straight, and
3193 flourishing. I do not like ruined, tattered cottages. I am not fond
3194 of nettles or thistles, or heath blossoms. I have more pleasure in a
3195 snug farm-house than a watch-tower--and a troop of tidy, happy villages
3196 please me better than the finest banditti in the world."
3197
3198 Marianne looked with amazement at Edward, with compassion at her
3199 sister. Elinor only laughed.
3200
3201 The subject was continued no farther; and Marianne remained
3202 thoughtfully silent, till a new object suddenly engaged her attention.
3203 She was sitting by Edward, and in taking his tea from Mrs. Dashwood,
3204 his hand passed so directly before her, as to make a ring, with a plait
3205 of hair in the centre, very conspicuous on one of his fingers.
3206
3207 "I never saw you wear a ring before, Edward," she cried. "Is that
3208 Fanny's hair? I remember her promising to give you some. But I should
3209 have thought her hair had been darker."
3210
3211 Marianne spoke inconsiderately what she really felt--but when she saw
3212 how much she had pained Edward, her own vexation at her want of thought
3213 could not be surpassed by his. He coloured very deeply, and giving a
3214 momentary glance at Elinor, replied, "Yes; it is my sister's hair. The
3215 setting always casts a different shade on it, you know."
3216
3217 Elinor had met his eye, and looked conscious likewise. That the hair
3218 was her own, she instantaneously felt as well satisfied as Marianne;
3219 the only difference in their conclusions was, that what Marianne
3220 considered as a free gift from her sister, Elinor was conscious must
3221 have been procured by some theft or contrivance unknown to herself.
3222 She was not in a humour, however, to regard it as an affront, and
3223 affecting to take no notice of what passed, by instantly talking of
3224 something else, she internally resolved henceforward to catch every
3225 opportunity of eyeing the hair and of satisfying herself, beyond all
3226 doubt, that it was exactly the shade of her own.
3227
3228 Edward's embarrassment lasted some time, and it ended in an absence of
3229 mind still more settled. He was particularly grave the whole morning.
3230 Marianne severely censured herself for what she had said; but her own
3231 forgiveness might have been more speedy, had she known how little
3232 offence it had given her sister.
3233
3234 Before the middle of the day, they were visited by Sir John and Mrs.
3235 Jennings, who, having heard of the arrival of a gentleman at the
3236 cottage, came to take a survey of the guest. With the assistance of
3237 his mother-in-law, Sir John was not long in discovering that the name
3238 of Ferrars began with an F. and this prepared a future mine of raillery
3239 against the devoted Elinor, which nothing but the newness of their
3240 acquaintance with Edward could have prevented from being immediately
3241 sprung. But, as it was, she only learned, from some very significant
3242 looks, how far their penetration, founded on Margaret's instructions,
3243 extended.
3244
3245 Sir John never came to the Dashwoods without either inviting them to
3246 dine at the park the next day, or to drink tea with them that evening.
3247 On the present occasion, for the better entertainment of their visitor,
3248 towards whose amusement he felt himself bound to contribute, he wished
3249 to engage them for both.
3250
3251 "You MUST drink tea with us to night," said he, "for we shall be quite
3252 alone--and tomorrow you must absolutely dine with us, for we shall be a
3253 large party."
3254
3255 Mrs. Jennings enforced the necessity. "And who knows but you may raise
3256 a dance," said she. "And that will tempt YOU, Miss Marianne."
3257
3258 "A dance!" cried Marianne. "Impossible! Who is to dance?"
3259
3260 "Who! why yourselves, and the Careys, and Whitakers to be sure.--What!
3261 you thought nobody could dance because a certain person that shall be
3262 nameless is gone!"
3263
3264 "I wish with all my soul," cried Sir John, "that Willoughby were among
3265 us again."
3266
3267 This, and Marianne's blushing, gave new suspicions to Edward. "And who
3268 is Willoughby?" said he, in a low voice, to Miss Dashwood, by whom he
3269 was sitting.
3270
3271 She gave him a brief reply. Marianne's countenance was more
3272 communicative. Edward saw enough to comprehend, not only the meaning
3273 of others, but such of Marianne's expressions as had puzzled him
3274 before; and when their visitors left them, he went immediately round
3275 her, and said, in a whisper, "I have been guessing. Shall I tell you
3276 my guess?"
3277
3278 "What do you mean?"
3279
3280 "Shall I tell you."
3281
3282 "Certainly."
3283
3284 "Well then; I guess that Mr. Willoughby hunts."
3285
3286 Marianne was surprised and confused, yet she could not help smiling at
3287 the quiet archness of his manner, and after a moment's silence, said,
3288
3289 "Oh, Edward! How can you?--But the time will come I hope...I am sure
3290 you will like him."
3291
3292 "I do not doubt it," replied he, rather astonished at her earnestness
3293 and warmth; for had he not imagined it to be a joke for the good of her
3294 acquaintance in general, founded only on a something or a nothing
3295 between Mr. Willoughby and herself, he would not have ventured to
3296 mention it.
3297
3298
3299
3300 CHAPTER 19
3301
3302
3303 Edward remained a week at the cottage; he was earnestly pressed by Mrs.
3304 Dashwood to stay longer; but, as if he were bent only on
3305 self-mortification, he seemed resolved to be gone when his enjoyment
3306 among his friends was at the height. His spirits, during the last two
3307 or three days, though still very unequal, were greatly improved--he
3308 grew more and more partial to the house and environs--never spoke of
3309 going away without a sigh--declared his time to be wholly
3310 disengaged--even doubted to what place he should go when he left
3311 them--but still, go he must. Never had any week passed so quickly--he
3312 could hardly believe it to be gone. He said so repeatedly; other
3313 things he said too, which marked the turn of his feelings and gave the
3314 lie to his actions. He had no pleasure at Norland; he detested being
3315 in town; but either to Norland or London, he must go. He valued their
3316 kindness beyond any thing, and his greatest happiness was in being with
3317 them. Yet, he must leave them at the end of a week, in spite of their
3318 wishes and his own, and without any restraint on his time.
3319
3320 Elinor placed all that was astonishing in this way of acting to his
3321 mother's account; and it was happy for her that he had a mother whose
3322 character was so imperfectly known to her, as to be the general excuse
3323 for every thing strange on the part of her son. Disappointed, however,
3324 and vexed as she was, and sometimes displeased with his uncertain
3325 behaviour to herself, she was very well disposed on the whole to regard
3326 his actions with all the candid allowances and generous qualifications,
3327 which had been rather more painfully extorted from her, for
3328 Willoughby's service, by her mother. His want of spirits, of openness,
3329 and of consistency, were most usually attributed to his want of
3330 independence, and his better knowledge of Mrs. Ferrars's disposition
3331 and designs. The shortness of his visit, the steadiness of his purpose
3332 in leaving them, originated in the same fettered inclination, the same
3333 inevitable necessity of temporizing with his mother. The old
3334 well-established grievance of duty against will, parent against child,
3335 was the cause of all. She would have been glad to know when these
3336 difficulties were to cease, this opposition was to yield,--when Mrs.
3337 Ferrars would be reformed, and her son be at liberty to be happy. But
3338 from such vain wishes she was forced to turn for comfort to the renewal
3339 of her confidence in Edward's affection, to the remembrance of every
3340 mark of regard in look or word which fell from him while at Barton, and
3341 above all to that flattering proof of it which he constantly wore round
3342 his finger.
3343
3344 "I think, Edward," said Mrs. Dashwood, as they were at breakfast the
3345 last morning, "you would be a happier man if you had any profession to
3346 engage your time and give an interest to your plans and actions. Some
3347 inconvenience to your friends, indeed, might result from it--you would
3348 not be able to give them so much of your time. But (with a smile) you
3349 would be materially benefited in one particular at least--you would
3350 know where to go when you left them."
3351
3352 "I do assure you," he replied, "that I have long thought on this point,
3353 as you think now. It has been, and is, and probably will always be a
3354 heavy misfortune to me, that I have had no necessary business to engage
3355 me, no profession to give me employment, or afford me any thing like
3356 independence. But unfortunately my own nicety, and the nicety of my
3357 friends, have made me what I am, an idle, helpless being. We never
3358 could agree in our choice of a profession. I always preferred the
3359 church, as I still do. But that was not smart enough for my family.
3360 They recommended the army. That was a great deal too smart for me.
3361 The law was allowed to be genteel enough; many young men, who had
3362 chambers in the Temple, made a very good appearance in the first
3363 circles, and drove about town in very knowing gigs. But I had no
3364 inclination for the law, even in this less abstruse study of it, which
3365 my family approved. As for the navy, it had fashion on its side, but I
3366 was too old when the subject was first started to enter it--and, at
3367 length, as there was no necessity for my having any profession at all,
3368 as I might be as dashing and expensive without a red coat on my back as
3369 with one, idleness was pronounced on the whole to be most advantageous
3370 and honourable, and a young man of eighteen is not in general so
3371 earnestly bent on being busy as to resist the solicitations of his
3372 friends to do nothing. I was therefore entered at Oxford and have been
3373 properly idle ever since."
3374
3375 "The consequence of which, I suppose, will be," said Mrs. Dashwood,
3376 "since leisure has not promoted your own happiness, that your sons will
3377 be brought up to as many pursuits, employments, professions, and trades
3378 as Columella's."
3379
3380 "They will be brought up," said he, in a serious accent, "to be as
3381 unlike myself as is possible. In feeling, in action, in condition, in
3382 every thing."
3383
3384 "Come, come; this is all an effusion of immediate want of spirits,
3385 Edward. You are in a melancholy humour, and fancy that any one unlike
3386 yourself must be happy. But remember that the pain of parting from
3387 friends will be felt by every body at times, whatever be their
3388 education or state. Know your own happiness. You want nothing but
3389 patience--or give it a more fascinating name, call it hope. Your
3390 mother will secure to you, in time, that independence you are so
3391 anxious for; it is her duty, and it will, it must ere long become her
3392 happiness to prevent your whole youth from being wasted in discontent.
3393 How much may not a few months do?"
3394
3395 "I think," replied Edward, "that I may defy many months to produce any
3396 good to me."
3397
3398 This desponding turn of mind, though it could not be communicated to
3399 Mrs. Dashwood, gave additional pain to them all in the parting, which
3400 shortly took place, and left an uncomfortable impression on Elinor's
3401 feelings especially, which required some trouble and time to subdue.
3402 But as it was her determination to subdue it, and to prevent herself
3403 from appearing to suffer more than what all her family suffered on his
3404 going away, she did not adopt the method so judiciously employed by
3405 Marianne, on a similar occasion, to augment and fix her sorrow, by
3406 seeking silence, solitude and idleness. Their means were as different
3407 as their objects, and equally suited to the advancement of each.
3408
3409 Elinor sat down to her drawing-table as soon as he was out of the
3410 house, busily employed herself the whole day, neither sought nor
3411 avoided the mention of his name, appeared to interest herself almost as
3412 much as ever in the general concerns of the family, and if, by this
3413 conduct, she did not lessen her own grief, it was at least prevented
3414 from unnecessary increase, and her mother and sisters were spared much
3415 solicitude on her account.
3416
3417 Such behaviour as this, so exactly the reverse of her own, appeared no
3418 more meritorious to Marianne, than her own had seemed faulty to her.
3419 The business of self-command she settled very easily;--with strong
3420 affections it was impossible, with calm ones it could have no merit.
3421 That her sister's affections WERE calm, she dared not deny, though she
3422 blushed to acknowledge it; and of the strength of her own, she gave a
3423 very striking proof, by still loving and respecting that sister, in
3424 spite of this mortifying conviction.
3425
3426 Without shutting herself up from her family, or leaving the house in
3427 determined solitude to avoid them, or lying awake the whole night to
3428 indulge meditation, Elinor found every day afforded her leisure enough
3429 to think of Edward, and of Edward's behaviour, in every possible
3430 variety which the different state of her spirits at different times
3431 could produce,--with tenderness, pity, approbation, censure, and doubt.
3432 There were moments in abundance, when, if not by the absence of her
3433 mother and sisters, at least by the nature of their employments,
3434 conversation was forbidden among them, and every effect of solitude was
3435 produced. Her mind was inevitably at liberty; her thoughts could not
3436 be chained elsewhere; and the past and the future, on a subject so
3437 interesting, must be before her, must force her attention, and engross
3438 her memory, her reflection, and her fancy.
3439
3440 From a reverie of this kind, as she sat at her drawing-table, she was
3441 roused one morning, soon after Edward's leaving them, by the arrival of
3442 company. She happened to be quite alone. The closing of the little
3443 gate, at the entrance of the green court in front of the house, drew
3444 her eyes to the window, and she saw a large party walking up to the
3445 door. Amongst them were Sir John and Lady Middleton and Mrs. Jennings,
3446 but there were two others, a gentleman and lady, who were quite unknown
3447 to her. She was sitting near the window, and as soon as Sir John
3448 perceived her, he left the rest of the party to the ceremony of
3449 knocking at the door, and stepping across the turf, obliged her to open
3450 the casement to speak to him, though the space was so short between the
3451 door and the window, as to make it hardly possible to speak at one
3452 without being heard at the other.
3453
3454 "Well," said he, "we have brought you some strangers. How do you like
3455 them?"
3456
3457 "Hush! they will hear you."
3458
3459 "Never mind if they do. It is only the Palmers. Charlotte is very
3460 pretty, I can tell you. You may see her if you look this way."
3461
3462 As Elinor was certain of seeing her in a couple of minutes, without
3463 taking that liberty, she begged to be excused.
3464
3465 "Where is Marianne? Has she run away because we are come? I see her
3466 instrument is open."
3467
3468 "She is walking, I believe."
3469
3470 They were now joined by Mrs. Jennings, who had not patience enough to
3471 wait till the door was opened before she told HER story. She came
3472 hallooing to the window, "How do you do, my dear? How does Mrs.
3473 Dashwood do? And where are your sisters? What! all alone! you will be
3474 glad of a little company to sit with you. I have brought my other son
3475 and daughter to see you. Only think of their coming so suddenly! I
3476 thought I heard a carriage last night, while we were drinking our tea,
3477 but it never entered my head that it could be them. I thought of
3478 nothing but whether it might not be Colonel Brandon come back again; so
3479 I said to Sir John, I do think I hear a carriage; perhaps it is Colonel
3480 Brandon come back again"--
3481
3482 Elinor was obliged to turn from her, in the middle of her story, to
3483 receive the rest of the party; Lady Middleton introduced the two
3484 strangers; Mrs. Dashwood and Margaret came down stairs at the same
3485 time, and they all sat down to look at one another, while Mrs. Jennings
3486 continued her story as she walked through the passage into the parlour,
3487 attended by Sir John.
3488
3489 Mrs. Palmer was several years younger than Lady Middleton, and totally
3490 unlike her in every respect. She was short and plump, had a very
3491 pretty face, and the finest expression of good humour in it that could
3492 possibly be. Her manners were by no means so elegant as her sister's,
3493 but they were much more prepossessing. She came in with a smile,
3494 smiled all the time of her visit, except when she laughed, and smiled
3495 when she went away. Her husband was a grave looking young man of five
3496 or six and twenty, with an air of more fashion and sense than his wife,
3497 but of less willingness to please or be pleased. He entered the room
3498 with a look of self-consequence, slightly bowed to the ladies, without
3499 speaking a word, and, after briefly surveying them and their
3500 apartments, took up a newspaper from the table, and continued to read
3501 it as long as he staid.
3502
3503 Mrs. Palmer, on the contrary, who was strongly endowed by nature with a
3504 turn for being uniformly civil and happy, was hardly seated before her
3505 admiration of the parlour and every thing in it burst forth.
3506
3507 "Well! what a delightful room this is! I never saw anything so
3508 charming! Only think, Mama, how it is improved since I was here last!
3509 I always thought it such a sweet place, ma'am! (turning to Mrs.
3510 Dashwood) but you have made it so charming! Only look, sister, how
3511 delightful every thing is! How I should like such a house for myself!
3512 Should not you, Mr. Palmer?"
3513
3514 Mr. Palmer made her no answer, and did not even raise his eyes from the
3515 newspaper.
3516
3517 "Mr. Palmer does not hear me," said she, laughing; "he never does
3518 sometimes. It is so ridiculous!"
3519
3520 This was quite a new idea to Mrs. Dashwood; she had never been used to
3521 find wit in the inattention of any one, and could not help looking with
3522 surprise at them both.
3523
3524 Mrs. Jennings, in the meantime, talked on as loud as she could, and
3525 continued her account of their surprise, the evening before, on seeing
3526 their friends, without ceasing till every thing was told. Mrs. Palmer
3527 laughed heartily at the recollection of their astonishment, and every
3528 body agreed, two or three times over, that it had been quite an
3529 agreeable surprise.
3530
3531 "You may believe how glad we all were to see them," added Mrs.
3532 Jennings, leaning forward towards Elinor, and speaking in a low voice
3533 as if she meant to be heard by no one else, though they were seated on
3534 different sides of the room; "but, however, I can't help wishing they
3535 had not travelled quite so fast, nor made such a long journey of it,
3536 for they came all round by London upon account of some business, for
3537 you know (nodding significantly and pointing to her daughter) it was
3538 wrong in her situation. I wanted her to stay at home and rest this
3539 morning, but she would come with us; she longed so much to see you all!"
3540
3541 Mrs. Palmer laughed, and said it would not do her any harm.
3542
3543 "She expects to be confined in February," continued Mrs. Jennings.
3544
3545 Lady Middleton could no longer endure such a conversation, and
3546 therefore exerted herself to ask Mr. Palmer if there was any news in
3547 the paper.
3548
3549 "No, none at all," he replied, and read on.
3550
3551 "Here comes Marianne," cried Sir John. "Now, Palmer, you shall see a
3552 monstrous pretty girl."
3553
3554 He immediately went into the passage, opened the front door, and
3555 ushered her in himself. Mrs. Jennings asked her, as soon as she
3556 appeared, if she had not been to Allenham; and Mrs. Palmer laughed so
3557 heartily at the question, as to show she understood it. Mr. Palmer
3558 looked up on her entering the room, stared at her some minutes, and
3559 then returned to his newspaper. Mrs. Palmer's eye was now caught by
3560 the drawings which hung round the room. She got up to examine them.
3561
3562 "Oh! dear, how beautiful these are! Well! how delightful! Do but
3563 look, mama, how sweet! I declare they are quite charming; I could look
3564 at them for ever." And then sitting down again, she very soon forgot
3565 that there were any such things in the room.
3566
3567 When Lady Middleton rose to go away, Mr. Palmer rose also, laid down
3568 the newspaper, stretched himself and looked at them all around.
3569
3570 "My love, have you been asleep?" said his wife, laughing.
3571
3572 He made her no answer; and only observed, after again examining the
3573 room, that it was very low pitched, and that the ceiling was crooked.
3574 He then made his bow, and departed with the rest.
3575
3576 Sir John had been very urgent with them all to spend the next day at
3577 the park. Mrs. Dashwood, who did not chuse to dine with them oftener
3578 than they dined at the cottage, absolutely refused on her own account;
3579 her daughters might do as they pleased. But they had no curiosity to
3580 see how Mr. and Mrs. Palmer ate their dinner, and no expectation of
3581 pleasure from them in any other way. They attempted, therefore,
3582 likewise, to excuse themselves; the weather was uncertain, and not
3583 likely to be good. But Sir John would not be satisfied--the carriage
3584 should be sent for them and they must come. Lady Middleton too, though
3585 she did not press their mother, pressed them. Mrs. Jennings and Mrs.
3586 Palmer joined their entreaties, all seemed equally anxious to avoid a
3587 family party; and the young ladies were obliged to yield.
3588
3589 "Why should they ask us?" said Marianne, as soon as they were gone.
3590 "The rent of this cottage is said to be low; but we have it on very
3591 hard terms, if we are to dine at the park whenever any one is staying
3592 either with them, or with us."
3593
3594 "They mean no less to be civil and kind to us now," said Elinor, "by
3595 these frequent invitations, than by those which we received from them a
3596 few weeks ago. The alteration is not in them, if their parties are
3597 grown tedious and dull. We must look for the change elsewhere."
3598
3599
3600
3601 CHAPTER 20
3602
3603
3604 As the Miss Dashwoods entered the drawing-room of the park the next
3605 day, at one door, Mrs. Palmer came running in at the other, looking as
3606 good humoured and merry as before. She took them all most
3607 affectionately by the hand, and expressed great delight in seeing them
3608 again.
3609
3610 "I am so glad to see you!" said she, seating herself between Elinor and
3611 Marianne, "for it is so bad a day I was afraid you might not come,
3612 which would be a shocking thing, as we go away again tomorrow. We must
3613 go, for the Westons come to us next week you know. It was quite a
3614 sudden thing our coming at all, and I knew nothing of it till the
3615 carriage was coming to the door, and then Mr. Palmer asked me if I
3616 would go with him to Barton. He is so droll! He never tells me any
3617 thing! I am so sorry we cannot stay longer; however we shall meet again
3618 in town very soon, I hope."
3619
3620 They were obliged to put an end to such an expectation.
3621
3622 "Not go to town!" cried Mrs. Palmer, with a laugh, "I shall be quite
3623 disappointed if you do not. I could get the nicest house in the world for
3624 you, next door to ours, in Hanover-square. You must come, indeed. I
3625 am sure I shall be very happy to chaperon you at any time till I am
3626 confined, if Mrs. Dashwood should not like to go into public."
3627
3628 They thanked her; but were obliged to resist all her entreaties.
3629
3630 "Oh, my love," cried Mrs. Palmer to her husband, who just then entered
3631 the room--"you must help me to persuade the Miss Dashwoods to go to
3632 town this winter."
3633
3634 Her love made no answer; and after slightly bowing to the ladies, began
3635 complaining of the weather.
3636
3637 "How horrid all this is!" said he. "Such weather makes every thing and
3638 every body disgusting. Dullness is as much produced within doors as
3639 without, by rain. It makes one detest all one's acquaintance. What
3640 the devil does Sir John mean by not having a billiard room in his
3641 house? How few people know what comfort is! Sir John is as stupid as
3642 the weather."
3643
3644 The rest of the company soon dropt in.
3645
3646 "I am afraid, Miss Marianne," said Sir John, "you have not been able to
3647 take your usual walk to Allenham today."
3648
3649 Marianne looked very grave and said nothing.
3650
3651 "Oh, don't be so sly before us," said Mrs. Palmer; "for we know all
3652 about it, I assure you; and I admire your taste very much, for I think
3653 he is extremely handsome. We do not live a great way from him in the
3654 country, you know. Not above ten miles, I dare say."
3655
3656 "Much nearer thirty," said her husband.
3657
3658 "Ah, well! there is not much difference. I never was at his house; but
3659 they say it is a sweet pretty place."
3660
3661 "As vile a spot as I ever saw in my life," said Mr. Palmer.
3662
3663 Marianne remained perfectly silent, though her countenance betrayed her
3664 interest in what was said.
3665
3666 "Is it very ugly?" continued Mrs. Palmer--"then it must be some other
3667 place that is so pretty I suppose."
3668
3669 When they were seated in the dining room, Sir John observed with regret
3670 that they were only eight all together.
3671
3672 "My dear," said he to his lady, "it is very provoking that we should be
3673 so few. Why did not you ask the Gilberts to come to us today?"
3674
3675 "Did not I tell you, Sir John, when you spoke to me about it before,
3676 that it could not be done? They dined with us last."
3677
3678 "You and I, Sir John," said Mrs. Jennings, "should not stand upon such
3679 ceremony."
3680
3681 "Then you would be very ill-bred," cried Mr. Palmer.
3682
3683 "My love you contradict every body," said his wife with her usual
3684 laugh. "Do you know that you are quite rude?"
3685
3686 "I did not know I contradicted any body in calling your mother
3687 ill-bred."
3688
3689 "Ay, you may abuse me as you please," said the good-natured old lady,
3690 "you have taken Charlotte off my hands, and cannot give her back again.
3691 So there I have the whip hand of you."
3692
3693 Charlotte laughed heartily to think that her husband could not get rid
3694 of her; and exultingly said, she did not care how cross he was to her,
3695 as they must live together. It was impossible for any one to be more
3696 thoroughly good-natured, or more determined to be happy than Mrs.
3697 Palmer. The studied indifference, insolence, and discontent of her
3698 husband gave her no pain; and when he scolded or abused her, she was
3699 highly diverted.
3700
3701 "Mr. Palmer is so droll!" said she, in a whisper, to Elinor. "He is
3702 always out of humour."
3703
3704 Elinor was not inclined, after a little observation, to give him credit
3705 for being so genuinely and unaffectedly ill-natured or ill-bred as he
3706 wished to appear. His temper might perhaps be a little soured by
3707 finding, like many others of his sex, that through some unaccountable
3708 bias in favour of beauty, he was the husband of a very silly
3709 woman,--but she knew that this kind of blunder was too common for any
3710 sensible man to be lastingly hurt by it.-- It was rather a wish of
3711 distinction, she believed, which produced his contemptuous treatment of
3712 every body, and his general abuse of every thing before him. It was
3713 the desire of appearing superior to other people. The motive was too
3714 common to be wondered at; but the means, however they might succeed by
3715 establishing his superiority in ill-breeding, were not likely to attach
3716 any one to him except his wife.
3717
3718 "Oh, my dear Miss Dashwood," said Mrs. Palmer soon afterwards, "I have
3719 got such a favour to ask of you and your sister. Will you come and
3720 spend some time at Cleveland this Christmas? Now, pray do,--and come
3721 while the Westons are with us. You cannot think how happy I shall be!
3722 It will be quite delightful!--My love," applying to her husband, "don't
3723 you long to have the Miss Dashwoods come to Cleveland?"
3724
3725 "Certainly," he replied, with a sneer--"I came into Devonshire with no
3726 other view."
3727
3728 "There now,"--said his lady, "you see Mr. Palmer expects you; so you
3729 cannot refuse to come."
3730
3731 They both eagerly and resolutely declined her invitation.
3732
3733 "But indeed you must and shall come. I am sure you will like it of all
3734 things. The Westons will be with us, and it will be quite delightful.
3735 You cannot think what a sweet place Cleveland is; and we are so gay
3736 now, for Mr. Palmer is always going about the country canvassing
3737 against the election; and so many people came to dine with us that I
3738 never saw before, it is quite charming! But, poor fellow! it is very
3739 fatiguing to him! for he is forced to make every body like him."
3740
3741 Elinor could hardly keep her countenance as she assented to the
3742 hardship of such an obligation.
3743
3744 "How charming it will be," said Charlotte, "when he is in
3745 Parliament!--won't it? How I shall laugh! It will be so ridiculous to
3746 see all his letters directed to him with an M.P.--But do you know, he
3747 says, he will never frank for me? He declares he won't. Don't you,
3748 Mr. Palmer?"
3749
3750 Mr. Palmer took no notice of her.
3751
3752 "He cannot bear writing, you know," she continued--"he says it is quite
3753 shocking."
3754
3755 "No," said he, "I never said any thing so irrational. Don't palm all
3756 your abuses of languages upon me."
3757
3758 "There now; you see how droll he is. This is always the way with him!
3759 Sometimes he won't speak to me for half a day together, and then he
3760 comes out with something so droll--all about any thing in the world."
3761
3762 She surprised Elinor very much as they returned into the drawing-room,
3763 by asking her whether she did not like Mr. Palmer excessively.
3764
3765 "Certainly," said Elinor; "he seems very agreeable."
3766
3767 "Well--I am so glad you do. I thought you would, he is so pleasant;
3768 and Mr. Palmer is excessively pleased with you and your sisters I can
3769 tell you, and you can't think how disappointed he will be if you don't
3770 come to Cleveland.--I can't imagine why you should object to it."
3771
3772 Elinor was again obliged to decline her invitation; and by changing the
3773 subject, put a stop to her entreaties. She thought it probable that as
3774 they lived in the same county, Mrs. Palmer might be able to give some
3775 more particular account of Willoughby's general character, than could
3776 be gathered from the Middletons' partial acquaintance with him; and she
3777 was eager to gain from any one, such a confirmation of his merits as
3778 might remove the possibility of fear from Marianne. She began by
3779 inquiring if they saw much of Mr. Willoughby at Cleveland, and whether
3780 they were intimately acquainted with him.
3781
3782 "Oh dear, yes; I know him extremely well," replied Mrs. Palmer;--"Not
3783 that I ever spoke to him, indeed; but I have seen him for ever in town.
3784 Somehow or other I never happened to be staying at Barton while he was
3785 at Allenham. Mama saw him here once before;--but I was with my uncle
3786 at Weymouth. However, I dare say we should have seen a great deal of
3787 him in Somersetshire, if it had not happened very unluckily that we
3788 should never have been in the country together. He is very little at
3789 Combe, I believe; but if he were ever so much there, I do not think Mr.
3790 Palmer would visit him, for he is in the opposition, you know, and
3791 besides it is such a way off. I know why you inquire about him, very
3792 well; your sister is to marry him. I am monstrous glad of it, for then
3793 I shall have her for a neighbour you know."
3794
3795 "Upon my word," replied Elinor, "you know much more of the matter than
3796 I do, if you have any reason to expect such a match."
3797
3798 "Don't pretend to deny it, because you know it is what every body talks
3799 of. I assure you I heard of it in my way through town."
3800
3801 "My dear Mrs. Palmer!"
3802
3803 "Upon my honour I did.--I met Colonel Brandon Monday morning in
3804 Bond-street, just before we left town, and he told me of it directly."
3805
3806 "You surprise me very much. Colonel Brandon tell you of it! Surely
3807 you must be mistaken. To give such intelligence to a person who could
3808 not be interested in it, even if it were true, is not what I should
3809 expect Colonel Brandon to do."
3810
3811 "But I do assure you it was so, for all that, and I will tell you how
3812 it happened. When we met him, he turned back and walked with us; and
3813 so we began talking of my brother and sister, and one thing and
3814 another, and I said to him, 'So, Colonel, there is a new family come to
3815 Barton cottage, I hear, and mama sends me word they are very pretty,
3816 and that one of them is going to be married to Mr. Willoughby of Combe
3817 Magna. Is it true, pray? for of course you must know, as you have been
3818 in Devonshire so lately.'"
3819
3820 "And what did the Colonel say?"
3821
3822 "Oh--he did not say much; but he looked as if he knew it to be true, so
3823 from that moment I set it down as certain. It will be quite
3824 delightful, I declare! When is it to take place?"
3825
3826 "Mr. Brandon was very well I hope?"
3827
3828 "Oh! yes, quite well; and so full of your praises, he did nothing but
3829 say fine things of you."
3830
3831 "I am flattered by his commendation. He seems an excellent man; and I
3832 think him uncommonly pleasing."
3833
3834 "So do I.--He is such a charming man, that it is quite a pity he should
3835 be so grave and so dull. Mama says HE was in love with your sister
3836 too.-- I assure you it was a great compliment if he was, for he hardly
3837 ever falls in love with any body."
3838
3839 "Is Mr. Willoughby much known in your part of Somersetshire?" said
3840 Elinor.
3841
3842 "Oh! yes, extremely well; that is, I do not believe many people are
3843 acquainted with him, because Combe Magna is so far off; but they all
3844 think him extremely agreeable I assure you. Nobody is more liked than
3845 Mr. Willoughby wherever he goes, and so you may tell your sister. She
3846 is a monstrous lucky girl to get him, upon my honour; not but that he
3847 is much more lucky in getting her, because she is so very handsome and
3848 agreeable, that nothing can be good enough for her. However, I don't
3849 think her hardly at all handsomer than you, I assure you; for I think
3850 you both excessively pretty, and so does Mr. Palmer too I am sure,
3851 though we could not get him to own it last night."
3852
3853 Mrs. Palmer's information respecting Willoughby was not very material;
3854 but any testimony in his favour, however small, was pleasing to her.
3855
3856 "I am so glad we are got acquainted at last," continued
3857 Charlotte.--"And now I hope we shall always be great friends. You
3858 can't think how much I longed to see you! It is so delightful that you
3859 should live at the cottage! Nothing can be like it, to be sure! And I
3860 am so glad your sister is going to be well married! I hope you will be
3861 a great deal at Combe Magna. It is a sweet place, by all accounts."
3862
3863 "You have been long acquainted with Colonel Brandon, have not you?"
3864
3865 "Yes, a great while; ever since my sister married.-- He was a
3866 particular friend of Sir John's. I believe," she added in a low voice,
3867 "he would have been very glad to have had me, if he could. Sir John
3868 and Lady Middleton wished it very much. But mama did not think the
3869 match good enough for me, otherwise Sir John would have mentioned it to
3870 the Colonel, and we should have been married immediately."
3871
3872 "Did not Colonel Brandon know of Sir John's proposal to your mother
3873 before it was made? Had he never owned his affection to yourself?"
3874
3875 "Oh, no; but if mama had not objected to it, I dare say he would have
3876 liked it of all things. He had not seen me then above twice, for it
3877 was before I left school. However, I am much happier as I am. Mr.
3878 Palmer is the kind of man I like."
3879
3880
3881
3882 CHAPTER 21
3883
3884
3885 The Palmers returned to Cleveland the next day, and the two families at
3886 Barton were again left to entertain each other. But this did not last
3887 long; Elinor had hardly got their last visitors out of her head, had
3888 hardly done wondering at Charlotte's being so happy without a cause, at
3889 Mr. Palmer's acting so simply, with good abilities, and at the strange
3890 unsuitableness which often existed between husband and wife, before Sir
3891 John's and Mrs. Jennings's active zeal in the cause of society,
3892 procured her some other new acquaintance to see and observe.
3893
3894 In a morning's excursion to Exeter, they had met with two young ladies,
3895 whom Mrs. Jennings had the satisfaction of discovering to be her
3896 relations, and this was enough for Sir John to invite them directly to
3897 the park, as soon as their present engagements at Exeter were over.
3898 Their engagements at Exeter instantly gave way before such an
3899 invitation, and Lady Middleton was thrown into no little alarm on the
3900 return of Sir John, by hearing that she was very soon to receive a
3901 visit from two girls whom she had never seen in her life, and of whose
3902 elegance,--whose tolerable gentility even, she could have no proof; for
3903 the assurances of her husband and mother on that subject went for
3904 nothing at all. Their being her relations too made it so much the
3905 worse; and Mrs. Jennings's attempts at consolation were therefore
3906 unfortunately founded, when she advised her daughter not to care about
3907 their being so fashionable; because they were all cousins and must put
3908 up with one another. As it was impossible, however, now to prevent
3909 their coming, Lady Middleton resigned herself to the idea of it, with
3910 all the philosophy of a well-bred woman, contenting herself with merely
3911 giving her husband a gentle reprimand on the subject five or six times
3912 every day.
3913
3914 The young ladies arrived: their appearance was by no means ungenteel or
3915 unfashionable. Their dress was very smart, their manners very civil,
3916 they were delighted with the house, and in raptures with the furniture,
3917 and they happened to be so doatingly fond of children that Lady
3918 Middleton's good opinion was engaged in their favour before they had
3919 been an hour at the Park. She declared them to be very agreeable girls
3920 indeed, which for her ladyship was enthusiastic admiration. Sir John's
3921 confidence in his own judgment rose with this animated praise, and he
3922 set off directly for the cottage to tell the Miss Dashwoods of the Miss
3923 Steeles' arrival, and to assure them of their being the sweetest girls
3924 in the world. From such commendation as this, however, there was not
3925 much to be learned; Elinor well knew that the sweetest girls in the
3926 world were to be met with in every part of England, under every
3927 possible variation of form, face, temper and understanding. Sir John
3928 wanted the whole family to walk to the Park directly and look at his
3929 guests. Benevolent, philanthropic man! It was painful to him even to
3930 keep a third cousin to himself.
3931
3932 "Do come now," said he--"pray come--you must come--I declare you shall
3933 come--You can't think how you will like them. Lucy is monstrous
3934 pretty, and so good humoured and agreeable! The children are all
3935 hanging about her already, as if she was an old acquaintance. And they
3936 both long to see you of all things, for they have heard at Exeter that
3937 you are the most beautiful creatures in the world; and I have told them
3938 it is all very true, and a great deal more. You will be delighted with
3939 them I am sure. They have brought the whole coach full of playthings
3940 for the children. How can you be so cross as not to come? Why they
3941 are your cousins, you know, after a fashion. YOU are my cousins, and
3942 they are my wife's, so you must be related."
3943
3944 But Sir John could not prevail. He could only obtain a promise of
3945 their calling at the Park within a day or two, and then left them in
3946 amazement at their indifference, to walk home and boast anew of their
3947 attractions to the Miss Steeles, as he had been already boasting of the
3948 Miss Steeles to them.
3949
3950 When their promised visit to the Park and consequent introduction to
3951 these young ladies took place, they found in the appearance of the
3952 eldest, who was nearly thirty, with a very plain and not a sensible
3953 face, nothing to admire; but in the other, who was not more than two or
3954 three and twenty, they acknowledged considerable beauty; her features
3955 were pretty, and she had a sharp quick eye, and a smartness of air,
3956 which though it did not give actual elegance or grace, gave distinction
3957 to her person.-- Their manners were particularly civil, and Elinor soon
3958 allowed them credit for some kind of sense, when she saw with what
3959 constant and judicious attention they were making themselves agreeable
3960 to Lady Middleton. With her children they were in continual raptures,
3961 extolling their beauty, courting their notice, and humouring their
3962 whims; and such of their time as could be spared from the importunate
3963 demands which this politeness made on it, was spent in admiration of
3964 whatever her ladyship was doing, if she happened to be doing any thing,
3965 or in taking patterns of some elegant new dress, in which her
3966 appearance the day before had thrown them into unceasing delight.
3967 Fortunately for those who pay their court through such foibles, a fond
3968 mother, though, in pursuit of praise for her children, the most
3969 rapacious of human beings, is likewise the most credulous; her demands
3970 are exorbitant; but she will swallow any thing; and the excessive
3971 affection and endurance of the Miss Steeles towards her offspring were
3972 viewed therefore by Lady Middleton without the smallest surprise or
3973 distrust. She saw with maternal complacency all the impertinent
3974 encroachments and mischievous tricks to which her cousins submitted.
3975 She saw their sashes untied, their hair pulled about their ears, their
3976 work-bags searched, and their knives and scissors stolen away, and felt
3977 no doubt of its being a reciprocal enjoyment. It suggested no other
3978 surprise than that Elinor and Marianne should sit so composedly by,
3979 without claiming a share in what was passing.
3980
3981 "John is in such spirits today!" said she, on his taking Miss Steeles's
3982 pocket handkerchief, and throwing it out of window--"He is full of
3983 monkey tricks."
3984
3985 And soon afterwards, on the second boy's violently pinching one of the
3986 same lady's fingers, she fondly observed, "How playful William is!"
3987
3988 "And here is my sweet little Annamaria," she added, tenderly caressing
3989 a little girl of three years old, who had not made a noise for the last
3990 two minutes; "And she is always so gentle and quiet--Never was there
3991 such a quiet little thing!"
3992
3993 But unfortunately in bestowing these embraces, a pin in her ladyship's
3994 head dress slightly scratching the child's neck, produced from this
3995 pattern of gentleness such violent screams, as could hardly be outdone
3996 by any creature professedly noisy. The mother's consternation was
3997 excessive; but it could not surpass the alarm of the Miss Steeles, and
3998 every thing was done by all three, in so critical an emergency, which
3999 affection could suggest as likely to assuage the agonies of the little
4000 sufferer. She was seated in her mother's lap, covered with kisses, her
4001 wound bathed with lavender-water, by one of the Miss Steeles, who was
4002 on her knees to attend her, and her mouth stuffed with sugar plums by
4003 the other. With such a reward for her tears, the child was too wise to
4004 cease crying. She still screamed and sobbed lustily, kicked her two
4005 brothers for offering to touch her, and all their united soothings were
4006 ineffectual till Lady Middleton luckily remembering that in a scene of
4007 similar distress last week, some apricot marmalade had been
4008 successfully applied for a bruised temple, the same remedy was eagerly
4009 proposed for this unfortunate scratch, and a slight intermission of
4010 screams in the young lady on hearing it, gave them reason to hope that
4011 it would not be rejected.-- She was carried out of the room therefore
4012 in her mother's arms, in quest of this medicine, and as the two boys
4013 chose to follow, though earnestly entreated by their mother to stay
4014 behind, the four young ladies were left in a quietness which the room
4015 had not known for many hours.
4016
4017 "Poor little creatures!" said Miss Steele, as soon as they were gone.
4018 "It might have been a very sad accident."
4019
4020 "Yet I hardly know how," cried Marianne, "unless it had been under
4021 totally different circumstances. But this is the usual way of
4022 heightening alarm, where there is nothing to be alarmed at in reality."
4023
4024 "What a sweet woman Lady Middleton is!" said Lucy Steele.
4025
4026 Marianne was silent; it was impossible for her to say what she did not
4027 feel, however trivial the occasion; and upon Elinor therefore the whole
4028 task of telling lies when politeness required it, always fell. She did
4029 her best when thus called on, by speaking of Lady Middleton with more
4030 warmth than she felt, though with far less than Miss Lucy.
4031
4032 "And Sir John too," cried the elder sister, "what a charming man he is!"
4033
4034 Here too, Miss Dashwood's commendation, being only simple and just,
4035 came in without any eclat. She merely observed that he was perfectly
4036 good humoured and friendly.
4037
4038 "And what a charming little family they have! I never saw such fine
4039 children in my life.--I declare I quite doat upon them already, and
4040 indeed I am always distractedly fond of children."
4041
4042 "I should guess so," said Elinor, with a smile, "from what I have
4043 witnessed this morning."
4044
4045 "I have a notion," said Lucy, "you think the little Middletons rather
4046 too much indulged; perhaps they may be the outside of enough; but it is
4047 so natural in Lady Middleton; and for my part, I love to see children
4048 full of life and spirits; I cannot bear them if they are tame and
4049 quiet."
4050
4051 "I confess," replied Elinor, "that while I am at Barton Park, I never
4052 think of tame and quiet children with any abhorrence."
4053
4054 A short pause succeeded this speech, which was first broken by Miss
4055 Steele, who seemed very much disposed for conversation, and who now
4056 said rather abruptly, "And how do you like Devonshire, Miss Dashwood?
4057 I suppose you were very sorry to leave Sussex."
4058
4059 In some surprise at the familiarity of this question, or at least of
4060 the manner in which it was spoken, Elinor replied that she was.
4061
4062 "Norland is a prodigious beautiful place, is not it?" added Miss Steele.
4063
4064 "We have heard Sir John admire it excessively," said Lucy, who seemed
4065 to think some apology necessary for the freedom of her sister.
4066
4067 "I think every one MUST admire it," replied Elinor, "who ever saw the
4068 place; though it is not to be supposed that any one can estimate its
4069 beauties as we do."
4070
4071 "And had you a great many smart beaux there? I suppose you have not so
4072 many in this part of the world; for my part, I think they are a vast
4073 addition always."
4074
4075 "But why should you think," said Lucy, looking ashamed of her sister,
4076 "that there are not as many genteel young men in Devonshire as Sussex?"
4077
4078 "Nay, my dear, I'm sure I don't pretend to say that there an't. I'm
4079 sure there's a vast many smart beaux in Exeter; but you know, how could
4080 I tell what smart beaux there might be about Norland; and I was only
4081 afraid the Miss Dashwoods might find it dull at Barton, if they had not
4082 so many as they used to have. But perhaps you young ladies may not
4083 care about the beaux, and had as lief be without them as with them.
4084 For my part, I think they are vastly agreeable, provided they dress
4085 smart and behave civil. But I can't bear to see them dirty and nasty.
4086 Now there's Mr. Rose at Exeter, a prodigious smart young man, quite a
4087 beau, clerk to Mr. Simpson, you know, and yet if you do but meet him of
4088 a morning, he is not fit to be seen.-- I suppose your brother was quite
4089 a beau, Miss Dashwood, before he married, as he was so rich?"
4090
4091 "Upon my word," replied Elinor, "I cannot tell you, for I do not
4092 perfectly comprehend the meaning of the word. But this I can say, that
4093 if he ever was a beau before he married, he is one still for there is
4094 not the smallest alteration in him."
4095
4096 "Oh! dear! one never thinks of married men's being beaux--they have
4097 something else to do."
4098
4099 "Lord! Anne," cried her sister, "you can talk of nothing but
4100 beaux;--you will make Miss Dashwood believe you think of nothing else."
4101 And then to turn the discourse, she began admiring the house and the
4102 furniture.
4103
4104 This specimen of the Miss Steeles was enough. The vulgar freedom and
4105 folly of the eldest left her no recommendation, and as Elinor was not
4106 blinded by the beauty, or the shrewd look of the youngest, to her want
4107 of real elegance and artlessness, she left the house without any wish
4108 of knowing them better.
4109
4110 Not so the Miss Steeles.--They came from Exeter, well provided with
4111 admiration for the use of Sir John Middleton, his family, and all his
4112 relations, and no niggardly proportion was now dealt out to his fair
4113 cousins, whom they declared to be the most beautiful, elegant,
4114 accomplished, and agreeable girls they had ever beheld, and with whom
4115 they were particularly anxious to be better acquainted.-- And to be
4116 better acquainted therefore, Elinor soon found was their inevitable
4117 lot, for as Sir John was entirely on the side of the Miss Steeles,
4118 their party would be too strong for opposition, and that kind of
4119 intimacy must be submitted to, which consists of sitting an hour or two
4120 together in the same room almost every day. Sir John could do no more;
4121 but he did not know that any more was required: to be together was, in
4122 his opinion, to be intimate, and while his continual schemes for their
4123 meeting were effectual, he had not a doubt of their being established
4124 friends.
4125
4126 To do him justice, he did every thing in his power to promote their
4127 unreserve, by making the Miss Steeles acquainted with whatever he knew
4128 or supposed of his cousins' situations in the most delicate
4129 particulars,--and Elinor had not seen them more than twice, before the
4130 eldest of them wished her joy on her sister's having been so lucky as
4131 to make a conquest of a very smart beau since she came to Barton.
4132
4133 "'Twill be a fine thing to have her married so young to be sure," said
4134 she, "and I hear he is quite a beau, and prodigious handsome. And I
4135 hope you may have as good luck yourself soon,--but perhaps you may have
4136 a friend in the corner already."
4137
4138 Elinor could not suppose that Sir John would be more nice in
4139 proclaiming his suspicions of her regard for Edward, than he had been
4140 with respect to Marianne; indeed it was rather his favourite joke of
4141 the two, as being somewhat newer and more conjectural; and since
4142 Edward's visit, they had never dined together without his drinking to
4143 her best affections with so much significancy and so many nods and
4144 winks, as to excite general attention. The letter F--had been likewise
4145 invariably brought forward, and found productive of such countless
4146 jokes, that its character as the wittiest letter in the alphabet had
4147 been long established with Elinor.
4148
4149 The Miss Steeles, as she expected, had now all the benefit of these
4150 jokes, and in the eldest of them they raised a curiosity to know the
4151 name of the gentleman alluded to, which, though often impertinently
4152 expressed, was perfectly of a piece with her general inquisitiveness
4153 into the concerns of their family. But Sir John did not sport long
4154 with the curiosity which he delighted to raise, for he had at least as
4155 much pleasure in telling the name, as Miss Steele had in hearing it.
4156
4157 "His name is Ferrars," said he, in a very audible whisper; "but pray do
4158 not tell it, for it's a great secret."
4159
4160 "Ferrars!" repeated Miss Steele; "Mr. Ferrars is the happy man, is he?
4161 What! your sister-in-law's brother, Miss Dashwood? a very agreeable
4162 young man to be sure; I know him very well."
4163
4164 "How can you say so, Anne?" cried Lucy, who generally made an amendment
4165 to all her sister's assertions. "Though we have seen him once or twice
4166 at my uncle's, it is rather too much to pretend to know him very well."
4167
4168 Elinor heard all this with attention and surprise. "And who was this
4169 uncle? Where did he live? How came they acquainted?" She wished very
4170 much to have the subject continued, though she did not chuse to join in
4171 it herself; but nothing more of it was said, and for the first time in
4172 her life, she thought Mrs. Jennings deficient either in curiosity after
4173 petty information, or in a disposition to communicate it. The manner
4174 in which Miss Steele had spoken of Edward, increased her curiosity; for
4175 it struck her as being rather ill-natured, and suggested the suspicion
4176 of that lady's knowing, or fancying herself to know something to his
4177 disadvantage.--But her curiosity was unavailing, for no farther notice
4178 was taken of Mr. Ferrars's name by Miss Steele when alluded to, or even
4179 openly mentioned by Sir John.
4180
4181
4182
4183 CHAPTER 22
4184
4185
4186 Marianne, who had never much toleration for any thing like
4187 impertinence, vulgarity, inferiority of parts, or even difference of
4188 taste from herself, was at this time particularly ill-disposed, from
4189 the state of her spirits, to be pleased with the Miss Steeles, or to
4190 encourage their advances; and to the invariable coldness of her
4191 behaviour towards them, which checked every endeavour at intimacy on
4192 their side, Elinor principally attributed that preference of herself
4193 which soon became evident in the manners of both, but especially of
4194 Lucy, who missed no opportunity of engaging her in conversation, or of
4195 striving to improve their acquaintance by an easy and frank
4196 communication of her sentiments.
4197
4198 Lucy was naturally clever; her remarks were often just and amusing; and
4199 as a companion for half an hour Elinor frequently found her agreeable;
4200 but her powers had received no aid from education: she was ignorant and
4201 illiterate; and her deficiency of all mental improvement, her want of
4202 information in the most common particulars, could not be concealed from
4203 Miss Dashwood, in spite of her constant endeavour to appear to
4204 advantage. Elinor saw, and pitied her for, the neglect of abilities
4205 which education might have rendered so respectable; but she saw, with
4206 less tenderness of feeling, the thorough want of delicacy, of
4207 rectitude, and integrity of mind, which her attentions, her
4208 assiduities, her flatteries at the Park betrayed; and she could have no
4209 lasting satisfaction in the company of a person who joined insincerity
4210 with ignorance; whose want of instruction prevented their meeting in
4211 conversation on terms of equality, and whose conduct toward others made
4212 every shew of attention and deference towards herself perfectly
4213 valueless.
4214
4215 "You will think my question an odd one, I dare say," said Lucy to her
4216 one day, as they were walking together from the park to the
4217 cottage--"but pray, are you personally acquainted with your
4218 sister-in-law's mother, Mrs. Ferrars?"
4219
4220 Elinor DID think the question a very odd one, and her countenance
4221 expressed it, as she answered that she had never seen Mrs. Ferrars.
4222
4223 "Indeed!" replied Lucy; "I wonder at that, for I thought you must have
4224 seen her at Norland sometimes. Then, perhaps, you cannot tell me what
4225 sort of a woman she is?"
4226
4227 "No," returned Elinor, cautious of giving her real opinion of Edward's
4228 mother, and not very desirous of satisfying what seemed impertinent
4229 curiosity-- "I know nothing of her."
4230
4231 "I am sure you think me very strange, for enquiring about her in such a
4232 way," said Lucy, eyeing Elinor attentively as she spoke; "but perhaps
4233 there may be reasons--I wish I might venture; but however I hope you
4234 will do me the justice of believing that I do not mean to be
4235 impertinent."
4236
4237 Elinor made her a civil reply, and they walked on for a few minutes in
4238 silence. It was broken by Lucy, who renewed the subject again by
4239 saying, with some hesitation,
4240
4241 "I cannot bear to have you think me impertinently curious. I am sure I
4242 would rather do any thing in the world than be thought so by a person
4243 whose good opinion is so well worth having as yours. And I am sure I
4244 should not have the smallest fear of trusting YOU; indeed, I should be
4245 very glad of your advice how to manage in such an uncomfortable
4246 situation as I am; but, however, there is no occasion to trouble YOU.
4247 I am sorry you do not happen to know Mrs. Ferrars."
4248
4249 "I am sorry I do NOT," said Elinor, in great astonishment, "if it could
4250 be of any use to YOU to know my opinion of her. But really I never
4251 understood that you were at all connected with that family, and
4252 therefore I am a little surprised, I confess, at so serious an inquiry
4253 into her character."
4254
4255 "I dare say you are, and I am sure I do not at all wonder at it. But
4256 if I dared tell you all, you would not be so much surprised. Mrs.
4257 Ferrars is certainly nothing to me at present--but the time MAY
4258 come--how soon it will come must depend upon herself--when we may be
4259 very intimately connected."
4260
4261 She looked down as she said this, amiably bashful, with only one side
4262 glance at her companion to observe its effect on her.
4263
4264 "Good heavens!" cried Elinor, "what do you mean? Are you acquainted
4265 with Mr. Robert Ferrars? Can you be?" And she did not feel much
4266 delighted with the idea of such a sister-in-law.
4267
4268 "No," replied Lucy, "not to Mr. ROBERT Ferrars--I never saw him in my
4269 life; but," fixing her eyes upon Elinor, "to his eldest brother."
4270
4271 What felt Elinor at that moment? Astonishment, that would have been as
4272 painful as it was strong, had not an immediate disbelief of the
4273 assertion attended it. She turned towards Lucy in silent amazement,
4274 unable to divine the reason or object of such a declaration; and though
4275 her complexion varied, she stood firm in incredulity, and felt in no
4276 danger of an hysterical fit, or a swoon.
4277
4278 "You may well be surprised," continued Lucy; "for to be sure you could
4279 have had no idea of it before; for I dare say he never dropped the
4280 smallest hint of it to you or any of your family; because it was always
4281 meant to be a great secret, and I am sure has been faithfully kept so
4282 by me to this hour. Not a soul of all my relations know of it but
4283 Anne, and I never should have mentioned it to you, if I had not felt
4284 the greatest dependence in the world upon your secrecy; and I really
4285 thought my behaviour in asking so many questions about Mrs. Ferrars
4286 must seem so odd, that it ought to be explained. And I do not think
4287 Mr. Ferrars can be displeased, when he knows I have trusted you,
4288 because I know he has the highest opinion in the world of all your
4289 family, and looks upon yourself and the other Miss Dashwoods quite as
4290 his own sisters."--She paused.
4291
4292 Elinor for a few moments remained silent. Her astonishment at what she
4293 heard was at first too great for words; but at length forcing herself
4294 to speak, and to speak cautiously, she said, with calmness of manner,
4295 which tolerably well concealed her surprise and solicitude-- "May I ask
4296 if your engagement is of long standing?"
4297
4298 "We have been engaged these four years."
4299
4300 "Four years!"
4301
4302 "Yes."
4303
4304 Elinor, though greatly shocked, still felt unable to believe it.
4305
4306 "I did not know," said she, "that you were even acquainted till the
4307 other day."
4308
4309 "Our acquaintance, however, is of many years date. He was under my
4310 uncle's care, you know, a considerable while."
4311
4312 "Your uncle!"
4313
4314 "Yes; Mr. Pratt. Did you never hear him talk of Mr. Pratt?"
4315
4316 "I think I have," replied Elinor, with an exertion of spirits, which
4317 increased with her increase of emotion.
4318
4319 "He was four years with my uncle, who lives at Longstaple, near
4320 Plymouth. It was there our acquaintance begun, for my sister and me
4321 was often staying with my uncle, and it was there our engagement was
4322 formed, though not till a year after he had quitted as a pupil; but he
4323 was almost always with us afterwards. I was very unwilling to enter
4324 into it, as you may imagine, without the knowledge and approbation of
4325 his mother; but I was too young, and loved him too well, to be so
4326 prudent as I ought to have been.-- Though you do not know him so well
4327 as me, Miss Dashwood, you must have seen enough of him to be sensible
4328 he is very capable of making a woman sincerely attached to him."
4329
4330 "Certainly," answered Elinor, without knowing what she said; but after
4331 a moment's reflection, she added, with revived security of Edward's
4332 honour and love, and her companion's falsehood--"Engaged to Mr. Edward
4333 Ferrars!--I confess myself so totally surprised at what you tell me,
4334 that really--I beg your pardon; but surely there must be some mistake
4335 of person or name. We cannot mean the same Mr. Ferrars."
4336
4337 "We can mean no other," cried Lucy, smiling. "Mr. Edward Ferrars, the
4338 eldest son of Mrs. Ferrars, of Park Street, and brother of your
4339 sister-in-law, Mrs. John Dashwood, is the person I mean; you must allow
4340 that I am not likely to be deceived as to the name of the man on who
4341 all my happiness depends."
4342
4343 "It is strange," replied Elinor, in a most painful perplexity, "that I
4344 should never have heard him even mention your name."
4345
4346 "No; considering our situation, it was not strange. Our first care has
4347 been to keep the matter secret.-- You knew nothing of me, or my family,
4348 and, therefore, there could be no OCCASION for ever mentioning my name
4349 to you; and, as he was always particularly afraid of his sister's
4350 suspecting any thing, THAT was reason enough for his not mentioning it."
4351
4352 She was silent.--Elinor's security sunk; but her self-command did not
4353 sink with it.
4354
4355 "Four years you have been engaged," said she with a firm voice.
4356
4357 "Yes; and heaven knows how much longer we may have to wait. Poor
4358 Edward! It puts him quite out of heart." Then taking a small miniature
4359 from her pocket, she added, "To prevent the possibility of mistake, be
4360 so good as to look at this face. It does not do him justice, to be
4361 sure, but yet I think you cannot be deceived as to the person it was
4362 drew for.--I have had it above these three years."
4363
4364 She put it into her hands as she spoke; and when Elinor saw the
4365 painting, whatever other doubts her fear of a too hasty decision, or
4366 her wish of detecting falsehood might suffer to linger in her mind, she
4367 could have none of its being Edward's face. She returned it almost
4368 instantly, acknowledging the likeness.
4369
4370 "I have never been able," continued Lucy, "to give him my picture in
4371 return, which I am very much vexed at, for he has been always so
4372 anxious to get it! But I am determined to set for it the very first
4373 opportunity."
4374
4375 "You are quite in the right," replied Elinor calmly. They then
4376 proceeded a few paces in silence. Lucy spoke first.
4377
4378 "I am sure," said she, "I have no doubt in the world of your faithfully
4379 keeping this secret, because you must know of what importance it is to
4380 us, not to have it reach his mother; for she would never approve of it,
4381 I dare say. I shall have no fortune, and I fancy she is an exceeding
4382 proud woman."
4383
4384 "I certainly did not seek your confidence," said Elinor; "but you do me
4385 no more than justice in imagining that I may be depended on. Your
4386 secret is safe with me; but pardon me if I express some surprise at so
4387 unnecessary a communication. You must at least have felt that my being
4388 acquainted with it could not add to its safety."
4389
4390 As she said this, she looked earnestly at Lucy, hoping to discover
4391 something in her countenance; perhaps the falsehood of the greatest
4392 part of what she had been saying; but Lucy's countenance suffered no
4393 change.
4394
4395 "I was afraid you would think I was taking a great liberty with you,"
4396 said she, "in telling you all this. I have not known you long to be
4397 sure, personally at least, but I have known you and all your family by
4398 description a great while; and as soon as I saw you, I felt almost as
4399 if you was an old acquaintance. Besides in the present case, I really
4400 thought some explanation was due to you after my making such particular
4401 inquiries about Edward's mother; and I am so unfortunate, that I have
4402 not a creature whose advice I can ask. Anne is the only person that
4403 knows of it, and she has no judgment at all; indeed, she does me a
4404 great deal more harm than good, for I am in constant fear of her
4405 betraying me. She does not know how to hold her tongue, as you must
4406 perceive, and I am sure I was in the greatest fright in the world
4407 t'other day, when Edward's name was mentioned by Sir John, lest she
4408 should out with it all. You can't think how much I go through in my
4409 mind from it altogether. I only wonder that I am alive after what I
4410 have suffered for Edward's sake these last four years. Every thing in
4411 such suspense and uncertainty; and seeing him so seldom--we can hardly
4412 meet above twice a-year. I am sure I wonder my heart is not quite
4413 broke."
4414
4415 Here she took out her handkerchief; but Elinor did not feel very
4416 compassionate.
4417
4418 "Sometimes." continued Lucy, after wiping her eyes, "I think whether it
4419 would not be better for us both to break off the matter entirely." As
4420 she said this, she looked directly at her companion. "But then at
4421 other times I have not resolution enough for it.-- I cannot bear the
4422 thoughts of making him so miserable, as I know the very mention of such
4423 a thing would do. And on my own account too--so dear as he is to me--I
4424 don't think I could be equal to it. What would you advise me to do in
4425 such a case, Miss Dashwood? What would you do yourself?"
4426
4427 "Pardon me," replied Elinor, startled by the question; "but I can give
4428 you no advice under such circumstances. Your own judgment must direct
4429 you."
4430
4431 "To be sure," continued Lucy, after a few minutes silence on both
4432 sides, "his mother must provide for him sometime or other; but poor
4433 Edward is so cast down by it! Did you not think him dreadful
4434 low-spirited when he was at Barton? He was so miserable when he left
4435 us at Longstaple, to go to you, that I was afraid you would think him
4436 quite ill."
4437
4438 "Did he come from your uncle's, then, when he visited us?"
4439
4440 "Oh, yes; he had been staying a fortnight with us. Did you think he
4441 came directly from town?"
4442
4443 "No," replied Elinor, most feelingly sensible of every fresh
4444 circumstance in favour of Lucy's veracity; "I remember he told us, that
4445 he had been staying a fortnight with some friends near Plymouth." She
4446 remembered too, her own surprise at the time, at his mentioning nothing
4447 farther of those friends, at his total silence with respect even to
4448 their names.
4449
4450 "Did not you think him sadly out of spirits?" repeated Lucy.
4451
4452 "We did, indeed, particularly so when he first arrived."
4453
4454 "I begged him to exert himself for fear you should suspect what was the
4455 matter; but it made him so melancholy, not being able to stay more than
4456 a fortnight with us, and seeing me so much affected.-- Poor fellow!--I
4457 am afraid it is just the same with him now; for he writes in wretched
4458 spirits. I heard from him just before I left Exeter;" taking a letter
4459 from her pocket and carelessly showing the direction to Elinor. "You
4460 know his hand, I dare say, a charming one it is; but that is not
4461 written so well as usual.--He was tired, I dare say, for he had just
4462 filled the sheet to me as full as possible."
4463
4464 Elinor saw that it WAS his hand, and she could doubt no longer. This
4465 picture, she had allowed herself to believe, might have been
4466 accidentally obtained; it might not have been Edward's gift; but a
4467 correspondence between them by letter, could subsist only under a
4468 positive engagement, could be authorised by nothing else; for a few
4469 moments, she was almost overcome--her heart sunk within her, and she
4470 could hardly stand; but exertion was indispensably necessary; and she
4471 struggled so resolutely against the oppression of her feelings, that
4472 her success was speedy, and for the time complete.
4473
4474 "Writing to each other," said Lucy, returning the letter into her
4475 pocket, "is the only comfort we have in such long separations. Yes, I
4476 have one other comfort in his picture, but poor Edward has not even
4477 THAT. If he had but my picture, he says he should be easy. I gave him
4478 a lock of my hair set in a ring when he was at Longstaple last, and
4479 that was some comfort to him, he said, but not equal to a picture.
4480 Perhaps you might notice the ring when you saw him?"
4481
4482 "I did," said Elinor, with a composure of voice, under which was
4483 concealed an emotion and distress beyond any thing she had ever felt
4484 before. She was mortified, shocked, confounded.
4485
4486 Fortunately for her, they had now reached the cottage, and the
4487 conversation could be continued no farther. After sitting with them a
4488 few minutes, the Miss Steeles returned to the Park, and Elinor was then
4489 at liberty to think and be wretched.
4490
4491
4492
4493
4494
4495 [At this point in the first and second editions, Volume 1 ends.]
4496
4497
4498
4499
4500
4501 CHAPTER 23
4502
4503
4504 However small Elinor's general dependence on Lucy's veracity might be,
4505 it was impossible for her on serious reflection to suspect it in the
4506 present case, where no temptation could be answerable to the folly of
4507 inventing a falsehood of such a description. What Lucy had asserted to
4508 be true, therefore, Elinor could not, dared not longer doubt; supported
4509 as it was too on every side by such probabilities and proofs, and
4510 contradicted by nothing but her own wishes. Their opportunity of
4511 acquaintance in the house of Mr. Pratt was a foundation for the rest,
4512 at once indisputable and alarming; and Edward's visit near Plymouth,
4513 his melancholy state of mind, his dissatisfaction at his own prospects,
4514 his uncertain behaviour towards herself, the intimate knowledge of the
4515 Miss Steeles as to Norland and their family connections, which had
4516 often surprised her, the picture, the letter, the ring, formed
4517 altogether such a body of evidence, as overcame every fear of
4518 condemning him unfairly, and established as a fact, which no partiality
4519 could set aside, his ill-treatment of herself.--Her resentment of such
4520 behaviour, her indignation at having been its dupe, for a short time
4521 made her feel only for herself; but other ideas, other considerations,
4522 soon arose. Had Edward been intentionally deceiving her? Had he
4523 feigned a regard for her which he did not feel? Was his engagement to
4524 Lucy an engagement of the heart? No; whatever it might once have been,
4525 she could not believe it such at present. His affection was all her
4526 own. She could not be deceived in that. Her mother, sisters, Fanny,
4527 all had been conscious of his regard for her at Norland; it was not an
4528 illusion of her own vanity. He certainly loved her. What a softener
4529 of the heart was this persuasion! How much could it not tempt her to
4530 forgive! He had been blamable, highly blamable, in remaining at
4531 Norland after he first felt her influence over him to be more than it
4532 ought to be. In that, he could not be defended; but if he had injured
4533 her, how much more had he injured himself; if her case were pitiable,
4534 his was hopeless. His imprudence had made her miserable for a while;
4535 but it seemed to have deprived himself of all chance of ever being
4536 otherwise. She might in time regain tranquillity; but HE, what had he
4537 to look forward to? Could he ever be tolerably happy with Lucy Steele;
4538 could he, were his affection for herself out of the question, with his
4539 integrity, his delicacy, and well-informed mind, be satisfied with a
4540 wife like her--illiterate, artful, and selfish?
4541
4542 The youthful infatuation of nineteen would naturally blind him to every
4543 thing but her beauty and good nature; but the four succeeding
4544 years--years, which if rationally spent, give such improvement to the
4545 understanding, must have opened his eyes to her defects of education,
4546 while the same period of time, spent on her side in inferior society
4547 and more frivolous pursuits, had perhaps robbed her of that simplicity
4548 which might once have given an interesting character to her beauty.
4549
4550 If in the supposition of his seeking to marry herself, his difficulties
4551 from his mother had seemed great, how much greater were they now likely
4552 to be, when the object of his engagement was undoubtedly inferior in
4553 connections, and probably inferior in fortune to herself. These
4554 difficulties, indeed, with a heart so alienated from Lucy, might not
4555 press very hard upon his patience; but melancholy was the state of the
4556 person by whom the expectation of family opposition and unkindness,
4557 could be felt as a relief!
4558
4559 As these considerations occurred to her in painful succession, she wept
4560 for him, more than for herself. Supported by the conviction of having
4561 done nothing to merit her present unhappiness, and consoled by the
4562 belief that Edward had done nothing to forfeit her esteem, she thought
4563 she could even now, under the first smart of the heavy blow, command
4564 herself enough to guard every suspicion of the truth from her mother
4565 and sisters. And so well was she able to answer her own expectations,
4566 that when she joined them at dinner only two hours after she had first
4567 suffered the extinction of all her dearest hopes, no one would have
4568 supposed from the appearance of the sisters, that Elinor was mourning
4569 in secret over obstacles which must divide her for ever from the object
4570 of her love, and that Marianne was internally dwelling on the
4571 perfections of a man, of whose whole heart she felt thoroughly
4572 possessed, and whom she expected to see in every carriage which drove
4573 near their house.
4574
4575 The necessity of concealing from her mother and Marianne, what had been
4576 entrusted in confidence to herself, though it obliged her to unceasing
4577 exertion, was no aggravation of Elinor's distress. On the contrary it
4578 was a relief to her, to be spared the communication of what would give
4579 such affliction to them, and to be saved likewise from hearing that
4580 condemnation of Edward, which would probably flow from the excess of
4581 their partial affection for herself, and which was more than she felt
4582 equal to support.
4583
4584 From their counsel, or their conversation, she knew she could receive
4585 no assistance, their tenderness and sorrow must add to her distress,
4586 while her self-command would neither receive encouragement from their
4587 example nor from their praise. She was stronger alone, and her own
4588 good sense so well supported her, that her firmness was as unshaken,
4589 her appearance of cheerfulness as invariable, as with regrets so
4590 poignant and so fresh, it was possible for them to be.
4591
4592 Much as she had suffered from her first conversation with Lucy on the
4593 subject, she soon felt an earnest wish of renewing it; and this for
4594 more reasons than one. She wanted to hear many particulars of their
4595 engagement repeated again, she wanted more clearly to understand what
4596 Lucy really felt for Edward, whether there were any sincerity in her
4597 declaration of tender regard for him, and she particularly wanted to
4598 convince Lucy, by her readiness to enter on the matter again, and her
4599 calmness in conversing on it, that she was no otherwise interested in
4600 it than as a friend, which she very much feared her involuntary
4601 agitation, in their morning discourse, must have left at least
4602 doubtful. That Lucy was disposed to be jealous of her appeared very
4603 probable: it was plain that Edward had always spoken highly in her
4604 praise, not merely from Lucy's assertion, but from her venturing to
4605 trust her on so short a personal acquaintance, with a secret so
4606 confessedly and evidently important. And even Sir John's joking
4607 intelligence must have had some weight. But indeed, while Elinor
4608 remained so well assured within herself of being really beloved by
4609 Edward, it required no other consideration of probabilities to make it
4610 natural that Lucy should be jealous; and that she was so, her very
4611 confidence was a proof. What other reason for the disclosure of the
4612 affair could there be, but that Elinor might be informed by it of
4613 Lucy's superior claims on Edward, and be taught to avoid him in future?
4614 She had little difficulty in understanding thus much of her rival's
4615 intentions, and while she was firmly resolved to act by her as every
4616 principle of honour and honesty directed, to combat her own affection
4617 for Edward and to see him as little as possible; she could not deny
4618 herself the comfort of endeavouring to convince Lucy that her heart was
4619 unwounded. And as she could now have nothing more painful to hear on
4620 the subject than had already been told, she did not mistrust her own
4621 ability of going through a repetition of particulars with composure.
4622
4623 But it was not immediately that an opportunity of doing so could be
4624 commanded, though Lucy was as well disposed as herself to take
4625 advantage of any that occurred; for the weather was not often fine
4626 enough to allow of their joining in a walk, where they might most
4627 easily separate themselves from the others; and though they met at
4628 least every other evening either at the park or cottage, and chiefly at
4629 the former, they could not be supposed to meet for the sake of
4630 conversation. Such a thought would never enter either Sir John or Lady
4631 Middleton's head; and therefore very little leisure was ever given for
4632 a general chat, and none at all for particular discourse. They met for
4633 the sake of eating, drinking, and laughing together, playing at cards,
4634 or consequences, or any other game that was sufficiently noisy.
4635
4636 One or two meetings of this kind had taken place, without affording
4637 Elinor any chance of engaging Lucy in private, when Sir John called at
4638 the cottage one morning, to beg, in the name of charity, that they
4639 would all dine with Lady Middleton that day, as he was obliged to
4640 attend the club at Exeter, and she would otherwise be quite alone,
4641 except her mother and the two Miss Steeles. Elinor, who foresaw a
4642 fairer opening for the point she had in view, in such a party as this
4643 was likely to be, more at liberty among themselves under the tranquil
4644 and well-bred direction of Lady Middleton than when her husband united
4645 them together in one noisy purpose, immediately accepted the
4646 invitation; Margaret, with her mother's permission, was equally
4647 compliant, and Marianne, though always unwilling to join any of their
4648 parties, was persuaded by her mother, who could not bear to have her
4649 seclude herself from any chance of amusement, to go likewise.
4650
4651 The young ladies went, and Lady Middleton was happily preserved from
4652 the frightful solitude which had threatened her. The insipidity of the
4653 meeting was exactly such as Elinor had expected; it produced not one
4654 novelty of thought or expression, and nothing could be less interesting
4655 than the whole of their discourse both in the dining parlour and
4656 drawing room: to the latter, the children accompanied them, and while
4657 they remained there, she was too well convinced of the impossibility of
4658 engaging Lucy's attention to attempt it. They quitted it only with the
4659 removal of the tea-things. The card-table was then placed, and Elinor
4660 began to wonder at herself for having ever entertained a hope of
4661 finding time for conversation at the park. They all rose up in
4662 preparation for a round game.
4663
4664 "I am glad," said Lady Middleton to Lucy, "you are not going to finish
4665 poor little Annamaria's basket this evening; for I am sure it must hurt
4666 your eyes to work filigree by candlelight. And we will make the dear
4667 little love some amends for her disappointment to-morrow, and then I
4668 hope she will not much mind it."
4669
4670 This hint was enough, Lucy recollected herself instantly and replied,
4671 "Indeed you are very much mistaken, Lady Middleton; I am only waiting
4672 to know whether you can make your party without me, or I should have
4673 been at my filigree already. I would not disappoint the little angel
4674 for all the world: and if you want me at the card-table now, I am
4675 resolved to finish the basket after supper."
4676
4677 "You are very good, I hope it won't hurt your eyes--will you ring the
4678 bell for some working candles? My poor little girl would be sadly
4679 disappointed, I know, if the basket was not finished tomorrow, for
4680 though I told her it certainly would not, I am sure she depends upon
4681 having it done."
4682
4683 Lucy directly drew her work table near her and reseated herself with an
4684 alacrity and cheerfulness which seemed to infer that she could taste no
4685 greater delight than in making a filigree basket for a spoilt child.
4686
4687 Lady Middleton proposed a rubber of Casino to the others. No one made
4688 any objection but Marianne, who with her usual inattention to the forms
4689 of general civility, exclaimed, "Your Ladyship will have the goodness
4690 to excuse ME--you know I detest cards. I shall go to the piano-forte;
4691 I have not touched it since it was tuned." And without farther
4692 ceremony, she turned away and walked to the instrument.
4693
4694 Lady Middleton looked as if she thanked heaven that SHE had never made
4695 so rude a speech.
4696
4697 "Marianne can never keep long from that instrument you know, ma'am,"
4698 said Elinor, endeavouring to smooth away the offence; "and I do not
4699 much wonder at it; for it is the very best toned piano-forte I ever
4700 heard."
4701
4702 The remaining five were now to draw their cards.
4703
4704 "Perhaps," continued Elinor, "if I should happen to cut out, I may be
4705 of some use to Miss Lucy Steele, in rolling her papers for her; and
4706 there is so much still to be done to the basket, that it must be
4707 impossible I think for her labour singly, to finish it this evening. I
4708 should like the work exceedingly, if she would allow me a share in it."
4709
4710 "Indeed I shall be very much obliged to you for your help," cried Lucy,
4711 "for I find there is more to be done to it than I thought there was;
4712 and it would be a shocking thing to disappoint dear Annamaria after
4713 all."
4714
4715 "Oh! that would be terrible, indeed," said Miss Steele-- "Dear little
4716 soul, how I do love her!"
4717
4718 "You are very kind," said Lady Middleton to Elinor; "and as you really
4719 like the work, perhaps you will be as well pleased not to cut in till
4720 another rubber, or will you take your chance now?"
4721
4722 Elinor joyfully profited by the first of these proposals, and thus by a
4723 little of that address which Marianne could never condescend to
4724 practise, gained her own end, and pleased Lady Middleton at the same
4725 time. Lucy made room for her with ready attention, and the two fair
4726 rivals were thus seated side by side at the same table, and, with the
4727 utmost harmony, engaged in forwarding the same work. The pianoforte at
4728 which Marianne, wrapped up in her own music and her own thoughts, had
4729 by this time forgotten that any body was in the room besides herself,
4730 was luckily so near them that Miss Dashwood now judged she might
4731 safely, under the shelter of its noise, introduce the interesting
4732 subject, without any risk of being heard at the card-table.
4733
4734
4735
4736 CHAPTER 24
4737
4738
4739 In a firm, though cautious tone, Elinor thus began.
4740
4741 "I should be undeserving of the confidence you have honoured me with,
4742 if I felt no desire for its continuance, or no farther curiosity on its
4743 subject. I will not apologize therefore for bringing it forward again."
4744
4745 "Thank you," cried Lucy warmly, "for breaking the ice; you have set my
4746 heart at ease by it; for I was somehow or other afraid I had offended
4747 you by what I told you that Monday."
4748
4749 "Offended me! How could you suppose so? Believe me," and Elinor spoke
4750 it with the truest sincerity, "nothing could be farther from my
4751 intention than to give you such an idea. Could you have a motive for
4752 the trust, that was not honourable and flattering to me?"
4753
4754 "And yet I do assure you," replied Lucy, her little sharp eyes full of
4755 meaning, "there seemed to me to be a coldness and displeasure in your
4756 manner that made me quite uncomfortable. I felt sure that you was
4757 angry with me; and have been quarrelling with myself ever since, for
4758 having took such a liberty as to trouble you with my affairs. But I am
4759 very glad to find it was only my own fancy, and that you really do not
4760 blame me. If you knew what a consolation it was to me to relieve my
4761 heart speaking to you of what I am always thinking of every moment of
4762 my life, your compassion would make you overlook every thing else I am
4763 sure."
4764
4765 "Indeed, I can easily believe that it was a very great relief to you,
4766 to acknowledge your situation to me, and be assured that you shall
4767 never have reason to repent it. Your case is a very unfortunate one;
4768 you seem to me to be surrounded with difficulties, and you will have
4769 need of all your mutual affection to support you under them. Mr.
4770 Ferrars, I believe, is entirely dependent on his mother."
4771
4772 "He has only two thousand pounds of his own; it would be madness to
4773 marry upon that, though for my own part, I could give up every prospect
4774 of more without a sigh. I have been always used to a very small
4775 income, and could struggle with any poverty for him; but I love him too
4776 well to be the selfish means of robbing him, perhaps, of all that his
4777 mother might give him if he married to please her. We must wait, it
4778 may be for many years. With almost every other man in the world, it
4779 would be an alarming prospect; but Edward's affection and constancy
4780 nothing can deprive me of I know."
4781
4782 "That conviction must be every thing to you; and he is undoubtedly
4783 supported by the same trust in your's. If the strength of your
4784 reciprocal attachment had failed, as between many people, and under
4785 many circumstances it naturally would during a four years' engagement,
4786 your situation would have been pitiable, indeed."
4787
4788 Lucy here looked up; but Elinor was careful in guarding her countenance
4789 from every expression that could give her words a suspicious tendency.
4790
4791 "Edward's love for me," said Lucy, "has been pretty well put to the
4792 test, by our long, very long absence since we were first engaged, and
4793 it has stood the trial so well, that I should be unpardonable to doubt
4794 it now. I can safely say that he has never gave me one moment's alarm
4795 on that account from the first."
4796
4797 Elinor hardly knew whether to smile or sigh at this assertion.
4798
4799 Lucy went on. "I am rather of a jealous temper too by nature, and from
4800 our different situations in life, from his being so much more in the
4801 world than me, and our continual separation, I was enough inclined for
4802 suspicion, to have found out the truth in an instant, if there had been
4803 the slightest alteration in his behaviour to me when we met, or any
4804 lowness of spirits that I could not account for, or if he had talked
4805 more of one lady than another, or seemed in any respect less happy at
4806 Longstaple than he used to be. I do not mean to say that I am
4807 particularly observant or quick-sighted in general, but in such a case
4808 I am sure I could not be deceived."
4809
4810 "All this," thought Elinor, "is very pretty; but it can impose upon
4811 neither of us."
4812
4813 "But what," said she after a short silence, "are your views? or have
4814 you none but that of waiting for Mrs. Ferrars's death, which is a
4815 melancholy and shocking extremity?--Is her son determined to submit to
4816 this, and to all the tediousness of the many years of suspense in which
4817 it may involve you, rather than run the risk of her displeasure for a
4818 while by owning the truth?"
4819
4820 "If we could be certain that it would be only for a while! But Mrs.
4821 Ferrars is a very headstrong proud woman, and in her first fit of anger
4822 upon hearing it, would very likely secure every thing to Robert, and
4823 the idea of that, for Edward's sake, frightens away all my inclination
4824 for hasty measures."
4825
4826 "And for your own sake too, or you are carrying your disinterestedness
4827 beyond reason."
4828
4829 Lucy looked at Elinor again, and was silent.
4830
4831 "Do you know Mr. Robert Ferrars?" asked Elinor.
4832
4833 "Not at all--I never saw him; but I fancy he is very unlike his
4834 brother--silly and a great coxcomb."
4835
4836 "A great coxcomb!" repeated Miss Steele, whose ear had caught those
4837 words by a sudden pause in Marianne's music.-- "Oh, they are talking of
4838 their favourite beaux, I dare say."
4839
4840 "No sister," cried Lucy, "you are mistaken there, our favourite beaux
4841 are NOT great coxcombs."
4842
4843 "I can answer for it that Miss Dashwood's is not," said Mrs. Jennings,
4844 laughing heartily; "for he is one of the modestest, prettiest behaved
4845 young men I ever saw; but as for Lucy, she is such a sly little
4846 creature, there is no finding out who SHE likes."
4847
4848 "Oh," cried Miss Steele, looking significantly round at them, "I dare
4849 say Lucy's beau is quite as modest and pretty behaved as Miss
4850 Dashwood's."
4851
4852 Elinor blushed in spite of herself. Lucy bit her lip, and looked
4853 angrily at her sister. A mutual silence took place for some time.
4854 Lucy first put an end to it by saying in a lower tone, though Marianne
4855 was then giving them the powerful protection of a very magnificent
4856 concerto--
4857
4858 "I will honestly tell you of one scheme which has lately come into my
4859 head, for bringing matters to bear; indeed I am bound to let you into
4860 the secret, for you are a party concerned. I dare say you have seen
4861 enough of Edward to know that he would prefer the church to every other
4862 profession; now my plan is that he should take orders as soon as he
4863 can, and then through your interest, which I am sure you would be kind
4864 enough to use out of friendship for him, and I hope out of some regard
4865 to me, your brother might be persuaded to give him Norland living;
4866 which I understand is a very good one, and the present incumbent not
4867 likely to live a great while. That would be enough for us to marry
4868 upon, and we might trust to time and chance for the rest."
4869
4870 "I should always be happy," replied Elinor, "to show any mark of my
4871 esteem and friendship for Mr. Ferrars; but do you not perceive that my
4872 interest on such an occasion would be perfectly unnecessary? He is
4873 brother to Mrs. John Dashwood--THAT must be recommendation enough to
4874 her husband."
4875
4876 "But Mrs. John Dashwood would not much approve of Edward's going into
4877 orders."
4878
4879 "Then I rather suspect that my interest would do very little."
4880
4881 They were again silent for many minutes. At length Lucy exclaimed with
4882 a deep sigh,
4883
4884 "I believe it would be the wisest way to put an end to the business at
4885 once by dissolving the engagement. We seem so beset with difficulties
4886 on every side, that though it would make us miserable for a time, we
4887 should be happier perhaps in the end. But you will not give me your
4888 advice, Miss Dashwood?"
4889
4890 "No," answered Elinor, with a smile, which concealed very agitated
4891 feelings, "on such a subject I certainly will not. You know very well
4892 that my opinion would have no weight with you, unless it were on the
4893 side of your wishes."
4894
4895 "Indeed you wrong me," replied Lucy, with great solemnity; "I know
4896 nobody of whose judgment I think so highly as I do of yours; and I do
4897 really believe, that if you was to say to me, 'I advise you by all
4898 means to put an end to your engagement with Edward Ferrars, it will be
4899 more for the happiness of both of you,' I should resolve upon doing it
4900 immediately."
4901
4902 Elinor blushed for the insincerity of Edward's future wife, and
4903 replied, "This compliment would effectually frighten me from giving any
4904 opinion on the subject had I formed one. It raises my influence much
4905 too high; the power of dividing two people so tenderly attached is too
4906 much for an indifferent person."
4907
4908 "'Tis because you are an indifferent person," said Lucy, with some
4909 pique, and laying a particular stress on those words, "that your
4910 judgment might justly have such weight with me. If you could be
4911 supposed to be biased in any respect by your own feelings, your opinion
4912 would not be worth having."
4913
4914 Elinor thought it wisest to make no answer to this, lest they might
4915 provoke each other to an unsuitable increase of ease and unreserve; and
4916 was even partly determined never to mention the subject again. Another
4917 pause therefore of many minutes' duration, succeeded this speech, and
4918 Lucy was still the first to end it.
4919
4920 "Shall you be in town this winter, Miss Dashwood?" said she with all
4921 her accustomary complacency.
4922
4923 "Certainly not."
4924
4925 "I am sorry for that," returned the other, while her eyes brightened at
4926 the information, "it would have gave me such pleasure to meet you
4927 there! But I dare say you will go for all that. To be sure, your
4928 brother and sister will ask you to come to them."
4929
4930 "It will not be in my power to accept their invitation if they do."
4931
4932 "How unlucky that is! I had quite depended upon meeting you there.
4933 Anne and me are to go the latter end of January to some relations who
4934 have been wanting us to visit them these several years! But I only go
4935 for the sake of seeing Edward. He will be there in February, otherwise
4936 London would have no charms for me; I have not spirits for it."
4937
4938 Elinor was soon called to the card-table by the conclusion of the first
4939 rubber, and the confidential discourse of the two ladies was therefore
4940 at an end, to which both of them submitted without any reluctance, for
4941 nothing had been said on either side to make them dislike each other
4942 less than they had done before; and Elinor sat down to the card table
4943 with the melancholy persuasion that Edward was not only without
4944 affection for the person who was to be his wife; but that he had not
4945 even the chance of being tolerably happy in marriage, which sincere
4946 affection on HER side would have given, for self-interest alone could
4947 induce a woman to keep a man to an engagement, of which she seemed so
4948 thoroughly aware that he was weary.
4949
4950 From this time the subject was never revived by Elinor, and when
4951 entered on by Lucy, who seldom missed an opportunity of introducing it,
4952 and was particularly careful to inform her confidante, of her happiness
4953 whenever she received a letter from Edward, it was treated by the
4954 former with calmness and caution, and dismissed as soon as civility
4955 would allow; for she felt such conversations to be an indulgence which
4956 Lucy did not deserve, and which were dangerous to herself.
4957
4958 The visit of the Miss Steeles at Barton Park was lengthened far beyond
4959 what the first invitation implied. Their favour increased; they could
4960 not be spared; Sir John would not hear of their going; and in spite of
4961 their numerous and long arranged engagements in Exeter, in spite of the
4962 absolute necessity of returning to fulfill them immediately, which was
4963 in full force at the end of every week, they were prevailed on to stay
4964 nearly two months at the park, and to assist in the due celebration of
4965 that festival which requires a more than ordinary share of private
4966 balls and large dinners to proclaim its importance.
4967
4968
4969
4970 CHAPTER 25
4971
4972
4973 Though Mrs. Jennings was in the habit of spending a large portion of
4974 the year at the houses of her children and friends, she was not without
4975 a settled habitation of her own. Since the death of her husband, who
4976 had traded with success in a less elegant part of the town, she had
4977 resided every winter in a house in one of the streets near Portman
4978 Square. Towards this home, she began on the approach of January to
4979 turn her thoughts, and thither she one day abruptly, and very
4980 unexpectedly by them, asked the elder Misses Dashwood to accompany her.
4981 Elinor, without observing the varying complexion of her sister, and the
4982 animated look which spoke no indifference to the plan, immediately gave
4983 a grateful but absolute denial for both, in which she believed herself
4984 to be speaking their united inclinations. The reason alleged was their
4985 determined resolution of not leaving their mother at that time of the
4986 year. Mrs. Jennings received the refusal with some surprise, and
4987 repeated her invitation immediately.
4988
4989 "Oh, Lord! I am sure your mother can spare you very well, and I DO beg
4990 you will favour me with your company, for I've quite set my heart upon
4991 it. Don't fancy that you will be any inconvenience to me, for I shan't
4992 put myself at all out of my way for you. It will only be sending Betty
4993 by the coach, and I hope I can afford THAT. We three shall be able to
4994 go very well in my chaise; and when we are in town, if you do not like
4995 to go wherever I do, well and good, you may always go with one of my
4996 daughters. I am sure your mother will not object to it; for I have had
4997 such good luck in getting my own children off my hands that she will
4998 think me a very fit person to have the charge of you; and if I don't
4999 get one of you at least well married before I have done with you, it
5000 shall not be my fault. I shall speak a good word for you to all the
5001 young men, you may depend upon it."
5002
5003 "I have a notion," said Sir John, "that Miss Marianne would not object
5004 to such a scheme, if her elder sister would come into it. It is very
5005 hard indeed that she should not have a little pleasure, because Miss
5006 Dashwood does not wish it. So I would advise you two, to set off for
5007 town, when you are tired of Barton, without saying a word to Miss
5008 Dashwood about it."
5009
5010 "Nay," cried Mrs. Jennings, "I am sure I shall be monstrous glad of
5011 Miss Marianne's company, whether Miss Dashwood will go or not, only the
5012 more the merrier say I, and I thought it would be more comfortable for
5013 them to be together; because, if they got tired of me, they might talk
5014 to one another, and laugh at my old ways behind my back. But one or
5015 the other, if not both of them, I must have. Lord bless me! how do you
5016 think I can live poking by myself, I who have been always used till
5017 this winter to have Charlotte with me. Come, Miss Marianne, let us
5018 strike hands upon the bargain, and if Miss Dashwood will change her
5019 mind by and bye, why so much the better."
5020
5021 "I thank you, ma'am, sincerely thank you," said Marianne, with warmth:
5022 "your invitation has insured my gratitude for ever, and it would give
5023 me such happiness, yes, almost the greatest happiness I am capable of,
5024 to be able to accept it. But my mother, my dearest, kindest mother,--I
5025 feel the justice of what Elinor has urged, and if she were to be made
5026 less happy, less comfortable by our absence--Oh! no, nothing should
5027 tempt me to leave her. It should not, must not be a struggle."
5028
5029 Mrs. Jennings repeated her assurance that Mrs. Dashwood could spare
5030 them perfectly well; and Elinor, who now understood her sister, and saw
5031 to what indifference to almost every thing else she was carried by her
5032 eagerness to be with Willoughby again, made no farther direct
5033 opposition to the plan, and merely referred it to her mother's
5034 decision, from whom however she scarcely expected to receive any
5035 support in her endeavour to prevent a visit, which she could not
5036 approve of for Marianne, and which on her own account she had
5037 particular reasons to avoid. Whatever Marianne was desirous of, her
5038 mother would be eager to promote--she could not expect to influence the
5039 latter to cautiousness of conduct in an affair respecting which she had
5040 never been able to inspire her with distrust; and she dared not explain
5041 the motive of her own disinclination for going to London. That
5042 Marianne, fastidious as she was, thoroughly acquainted with Mrs.
5043 Jennings' manners, and invariably disgusted by them, should overlook
5044 every inconvenience of that kind, should disregard whatever must be
5045 most wounding to her irritable feelings, in her pursuit of one object,
5046 was such a proof, so strong, so full, of the importance of that object
5047 to her, as Elinor, in spite of all that had passed, was not prepared to
5048 witness.
5049
5050 On being informed of the invitation, Mrs. Dashwood, persuaded that such
5051 an excursion would be productive of much amusement to both her
5052 daughters, and perceiving through all her affectionate attention to
5053 herself, how much the heart of Marianne was in it, would not hear of
5054 their declining the offer upon HER account; insisted on their both
5055 accepting it directly; and then began to foresee, with her usual
5056 cheerfulness, a variety of advantages that would accrue to them all,
5057 from this separation.
5058
5059 "I am delighted with the plan," she cried, "it is exactly what I could
5060 wish. Margaret and I shall be as much benefited by it as yourselves.
5061 When you and the Middletons are gone, we shall go on so quietly and
5062 happily together with our books and our music! You will find Margaret
5063 so improved when you come back again! I have a little plan of
5064 alteration for your bedrooms too, which may now be performed without
5065 any inconvenience to any one. It is very right that you SHOULD go to
5066 town; I would have every young woman of your condition in life
5067 acquainted with the manners and amusements of London. You will be
5068 under the care of a motherly good sort of woman, of whose kindness to
5069 you I can have no doubt. And in all probability you will see your
5070 brother, and whatever may be his faults, or the faults of his wife,
5071 when I consider whose son he is, I cannot bear to have you so wholly
5072 estranged from each other."
5073
5074 "Though with your usual anxiety for our happiness," said Elinor, "you
5075 have been obviating every impediment to the present scheme which
5076 occurred to you, there is still one objection which, in my opinion,
5077 cannot be so easily removed."
5078
5079 Marianne's countenance sunk.
5080
5081 "And what," said Mrs. Dashwood, "is my dear prudent Elinor going to
5082 suggest? What formidable obstacle is she now to bring forward? Do let
5083 me hear a word about the expense of it."
5084
5085 "My objection is this; though I think very well of Mrs. Jennings's
5086 heart, she is not a woman whose society can afford us pleasure, or
5087 whose protection will give us consequence."
5088
5089 "That is very true," replied her mother, "but of her society,
5090 separately from that of other people, you will scarcely have any thing
5091 at all, and you will almost always appear in public with Lady
5092 Middleton."
5093
5094 "If Elinor is frightened away by her dislike of Mrs. Jennings," said
5095 Marianne, "at least it need not prevent MY accepting her invitation. I
5096 have no such scruples, and I am sure I could put up with every
5097 unpleasantness of that kind with very little effort."
5098
5099 Elinor could not help smiling at this display of indifference towards
5100 the manners of a person, to whom she had often had difficulty in
5101 persuading Marianne to behave with tolerable politeness; and resolved
5102 within herself, that if her sister persisted in going, she would go
5103 likewise, as she did not think it proper that Marianne should be left
5104 to the sole guidance of her own judgment, or that Mrs. Jennings should
5105 be abandoned to the mercy of Marianne for all the comfort of her
5106 domestic hours. To this determination she was the more easily
5107 reconciled, by recollecting that Edward Ferrars, by Lucy's account, was
5108 not to be in town before February; and that their visit, without any
5109 unreasonable abridgement, might be previously finished.
5110
5111 "I will have you BOTH go," said Mrs. Dashwood; "these objections are
5112 nonsensical. You will have much pleasure in being in London, and
5113 especially in being together; and if Elinor would ever condescend to
5114 anticipate enjoyment, she would foresee it there from a variety of
5115 sources; she would, perhaps, expect some from improving her
5116 acquaintance with her sister-in-law's family."
5117
5118 Elinor had often wished for an opportunity of attempting to weaken her
5119 mother's dependence on the attachment of Edward and herself, that the
5120 shock might be less when the whole truth were revealed, and now on this
5121 attack, though almost hopeless of success, she forced herself to begin
5122 her design by saying, as calmly as she could, "I like Edward Ferrars
5123 very much, and shall always be glad to see him; but as to the rest of
5124 the family, it is a matter of perfect indifference to me, whether I am
5125 ever known to them or not."
5126
5127 Mrs. Dashwood smiled, and said nothing. Marianne lifted up her eyes in
5128 astonishment, and Elinor conjectured that she might as well have held
5129 her tongue.
5130
5131 After very little farther discourse, it was finally settled that the
5132 invitation should be fully accepted. Mrs. Jennings received the
5133 information with a great deal of joy, and many assurances of kindness
5134 and care; nor was it a matter of pleasure merely to her. Sir John was
5135 delighted; for to a man, whose prevailing anxiety was the dread of
5136 being alone, the acquisition of two, to the number of inhabitants in
5137 London, was something. Even Lady Middleton took the trouble of being
5138 delighted, which was putting herself rather out of her way; and as for
5139 the Miss Steeles, especially Lucy, they had never been so happy in
5140 their lives as this intelligence made them.
5141
5142 Elinor submitted to the arrangement which counteracted her wishes with
5143 less reluctance than she had expected to feel. With regard to herself,
5144 it was now a matter of unconcern whether she went to town or not, and
5145 when she saw her mother so thoroughly pleased with the plan, and her
5146 sister exhilarated by it in look, voice, and manner, restored to all
5147 her usual animation, and elevated to more than her usual gaiety, she
5148 could not be dissatisfied with the cause, and would hardly allow
5149 herself to distrust the consequence.
5150
5151 Marianne's joy was almost a degree beyond happiness, so great was the
5152 perturbation of her spirits and her impatience to be gone. Her
5153 unwillingness to quit her mother was her only restorative to calmness;
5154 and at the moment of parting her grief on that score was excessive.
5155 Her mother's affliction was hardly less, and Elinor was the only one of
5156 the three, who seemed to consider the separation as any thing short of
5157 eternal.
5158
5159 Their departure took place in the first week in January. The
5160 Middletons were to follow in about a week. The Miss Steeles kept their
5161 station at the park, and were to quit it only with the rest of the
5162 family.
5163
5164
5165
5166 CHAPTER 26
5167
5168
5169 Elinor could not find herself in the carriage with Mrs. Jennings, and
5170 beginning a journey to London under her protection, and as her guest,
5171 without wondering at her own situation, so short had their acquaintance
5172 with that lady been, so wholly unsuited were they in age and
5173 disposition, and so many had been her objections against such a measure
5174 only a few days before! But these objections had all, with that happy
5175 ardour of youth which Marianne and her mother equally shared, been
5176 overcome or overlooked; and Elinor, in spite of every occasional doubt
5177 of Willoughby's constancy, could not witness the rapture of delightful
5178 expectation which filled the whole soul and beamed in the eyes of
5179 Marianne, without feeling how blank was her own prospect, how cheerless
5180 her own state of mind in the comparison, and how gladly she would
5181 engage in the solicitude of Marianne's situation to have the same
5182 animating object in view, the same possibility of hope. A short, a
5183 very short time however must now decide what Willoughby's intentions
5184 were; in all probability he was already in town. Marianne's eagerness
5185 to be gone declared her dependence on finding him there; and Elinor was
5186 resolved not only upon gaining every new light as to his character
5187 which her own observation or the intelligence of others could give her,
5188 but likewise upon watching his behaviour to her sister with such
5189 zealous attention, as to ascertain what he was and what he meant,
5190 before many meetings had taken place. Should the result of her
5191 observations be unfavourable, she was determined at all events to open
5192 the eyes of her sister; should it be otherwise, her exertions would be
5193 of a different nature--she must then learn to avoid every selfish
5194 comparison, and banish every regret which might lessen her satisfaction
5195 in the happiness of Marianne.
5196
5197 They were three days on their journey, and Marianne's behaviour as they
5198 travelled was a happy specimen of what future complaisance and
5199 companionableness to Mrs. Jennings might be expected to be. She sat in
5200 silence almost all the way, wrapt in her own meditations, and scarcely
5201 ever voluntarily speaking, except when any object of picturesque beauty
5202 within their view drew from her an exclamation of delight exclusively
5203 addressed to her sister. To atone for this conduct therefore, Elinor
5204 took immediate possession of the post of civility which she had
5205 assigned herself, behaved with the greatest attention to Mrs. Jennings,
5206 talked with her, laughed with her, and listened to her whenever she
5207 could; and Mrs. Jennings on her side treated them both with all
5208 possible kindness, was solicitous on every occasion for their ease and
5209 enjoyment, and only disturbed that she could not make them choose their
5210 own dinners at the inn, nor extort a confession of their preferring
5211 salmon to cod, or boiled fowls to veal cutlets. They reached town by
5212 three o'clock the third day, glad to be released, after such a journey,
5213 from the confinement of a carriage, and ready to enjoy all the luxury
5214 of a good fire.
5215
5216 The house was handsome, and handsomely fitted up, and the young ladies
5217 were immediately put in possession of a very comfortable apartment. It
5218 had formerly been Charlotte's, and over the mantelpiece still hung a
5219 landscape in coloured silks of her performance, in proof of her having
5220 spent seven years at a great school in town to some effect.
5221
5222 As dinner was not to be ready in less than two hours from their
5223 arrival, Elinor determined to employ the interval in writing to her
5224 mother, and sat down for that purpose. In a few moments Marianne did
5225 the same. "I am writing home, Marianne," said Elinor; "had not you
5226 better defer your letter for a day or two?"
5227
5228 "I am NOT going to write to my mother," replied Marianne, hastily, and
5229 as if wishing to avoid any farther inquiry. Elinor said no more; it
5230 immediately struck her that she must then be writing to Willoughby; and
5231 the conclusion which as instantly followed was, that, however
5232 mysteriously they might wish to conduct the affair, they must be
5233 engaged. This conviction, though not entirely satisfactory, gave her
5234 pleasure, and she continued her letter with greater alacrity.
5235 Marianne's was finished in a very few minutes; in length it could be no
5236 more than a note; it was then folded up, sealed, and directed with
5237 eager rapidity. Elinor thought she could distinguish a large W in the
5238 direction; and no sooner was it complete than Marianne, ringing the
5239 bell, requested the footman who answered it to get that letter conveyed
5240 for her to the two-penny post. This decided the matter at once.
5241
5242 Her spirits still continued very high; but there was a flutter in them
5243 which prevented their giving much pleasure to her sister, and this
5244 agitation increased as the evening drew on. She could scarcely eat any
5245 dinner, and when they afterwards returned to the drawing room, seemed
5246 anxiously listening to the sound of every carriage.
5247
5248 It was a great satisfaction to Elinor that Mrs. Jennings, by being much
5249 engaged in her own room, could see little of what was passing. The tea
5250 things were brought in, and already had Marianne been disappointed more
5251 than once by a rap at a neighbouring door, when a loud one was suddenly
5252 heard which could not be mistaken for one at any other house, Elinor
5253 felt secure of its announcing Willoughby's approach, and Marianne,
5254 starting up, moved towards the door. Every thing was silent; this
5255 could not be borne many seconds; she opened the door, advanced a few
5256 steps towards the stairs, and after listening half a minute, returned
5257 into the room in all the agitation which a conviction of having heard
5258 him would naturally produce; in the ecstasy of her feelings at that
5259 instant she could not help exclaiming, "Oh, Elinor, it is Willoughby,
5260 indeed it is!" and seemed almost ready to throw herself into his arms,
5261 when Colonel Brandon appeared.
5262
5263 It was too great a shock to be borne with calmness, and she immediately
5264 left the room. Elinor was disappointed too; but at the same time her
5265 regard for Colonel Brandon ensured his welcome with her; and she felt
5266 particularly hurt that a man so partial to her sister should perceive
5267 that she experienced nothing but grief and disappointment in seeing
5268 him. She instantly saw that it was not unnoticed by him, that he even
5269 observed Marianne as she quitted the room, with such astonishment and
5270 concern, as hardly left him the recollection of what civility demanded
5271 towards herself.
5272
5273 "Is your sister ill?" said he.
5274
5275 Elinor answered in some distress that she was, and then talked of
5276 head-aches, low spirits, and over fatigues; and of every thing to which
5277 she could decently attribute her sister's behaviour.
5278
5279 He heard her with the most earnest attention, but seeming to recollect
5280 himself, said no more on the subject, and began directly to speak of
5281 his pleasure at seeing them in London, making the usual inquiries about
5282 their journey, and the friends they had left behind.
5283
5284 In this calm kind of way, with very little interest on either side,
5285 they continued to talk, both of them out of spirits, and the thoughts
5286 of both engaged elsewhere. Elinor wished very much to ask whether
5287 Willoughby were then in town, but she was afraid of giving him pain by
5288 any enquiry after his rival; and at length, by way of saying something,
5289 she asked if he had been in London ever since she had seen him last.
5290 "Yes," he replied, with some embarrassment, "almost ever since; I have
5291 been once or twice at Delaford for a few days, but it has never been in
5292 my power to return to Barton."
5293
5294 This, and the manner in which it was said, immediately brought back to
5295 her remembrance all the circumstances of his quitting that place, with
5296 the uneasiness and suspicions they had caused to Mrs. Jennings, and she
5297 was fearful that her question had implied much more curiosity on the
5298 subject than she had ever felt.
5299
5300 Mrs. Jennings soon came in. "Oh! Colonel," said she, with her usual
5301 noisy cheerfulness, "I am monstrous glad to see you--sorry I could not
5302 come before--beg your pardon, but I have been forced to look about me a
5303 little, and settle my matters; for it is a long while since I have been
5304 at home, and you know one has always a world of little odd things to do
5305 after one has been away for any time; and then I have had Cartwright to
5306 settle with-- Lord, I have been as busy as a bee ever since dinner!
5307 But pray, Colonel, how came you to conjure out that I should be in town
5308 today?"
5309
5310 "I had the pleasure of hearing it at Mr. Palmer's, where I have been
5311 dining."
5312
5313 "Oh, you did; well, and how do they all do at their house? How does
5314 Charlotte do? I warrant you she is a fine size by this time."
5315
5316 "Mrs. Palmer appeared quite well, and I am commissioned to tell you,
5317 that you will certainly see her to-morrow."
5318
5319 "Ay, to be sure, I thought as much. Well, Colonel, I have brought two
5320 young ladies with me, you see--that is, you see but one of them now,
5321 but there is another somewhere. Your friend, Miss Marianne, too--which
5322 you will not be sorry to hear. I do not know what you and Mr.
5323 Willoughby will do between you about her. Ay, it is a fine thing to be
5324 young and handsome. Well! I was young once, but I never was very
5325 handsome--worse luck for me. However, I got a very good husband, and I
5326 don't know what the greatest beauty can do more. Ah! poor man! he has
5327 been dead these eight years and better. But Colonel, where have you
5328 been to since we parted? And how does your business go on? Come,
5329 come, let's have no secrets among friends."
5330
5331 He replied with his accustomary mildness to all her inquiries, but
5332 without satisfying her in any. Elinor now began to make the tea, and
5333 Marianne was obliged to appear again.
5334
5335 After her entrance, Colonel Brandon became more thoughtful and silent
5336 than he had been before, and Mrs. Jennings could not prevail on him to
5337 stay long. No other visitor appeared that evening, and the ladies were
5338 unanimous in agreeing to go early to bed.
5339
5340 Marianne rose the next morning with recovered spirits and happy looks.
5341 The disappointment of the evening before seemed forgotten in the
5342 expectation of what was to happen that day. They had not long finished
5343 their breakfast before Mrs. Palmer's barouche stopped at the door, and
5344 in a few minutes she came laughing into the room: so delighted to see
5345 them all, that it was hard to say whether she received most pleasure
5346 from meeting her mother or the Miss Dashwoods again. So surprised at
5347 their coming to town, though it was what she had rather expected all
5348 along; so angry at their accepting her mother's invitation after having
5349 declined her own, though at the same time she would never have forgiven
5350 them if they had not come!
5351
5352 "Mr. Palmer will be so happy to see you," said she; "What do you think
5353 he said when he heard of your coming with Mama? I forget what it was
5354 now, but it was something so droll!"
5355
5356 After an hour or two spent in what her mother called comfortable chat,
5357 or in other words, in every variety of inquiry concerning all their
5358 acquaintance on Mrs. Jennings's side, and in laughter without cause on
5359 Mrs. Palmer's, it was proposed by the latter that they should all
5360 accompany her to some shops where she had business that morning, to
5361 which Mrs. Jennings and Elinor readily consented, as having likewise
5362 some purchases to make themselves; and Marianne, though declining it at
5363 first was induced to go likewise.
5364
5365 Wherever they went, she was evidently always on the watch. In Bond
5366 Street especially, where much of their business lay, her eyes were in
5367 constant inquiry; and in whatever shop the party were engaged, her mind
5368 was equally abstracted from every thing actually before them, from all
5369 that interested and occupied the others. Restless and dissatisfied
5370 every where, her sister could never obtain her opinion of any article
5371 of purchase, however it might equally concern them both: she received
5372 no pleasure from anything; was only impatient to be at home again, and
5373 could with difficulty govern her vexation at the tediousness of Mrs.
5374 Palmer, whose eye was caught by every thing pretty, expensive, or new;
5375 who was wild to buy all, could determine on none, and dawdled away her
5376 time in rapture and indecision.
5377
5378 It was late in the morning before they returned home; and no sooner had
5379 they entered the house than Marianne flew eagerly up stairs, and when
5380 Elinor followed, she found her turning from the table with a sorrowful
5381 countenance, which declared that no Willoughby had been there.
5382
5383 "Has no letter been left here for me since we went out?" said she to
5384 the footman who then entered with the parcels. She was answered in the
5385 negative. "Are you quite sure of it?" she replied. "Are you certain
5386 that no servant, no porter has left any letter or note?"
5387
5388 The man replied that none had.
5389
5390 "How very odd!" said she, in a low and disappointed voice, as she
5391 turned away to the window.
5392
5393 "How odd, indeed!" repeated Elinor within herself, regarding her sister
5394 with uneasiness. "If she had not known him to be in town she would not
5395 have written to him, as she did; she would have written to Combe Magna;
5396 and if he is in town, how odd that he should neither come nor write!
5397 Oh! my dear mother, you must be wrong in permitting an engagement
5398 between a daughter so young, a man so little known, to be carried on in
5399 so doubtful, so mysterious a manner! I long to inquire; and how will
5400 MY interference be borne."
5401
5402 She determined, after some consideration, that if appearances continued
5403 many days longer as unpleasant as they now were, she would represent in
5404 the strongest manner to her mother the necessity of some serious
5405 enquiry into the affair.
5406
5407 Mrs. Palmer and two elderly ladies of Mrs. Jennings's intimate
5408 acquaintance, whom she had met and invited in the morning, dined with
5409 them. The former left them soon after tea to fulfill her evening
5410 engagements; and Elinor was obliged to assist in making a whist table
5411 for the others. Marianne was of no use on these occasions, as she
5412 would never learn the game; but though her time was therefore at her
5413 own disposal, the evening was by no means more productive of pleasure
5414 to her than to Elinor, for it was spent in all the anxiety of
5415 expectation and the pain of disappointment. She sometimes endeavoured
5416 for a few minutes to read; but the book was soon thrown aside, and she
5417 returned to the more interesting employment of walking backwards and
5418 forwards across the room, pausing for a moment whenever she came to the
5419 window, in hopes of distinguishing the long-expected rap.
5420
5421
5422
5423 CHAPTER 27
5424
5425
5426 "If this open weather holds much longer," said Mrs. Jennings, when they
5427 met at breakfast the following morning, "Sir John will not like leaving
5428 Barton next week; 'tis a sad thing for sportsmen to lose a day's
5429 pleasure. Poor souls! I always pity them when they do; they seem to
5430 take it so much to heart."
5431
5432 "That is true," cried Marianne, in a cheerful voice, and walking to the
5433 window as she spoke, to examine the day. "I had not thought of that.
5434 This weather will keep many sportsmen in the country."
5435
5436 It was a lucky recollection, all her good spirits were restored by it.
5437 "It is charming weather for THEM indeed," she continued, as she sat
5438 down to the breakfast table with a happy countenance. "How much they
5439 must enjoy it! But" (with a little return of anxiety) "it cannot be
5440 expected to last long. At this time of the year, and after such a
5441 series of rain, we shall certainly have very little more of it. Frosts
5442 will soon set in, and in all probability with severity. In another day
5443 or two perhaps; this extreme mildness can hardly last longer--nay,
5444 perhaps it may freeze tonight!"
5445
5446 "At any rate," said Elinor, wishing to prevent Mrs. Jennings from
5447 seeing her sister's thoughts as clearly as she did, "I dare say we
5448 shall have Sir John and Lady Middleton in town by the end of next week."
5449
5450 "Ay, my dear, I'll warrant you we do. Mary always has her own way."
5451
5452 "And now," silently conjectured Elinor, "she will write to Combe by
5453 this day's post."
5454
5455 But if she DID, the letter was written and sent away with a privacy
5456 which eluded all her watchfulness to ascertain the fact. Whatever the
5457 truth of it might be, and far as Elinor was from feeling thorough
5458 contentment about it, yet while she saw Marianne in spirits, she could
5459 not be very uncomfortable herself. And Marianne was in spirits; happy
5460 in the mildness of the weather, and still happier in her expectation of
5461 a frost.
5462
5463 The morning was chiefly spent in leaving cards at the houses of Mrs.
5464 Jennings's acquaintance to inform them of her being in town; and
5465 Marianne was all the time busy in observing the direction of the wind,
5466 watching the variations of the sky and imagining an alteration in the
5467 air.
5468
5469 "Don't you find it colder than it was in the morning, Elinor? There
5470 seems to me a very decided difference. I can hardly keep my hands warm
5471 even in my muff. It was not so yesterday, I think. The clouds seem
5472 parting too, the sun will be out in a moment, and we shall have a clear
5473 afternoon."
5474
5475 Elinor was alternately diverted and pained; but Marianne persevered,
5476 and saw every night in the brightness of the fire, and every morning in
5477 the appearance of the atmosphere, the certain symptoms of approaching
5478 frost.
5479
5480 The Miss Dashwoods had no greater reason to be dissatisfied with Mrs.
5481 Jennings's style of living, and set of acquaintance, than with her
5482 behaviour to themselves, which was invariably kind. Every thing in her
5483 household arrangements was conducted on the most liberal plan, and
5484 excepting a few old city friends, whom, to Lady Middleton's regret, she
5485 had never dropped, she visited no one to whom an introduction could at
5486 all discompose the feelings of her young companions. Pleased to find
5487 herself more comfortably situated in that particular than she had
5488 expected, Elinor was very willing to compound for the want of much real
5489 enjoyment from any of their evening parties, which, whether at home or
5490 abroad, formed only for cards, could have little to amuse her.
5491
5492 Colonel Brandon, who had a general invitation to the house, was with
5493 them almost every day; he came to look at Marianne and talk to Elinor,
5494 who often derived more satisfaction from conversing with him than from
5495 any other daily occurrence, but who saw at the same time with much
5496 concern his continued regard for her sister. She feared it was a
5497 strengthening regard. It grieved her to see the earnestness with which
5498 he often watched Marianne, and his spirits were certainly worse than
5499 when at Barton.
5500
5501 About a week after their arrival, it became certain that Willoughby was
5502 also arrived. His card was on the table when they came in from the
5503 morning's drive.
5504
5505 "Good God!" cried Marianne, "he has been here while we were out."
5506 Elinor, rejoiced to be assured of his being in London, now ventured to
5507 say, "Depend upon it, he will call again tomorrow." But Marianne
5508 seemed hardly to hear her, and on Mrs. Jennings's entrance, escaped with
5509 the precious card.
5510
5511 This event, while it raised the spirits of Elinor, restored to those of
5512 her sister all, and more than all, their former agitation. From this
5513 moment her mind was never quiet; the expectation of seeing him every
5514 hour of the day, made her unfit for any thing. She insisted on being
5515 left behind, the next morning, when the others went out.
5516
5517 Elinor's thoughts were full of what might be passing in Berkeley Street
5518 during their absence; but a moment's glance at her sister when they
5519 returned was enough to inform her, that Willoughby had paid no second
5520 visit there. A note was just then brought in, and laid on the table.
5521
5522 "For me!" cried Marianne, stepping hastily forward.
5523
5524 "No, ma'am, for my mistress."
5525
5526 But Marianne, not convinced, took it instantly up.
5527
5528 "It is indeed for Mrs. Jennings; how provoking!"
5529
5530 "You are expecting a letter, then?" said Elinor, unable to be longer
5531 silent.
5532
5533 "Yes, a little--not much."
5534
5535 After a short pause. "You have no confidence in me, Marianne."
5536
5537 "Nay, Elinor, this reproach from YOU--you who have confidence in no
5538 one!"
5539
5540 "Me!" returned Elinor in some confusion; "indeed, Marianne, I have
5541 nothing to tell."
5542
5543 "Nor I," answered Marianne with energy, "our situations then are alike.
5544 We have neither of us any thing to tell; you, because you do not
5545 communicate, and I, because I conceal nothing."
5546
5547 Elinor, distressed by this charge of reserve in herself, which she was
5548 not at liberty to do away, knew not how, under such circumstances, to
5549 press for greater openness in Marianne.
5550
5551 Mrs. Jennings soon appeared, and the note being given her, she read it
5552 aloud. It was from Lady Middleton, announcing their arrival in Conduit
5553 Street the night before, and requesting the company of her mother and
5554 cousins the following evening. Business on Sir John's part, and a
5555 violent cold on her own, prevented their calling in Berkeley Street.
5556 The invitation was accepted; but when the hour of appointment drew
5557 near, necessary as it was in common civility to Mrs. Jennings, that
5558 they should both attend her on such a visit, Elinor had some difficulty
5559 in persuading her sister to go, for still she had seen nothing of
5560 Willoughby; and therefore was not more indisposed for amusement abroad,
5561 than unwilling to run the risk of his calling again in her absence.
5562
5563 Elinor found, when the evening was over, that disposition is not
5564 materially altered by a change of abode, for although scarcely settled
5565 in town, Sir John had contrived to collect around him, nearly twenty
5566 young people, and to amuse them with a ball. This was an affair,
5567 however, of which Lady Middleton did not approve. In the country, an
5568 unpremeditated dance was very allowable; but in London, where the
5569 reputation of elegance was more important and less easily attained, it
5570 was risking too much for the gratification of a few girls, to have it
5571 known that Lady Middleton had given a small dance of eight or nine
5572 couple, with two violins, and a mere side-board collation.
5573
5574 Mr. and Mrs. Palmer were of the party; from the former, whom they had
5575 not seen before since their arrival in town, as he was careful to avoid
5576 the appearance of any attention to his mother-in-law, and therefore
5577 never came near her, they received no mark of recognition on their
5578 entrance. He looked at them slightly, without seeming to know who they
5579 were, and merely nodded to Mrs. Jennings from the other side of the
5580 room. Marianne gave one glance round the apartment as she entered: it
5581 was enough--HE was not there--and she sat down, equally ill-disposed to
5582 receive or communicate pleasure. After they had been assembled about
5583 an hour, Mr. Palmer sauntered towards the Miss Dashwoods to express his
5584 surprise on seeing them in town, though Colonel Brandon had been first
5585 informed of their arrival at his house, and he had himself said
5586 something very droll on hearing that they were to come.
5587
5588 "I thought you were both in Devonshire," said he.
5589
5590 "Did you?" replied Elinor.
5591
5592 "When do you go back again?"
5593
5594 "I do not know." And thus ended their discourse.
5595
5596 Never had Marianne been so unwilling to dance in her life, as she was
5597 that evening, and never so much fatigued by the exercise. She
5598 complained of it as they returned to Berkeley Street.
5599
5600 "Aye, aye," said Mrs. Jennings, "we know the reason of all that very
5601 well; if a certain person who shall be nameless, had been there, you
5602 would not have been a bit tired: and to say the truth it was not very
5603 pretty of him not to give you the meeting when he was invited."
5604
5605 "Invited!" cried Marianne.
5606
5607 "So my daughter Middleton told me, for it seems Sir John met him
5608 somewhere in the street this morning." Marianne said no more, but
5609 looked exceedingly hurt. Impatient in this situation to be doing
5610 something that might lead to her sister's relief, Elinor resolved to
5611 write the next morning to her mother, and hoped by awakening her fears
5612 for the health of Marianne, to procure those inquiries which had been
5613 so long delayed; and she was still more eagerly bent on this measure by
5614 perceiving after breakfast on the morrow, that Marianne was again
5615 writing to Willoughby, for she could not suppose it to be to any other
5616 person.
5617
5618 About the middle of the day, Mrs. Jennings went out by herself on
5619 business, and Elinor began her letter directly, while Marianne, too
5620 restless for employment, too anxious for conversation, walked from one
5621 window to the other, or sat down by the fire in melancholy meditation.
5622 Elinor was very earnest in her application to her mother, relating all
5623 that had passed, her suspicions of Willoughby's inconstancy, urging her
5624 by every plea of duty and affection to demand from Marianne an account
5625 of her real situation with respect to him.
5626
5627 Her letter was scarcely finished, when a rap foretold a visitor, and
5628 Colonel Brandon was announced. Marianne, who had seen him from the
5629 window, and who hated company of any kind, left the room before he
5630 entered it. He looked more than usually grave, and though expressing
5631 satisfaction at finding Miss Dashwood alone, as if he had somewhat in
5632 particular to tell her, sat for some time without saying a word.
5633 Elinor, persuaded that he had some communication to make in which her
5634 sister was concerned, impatiently expected its opening. It was not the
5635 first time of her feeling the same kind of conviction; for, more than
5636 once before, beginning with the observation of "your sister looks
5637 unwell to-day," or "your sister seems out of spirits," he had appeared
5638 on the point, either of disclosing, or of inquiring, something
5639 particular about her. After a pause of several minutes, their silence
5640 was broken, by his asking her in a voice of some agitation, when he was
5641 to congratulate her on the acquisition of a brother? Elinor was not
5642 prepared for such a question, and having no answer ready, was obliged
5643 to adopt the simple and common expedient, of asking what he meant? He
5644 tried to smile as he replied, "your sister's engagement to Mr.
5645 Willoughby is very generally known."
5646
5647 "It cannot be generally known," returned Elinor, "for her own family do
5648 not know it."
5649
5650 He looked surprised and said, "I beg your pardon, I am afraid my
5651 inquiry has been impertinent; but I had not supposed any secrecy
5652 intended, as they openly correspond, and their marriage is universally
5653 talked of."
5654
5655 "How can that be? By whom can you have heard it mentioned?"
5656
5657 "By many--by some of whom you know nothing, by others with whom you are
5658 most intimate, Mrs. Jennings, Mrs. Palmer, and the Middletons. But
5659 still I might not have believed it, for where the mind is perhaps
5660 rather unwilling to be convinced, it will always find something to
5661 support its doubts, if I had not, when the servant let me in today,
5662 accidentally seen a letter in his hand, directed to Mr. Willoughby in
5663 your sister's writing. I came to inquire, but I was convinced before I
5664 could ask the question. Is every thing finally settled? Is it
5665 impossible to-? But I have no right, and I could have no chance of
5666 succeeding. Excuse me, Miss Dashwood. I believe I have been wrong in
5667 saying so much, but I hardly know what to do, and on your prudence I
5668 have the strongest dependence. Tell me that it is all absolutely
5669 resolved on, that any attempt, that in short concealment, if
5670 concealment be possible, is all that remains."
5671
5672 These words, which conveyed to Elinor a direct avowal of his love for
5673 her sister, affected her very much. She was not immediately able to
5674 say anything, and even when her spirits were recovered, she debated for
5675 a short time, on the answer it would be most proper to give. The real
5676 state of things between Willoughby and her sister was so little known
5677 to herself, that in endeavouring to explain it, she might be as liable
5678 to say too much as too little. Yet as she was convinced that
5679 Marianne's affection for Willoughby, could leave no hope of Colonel
5680 Brandon's success, whatever the event of that affection might be, and
5681 at the same time wished to shield her conduct from censure, she thought
5682 it most prudent and kind, after some consideration, to say more than
5683 she really knew or believed. She acknowledged, therefore, that though
5684 she had never been informed by themselves of the terms on which they
5685 stood with each other, of their mutual affection she had no doubt, and
5686 of their correspondence she was not astonished to hear.
5687
5688 He listened to her with silent attention, and on her ceasing to speak,
5689 rose directly from his seat, and after saying in a voice of emotion,
5690 "to your sister I wish all imaginable happiness; to Willoughby that he
5691 may endeavour to deserve her,"--took leave, and went away.
5692
5693 Elinor derived no comfortable feelings from this conversation, to
5694 lessen the uneasiness of her mind on other points; she was left, on the
5695 contrary, with a melancholy impression of Colonel Brandon's
5696 unhappiness, and was prevented even from wishing it removed, by her
5697 anxiety for the very event that must confirm it.
5698
5699
5700
5701 CHAPTER 28
5702
5703
5704 Nothing occurred during the next three or four days, to make Elinor
5705 regret what she had done, in applying to her mother; for Willoughby
5706 neither came nor wrote. They were engaged about the end of that time
5707 to attend Lady Middleton to a party, from which Mrs. Jennings was kept
5708 away by the indisposition of her youngest daughter; and for this party,
5709 Marianne, wholly dispirited, careless of her appearance, and seeming
5710 equally indifferent whether she went or staid, prepared, without one
5711 look of hope or one expression of pleasure. She sat by the
5712 drawing-room fire after tea, till the moment of Lady Middleton's
5713 arrival, without once stirring from her seat, or altering her attitude,
5714 lost in her own thoughts, and insensible of her sister's presence; and
5715 when at last they were told that Lady Middleton waited for them at the
5716 door, she started as if she had forgotten that any one was expected.
5717
5718 They arrived in due time at the place of destination, and as soon as
5719 the string of carriages before them would allow, alighted, ascended the
5720 stairs, heard their names announced from one landing-place to another
5721 in an audible voice, and entered a room splendidly lit up, quite full
5722 of company, and insufferably hot. When they had paid their tribute of
5723 politeness by curtsying to the lady of the house, they were permitted
5724 to mingle in the crowd, and take their share of the heat and
5725 inconvenience, to which their arrival must necessarily add. After some
5726 time spent in saying little or doing less, Lady Middleton sat down to
5727 Cassino, and as Marianne was not in spirits for moving about, she and
5728 Elinor luckily succeeding to chairs, placed themselves at no great
5729 distance from the table.
5730
5731 They had not remained in this manner long, before Elinor perceived
5732 Willoughby, standing within a few yards of them, in earnest
5733 conversation with a very fashionable looking young woman. She soon
5734 caught his eye, and he immediately bowed, but without attempting to
5735 speak to her, or to approach Marianne, though he could not but see her;
5736 and then continued his discourse with the same lady. Elinor turned
5737 involuntarily to Marianne, to see whether it could be unobserved by
5738 her. At that moment she first perceived him, and her whole countenance
5739 glowing with sudden delight, she would have moved towards him
5740 instantly, had not her sister caught hold of her.
5741
5742 "Good heavens!" she exclaimed, "he is there--he is there--Oh! why does
5743 he not look at me? why cannot I speak to him?"
5744
5745 "Pray, pray be composed," cried Elinor, "and do not betray what you
5746 feel to every body present. Perhaps he has not observed you yet."
5747
5748 This however was more than she could believe herself; and to be
5749 composed at such a moment was not only beyond the reach of Marianne, it
5750 was beyond her wish. She sat in an agony of impatience which affected
5751 every feature.
5752
5753 At last he turned round again, and regarded them both; she started up,
5754 and pronouncing his name in a tone of affection, held out her hand to
5755 him. He approached, and addressing himself rather to Elinor than
5756 Marianne, as if wishing to avoid her eye, and determined not to observe
5757 her attitude, inquired in a hurried manner after Mrs. Dashwood, and
5758 asked how long they had been in town. Elinor was robbed of all
5759 presence of mind by such an address, and was unable to say a word. But
5760 the feelings of her sister were instantly expressed. Her face was
5761 crimsoned over, and she exclaimed, in a voice of the greatest emotion,
5762 "Good God! Willoughby, what is the meaning of this? Have you not
5763 received my letters? Will you not shake hands with me?"
5764
5765 He could not then avoid it, but her touch seemed painful to him, and he
5766 held her hand only for a moment. During all this time he was evidently
5767 struggling for composure. Elinor watched his countenance and saw its
5768 expression becoming more tranquil. After a moment's pause, he spoke
5769 with calmness.
5770
5771 "I did myself the honour of calling in Berkeley Street last Tuesday,
5772 and very much regretted that I was not fortunate enough to find
5773 yourselves and Mrs. Jennings at home. My card was not lost, I hope."
5774
5775 "But have you not received my notes?" cried Marianne in the wildest
5776 anxiety. "Here is some mistake I am sure--some dreadful mistake. What
5777 can be the meaning of it? Tell me, Willoughby; for heaven's sake tell
5778 me, what is the matter?"
5779
5780 He made no reply; his complexion changed and all his embarrassment
5781 returned; but as if, on catching the eye of the young lady with whom he
5782 had been previously talking, he felt the necessity of instant exertion,
5783 he recovered himself again, and after saying, "Yes, I had the pleasure
5784 of receiving the information of your arrival in town, which you were so
5785 good as to send me," turned hastily away with a slight bow and joined
5786 his friend.
5787
5788 Marianne, now looking dreadfully white, and unable to stand, sunk into
5789 her chair, and Elinor, expecting every moment to see her faint, tried
5790 to screen her from the observation of others, while reviving her with
5791 lavender water.
5792
5793 "Go to him, Elinor," she cried, as soon as she could speak, "and force
5794 him to come to me. Tell him I must see him again--must speak to him
5795 instantly.-- I cannot rest--I shall not have a moment's peace till this
5796 is explained--some dreadful misapprehension or other.-- Oh go to him
5797 this moment."
5798
5799 "How can that be done? No, my dearest Marianne, you must wait. This is
5800 not the place for explanations. Wait only till tomorrow."
5801
5802 With difficulty however could she prevent her from following him
5803 herself; and to persuade her to check her agitation, to wait, at least,
5804 with the appearance of composure, till she might speak to him with more
5805 privacy and more effect, was impossible; for Marianne continued
5806 incessantly to give way in a low voice to the misery of her feelings,
5807 by exclamations of wretchedness. In a short time Elinor saw Willoughby
5808 quit the room by the door towards the staircase, and telling Marianne
5809 that he was gone, urged the impossibility of speaking to him again that
5810 evening, as a fresh argument for her to be calm. She instantly begged
5811 her sister would entreat Lady Middleton to take them home, as she was
5812 too miserable to stay a minute longer.
5813
5814 Lady Middleton, though in the middle of a rubber, on being informed
5815 that Marianne was unwell, was too polite to object for a moment to her
5816 wish of going away, and making over her cards to a friend, they
5817 departed as soon the carriage could be found. Scarcely a word was
5818 spoken during their return to Berkeley Street. Marianne was in a
5819 silent agony, too much oppressed even for tears; but as Mrs. Jennings
5820 was luckily not come home, they could go directly to their own room,
5821 where hartshorn restored her a little to herself. She was soon
5822 undressed and in bed, and as she seemed desirous of being alone, her
5823 sister then left her, and while she waited the return of Mrs. Jennings,
5824 had leisure enough for thinking over the past.
5825
5826 That some kind of engagement had subsisted between Willoughby and
5827 Marianne she could not doubt, and that Willoughby was weary of it,
5828 seemed equally clear; for however Marianne might still feed her own
5829 wishes, SHE could not attribute such behaviour to mistake or
5830 misapprehension of any kind. Nothing but a thorough change of
5831 sentiment could account for it. Her indignation would have been still
5832 stronger than it was, had she not witnessed that embarrassment which
5833 seemed to speak a consciousness of his own misconduct, and prevented
5834 her from believing him so unprincipled as to have been sporting with
5835 the affections of her sister from the first, without any design that
5836 would bear investigation. Absence might have weakened his regard, and
5837 convenience might have determined him to overcome it, but that such a
5838 regard had formerly existed she could not bring herself to doubt.
5839
5840 As for Marianne, on the pangs which so unhappy a meeting must already
5841 have given her, and on those still more severe which might await her in
5842 its probable consequence, she could not reflect without the deepest
5843 concern. Her own situation gained in the comparison; for while she
5844 could ESTEEM Edward as much as ever, however they might be divided in
5845 future, her mind might be always supported. But every circumstance
5846 that could embitter such an evil seemed uniting to heighten the misery
5847 of Marianne in a final separation from Willoughby--in an immediate and
5848 irreconcilable rupture with him.
5849
5850
5851
5852 CHAPTER 29
5853
5854
5855 Before the house-maid had lit their fire the next day, or the sun
5856 gained any power over a cold, gloomy morning in January, Marianne, only
5857 half dressed, was kneeling against one of the window-seats for the sake
5858 of all the little light she could command from it, and writing as fast
5859 as a continual flow of tears would permit her. In this situation,
5860 Elinor, roused from sleep by her agitation and sobs, first perceived
5861 her; and after observing her for a few moments with silent anxiety,
5862 said, in a tone of the most considerate gentleness,
5863
5864 "Marianne, may I ask-?"
5865
5866 "No, Elinor," she replied, "ask nothing; you will soon know all."
5867
5868 The sort of desperate calmness with which this was said, lasted no
5869 longer than while she spoke, and was immediately followed by a return
5870 of the same excessive affliction. It was some minutes before she could
5871 go on with her letter, and the frequent bursts of grief which still
5872 obliged her, at intervals, to withhold her pen, were proofs enough of
5873 her feeling how more than probable it was that she was writing for the
5874 last time to Willoughby.
5875
5876 Elinor paid her every quiet and unobtrusive attention in her power; and
5877 she would have tried to sooth and tranquilize her still more, had not
5878 Marianne entreated her, with all the eagerness of the most nervous
5879 irritability, not to speak to her for the world. In such
5880 circumstances, it was better for both that they should not be long
5881 together; and the restless state of Marianne's mind not only prevented
5882 her from remaining in the room a moment after she was dressed, but
5883 requiring at once solitude and continual change of place, made her
5884 wander about the house till breakfast time, avoiding the sight of every
5885 body.
5886
5887 At breakfast she neither ate, nor attempted to eat any thing; and
5888 Elinor's attention was then all employed, not in urging her, not in
5889 pitying her, nor in appearing to regard her, but in endeavouring to
5890 engage Mrs. Jennings's notice entirely to herself.
5891
5892 As this was a favourite meal with Mrs. Jennings, it lasted a
5893 considerable time, and they were just setting themselves, after it,
5894 round the common working table, when a letter was delivered to
5895 Marianne, which she eagerly caught from the servant, and, turning of a
5896 death-like paleness, instantly ran out of the room. Elinor, who saw as
5897 plainly by this, as if she had seen the direction, that it must come
5898 from Willoughby, felt immediately such a sickness at heart as made her
5899 hardly able to hold up her head, and sat in such a general tremour as
5900 made her fear it impossible to escape Mrs. Jennings's notice. That good
5901 lady, however, saw only that Marianne had received a letter from
5902 Willoughby, which appeared to her a very good joke, and which she
5903 treated accordingly, by hoping, with a laugh, that she would find it to
5904 her liking. Of Elinor's distress, she was too busily employed in
5905 measuring lengths of worsted for her rug, to see any thing at all; and
5906 calmly continuing her talk, as soon as Marianne disappeared, she said,
5907
5908 "Upon my word, I never saw a young woman so desperately in love in my
5909 life! MY girls were nothing to her, and yet they used to be foolish
5910 enough; but as for Miss Marianne, she is quite an altered creature. I
5911 hope, from the bottom of my heart, he won't keep her waiting much
5912 longer, for it is quite grievous to see her look so ill and forlorn.
5913 Pray, when are they to be married?"
5914
5915 Elinor, though never less disposed to speak than at that moment,
5916 obliged herself to answer such an attack as this, and, therefore,
5917 trying to smile, replied, "And have you really, Ma'am, talked yourself
5918 into a persuasion of my sister's being engaged to Mr. Willoughby? I
5919 thought it had been only a joke, but so serious a question seems to
5920 imply more; and I must beg, therefore, that you will not deceive
5921 yourself any longer. I do assure you that nothing would surprise me
5922 more than to hear of their being going to be married."
5923
5924 "For shame, for shame, Miss Dashwood! how can you talk so? Don't we
5925 all know that it must be a match, that they were over head and ears in
5926 love with each other from the first moment they met? Did not I see
5927 them together in Devonshire every day, and all day long; and did not I
5928 know that your sister came to town with me on purpose to buy wedding
5929 clothes? Come, come, this won't do. Because you are so sly about it
5930 yourself, you think nobody else has any senses; but it is no such
5931 thing, I can tell you, for it has been known all over town this ever so
5932 long. I tell every body of it and so does Charlotte."
5933
5934 "Indeed, Ma'am," said Elinor, very seriously, "you are mistaken.
5935 Indeed, you are doing a very unkind thing in spreading the report, and
5936 you will find that you have though you will not believe me now."
5937
5938 Mrs. Jennings laughed again, but Elinor had not spirits to say more,
5939 and eager at all events to know what Willoughby had written, hurried
5940 away to their room, where, on opening the door, she saw Marianne
5941 stretched on the bed, almost choked by grief, one letter in her hand,
5942 and two or three others laying by her. Elinor drew near, but without
5943 saying a word; and seating herself on the bed, took her hand, kissed
5944 her affectionately several times, and then gave way to a burst of
5945 tears, which at first was scarcely less violent than Marianne's. The
5946 latter, though unable to speak, seemed to feel all the tenderness of
5947 this behaviour, and after some time thus spent in joint affliction, she
5948 put all the letters into Elinor's hands; and then covering her face
5949 with her handkerchief, almost screamed with agony. Elinor, who knew
5950 that such grief, shocking as it was to witness it, must have its
5951 course, watched by her till this excess of suffering had somewhat spent
5952 itself, and then turning eagerly to Willoughby's letter, read as
5953 follows:
5954
5955 "Bond Street, January.
5956 "MY DEAR MADAM,
5957
5958 "I have just had the honour of receiving your
5959 letter, for which I beg to return my sincere
5960 acknowledgments. I am much concerned to find there
5961 was anything in my behaviour last night that did
5962 not meet your approbation; and though I am quite at
5963 a loss to discover in what point I could be so
5964 unfortunate as to offend you, I entreat your
5965 forgiveness of what I can assure you to have been
5966 perfectly unintentional. I shall never reflect on
5967 my former acquaintance with your family in Devonshire
5968 without the most grateful pleasure, and flatter
5969 myself it will not be broken by any mistake or
5970 misapprehension of my actions. My esteem for your
5971 whole family is very sincere; but if I have been so
5972 unfortunate as to give rise to a belief of more than
5973 I felt, or meant to express, I shall reproach myself
5974 for not having been more guarded in my professions
5975 of that esteem. That I should ever have meant more
5976 you will allow to be impossible, when you understand
5977 that my affections have been long engaged elsewhere,
5978 and it will not be many weeks, I believe, before
5979 this engagement is fulfilled. It is with great
5980 regret that I obey your commands in returning the
5981 letters with which I have been honoured from you,
5982 and the lock of hair, which you so obligingly bestowed
5983 on me.
5984
5985 "I am, dear Madam,
5986 "Your most obedient
5987 "humble servant,
5988 "JOHN WILLOUGHBY."
5989
5990
5991 With what indignation such a letter as this must be read by Miss
5992 Dashwood, may be imagined. Though aware, before she began it, that it
5993 must bring a confession of his inconstancy, and confirm their
5994 separation for ever, she was not aware that such language could be
5995 suffered to announce it; nor could she have supposed Willoughby capable
5996 of departing so far from the appearance of every honourable and
5997 delicate feeling--so far from the common decorum of a gentleman, as to
5998 send a letter so impudently cruel: a letter which, instead of bringing
5999 with his desire of a release any professions of regret, acknowledged no
6000 breach of faith, denied all peculiar affection whatever--a letter of
6001 which every line was an insult, and which proclaimed its writer to be
6002 deep in hardened villainy.
6003
6004 She paused over it for some time with indignant astonishment; then read
6005 it again and again; but every perusal only served to increase her
6006 abhorrence of the man, and so bitter were her feelings against him,
6007 that she dared not trust herself to speak, lest she might wound
6008 Marianne still deeper by treating their disengagement, not as a loss to
6009 her of any possible good but as an escape from the worst and most
6010 irremediable of all evils, a connection, for life, with an unprincipled
6011 man, as a deliverance the most real, a blessing the most important.
6012
6013 In her earnest meditations on the contents of the letter, on the
6014 depravity of that mind which could dictate it, and probably, on the
6015 very different mind of a very different person, who had no other
6016 connection whatever with the affair than what her heart gave him with
6017 every thing that passed, Elinor forgot the immediate distress of her
6018 sister, forgot that she had three letters on her lap yet unread, and so
6019 entirely forgot how long she had been in the room, that when on hearing
6020 a carriage drive up to the door, she went to the window to see who
6021 could be coming so unreasonably early, she was all astonishment to
6022 perceive Mrs. Jennings's chariot, which she knew had not been ordered
6023 till one. Determined not to quit Marianne, though hopeless of
6024 contributing, at present, to her ease, she hurried away to excuse
6025 herself from attending Mrs. Jennings, on account of her sister being
6026 indisposed. Mrs. Jennings, with a thoroughly good-humoured concern for
6027 its cause, admitted the excuse most readily, and Elinor, after seeing
6028 her safe off, returned to Marianne, whom she found attempting to rise
6029 from the bed, and whom she reached just in time to prevent her from
6030 falling on the floor, faint and giddy from a long want of proper rest
6031 and food; for it was many days since she had any appetite, and many
6032 nights since she had really slept; and now, when her mind was no longer
6033 supported by the fever of suspense, the consequence of all this was
6034 felt in an aching head, a weakened stomach, and a general nervous
6035 faintness. A glass of wine, which Elinor procured for her directly,
6036 made her more comfortable, and she was at last able to express some
6037 sense of her kindness, by saying,
6038
6039 "Poor Elinor! how unhappy I make you!"
6040
6041 "I only wish," replied her sister, "there were any thing I COULD do,
6042 which might be of comfort to you."
6043
6044 This, as every thing else would have been, was too much for Marianne,
6045 who could only exclaim, in the anguish of her heart, "Oh! Elinor, I am
6046 miserable, indeed," before her voice was entirely lost in sobs.
6047
6048 Elinor could no longer witness this torrent of unresisted grief in
6049 silence.
6050
6051 "Exert yourself, dear Marianne," she cried, "if you would not kill
6052 yourself and all who love you. Think of your mother; think of her
6053 misery while YOU suffer: for her sake you must exert yourself."
6054
6055 "I cannot, I cannot," cried Marianne; "leave me, leave me, if I
6056 distress you; leave me, hate me, forget me! but do not torture me so.
6057 Oh! how easy for those, who have no sorrow of their own to talk of
6058 exertion! Happy, happy Elinor, YOU cannot have an idea of what I
6059 suffer."
6060
6061 "Do you call ME happy, Marianne? Ah! if you knew!--And can you believe
6062 me to be so, while I see you so wretched!"
6063
6064 "Forgive me, forgive me," throwing her arms round her sister's neck; "I
6065 know you feel for me; I know what a heart you have; but yet you
6066 are--you must be happy; Edward loves you--what, oh what, can do away
6067 such happiness as that?"
6068
6069 "Many, many circumstances," said Elinor, solemnly.
6070
6071 "No, no, no," cried Marianne wildly, "he loves you, and only you. You
6072 CAN have no grief."
6073
6074 "I can have no pleasure while I see you in this state."
6075
6076 "And you will never see me otherwise. Mine is a misery which nothing
6077 can do away."
6078
6079 "You must not talk so, Marianne. Have you no comforts? no friends? Is
6080 your loss such as leaves no opening for consolation? Much as you
6081 suffer now, think of what you would have suffered if the discovery of
6082 his character had been delayed to a later period--if your engagement
6083 had been carried on for months and months, as it might have been,
6084 before he chose to put an end to it. Every additional day of unhappy
6085 confidence, on your side, would have made the blow more dreadful."
6086
6087 "Engagement!" cried Marianne, "there has been no engagement."
6088
6089 "No engagement!"
6090
6091 "No, he is not so unworthy as you believe him. He has broken no faith
6092 with me."
6093
6094 "But he told you that he loved you."
6095
6096 "Yes--no--never absolutely. It was every day implied, but never
6097 professedly declared. Sometimes I thought it had been--but it never
6098 was."
6099
6100 "Yet you wrote to him?"--
6101
6102 "Yes--could that be wrong after all that had passed?-- But I cannot
6103 talk."
6104
6105 Elinor said no more, and turning again to the three letters which now
6106 raised a much stronger curiosity than before, directly ran over the
6107 contents of all. The first, which was what her sister had sent him on
6108 their arrival in town, was to this effect.
6109
6110 Berkeley Street, January.
6111
6112 "How surprised you will be, Willoughby, on
6113 receiving this; and I think you will feel something
6114 more than surprise, when you know that I am in town.
6115 An opportunity of coming hither, though with Mrs.
6116 Jennings, was a temptation we could not resist.
6117 I wish you may receive this in time to come here
6118 to-night, but I will not depend on it. At any rate
6119 I shall expect you to-morrow. For the present, adieu.
6120
6121 "M.D."
6122
6123 Her second note, which had been written on the morning after the dance
6124 at the Middletons', was in these words:--
6125
6126 "I cannot express my disappointment in having
6127 missed you the day before yesterday, nor my astonishment
6128 at not having received any answer to a note which
6129 I sent you above a week ago. I have been expecting
6130 to hear from you, and still more to see you, every
6131 hour of the day. Pray call again as soon as possible,
6132 and explain the reason of my having expected this
6133 in vain. You had better come earlier another time,
6134 because we are generally out by one. We were last
6135 night at Lady Middleton's, where there was a dance.
6136 I have been told that you were asked to be of the
6137 party. But could it be so? You must be very much
6138 altered indeed since we parted, if that could be
6139 the case, and you not there. But I will not suppose
6140 this possible, and I hope very soon to receive your
6141 personal assurance of its being otherwise.
6142
6143 "M.D."
6144
6145 The contents of her last note to him were these:--
6146
6147 "What am I to imagine, Willoughby, by your
6148 behaviour last night? Again I demand an explanation
6149 of it. I was prepared to meet you with the pleasure
6150 which our separation naturally produced, with the
6151 familiarity which our intimacy at Barton appeared
6152 to me to justify. I was repulsed indeed! I have
6153 passed a wretched night in endeavouring to excuse
6154 a conduct which can scarcely be called less than
6155 insulting; but though I have not yet been able to
6156 form any reasonable apology for your behaviour,
6157 I am perfectly ready to hear your justification of
6158 it. You have perhaps been misinformed, or purposely
6159 deceived, in something concerning me, which may have
6160 lowered me in your opinion. Tell me what it is,
6161 explain the grounds on which you acted, and I shall
6162 be satisfied, in being able to satisfy you. It
6163 would grieve me indeed to be obliged to think ill
6164 of you; but if I am to do it, if I am to learn that
6165 you are not what we have hitherto believed you, that
6166 your regard for us all was insincere, that your
6167 behaviour to me was intended only to deceive, let
6168 it be told as soon as possible. My feelings are at
6169 present in a state of dreadful indecision; I wish
6170 to acquit you, but certainty on either side will be
6171 ease to what I now suffer. If your sentiments are
6172 no longer what they were, you will return my notes,
6173 and the lock of my hair which is in your possession.
6174
6175 "M.D."
6176
6177 That such letters, so full of affection and confidence, could have been
6178 so answered, Elinor, for Willoughby's sake, would have been unwilling
6179 to believe. But her condemnation of him did not blind her to the
6180 impropriety of their having been written at all; and she was silently
6181 grieving over the imprudence which had hazarded such unsolicited proofs
6182 of tenderness, not warranted by anything preceding, and most severely
6183 condemned by the event, when Marianne, perceiving that she had finished
6184 the letters, observed to her that they contained nothing but what any
6185 one would have written in the same situation.
6186
6187 "I felt myself," she added, "to be as solemnly engaged to him, as if
6188 the strictest legal covenant had bound us to each other."
6189
6190 "I can believe it," said Elinor; "but unfortunately he did not feel the
6191 same."
6192
6193 "He DID feel the same, Elinor--for weeks and weeks he felt it. I know
6194 he did. Whatever may have changed him now, (and nothing but the
6195 blackest art employed against me can have done it), I was once as dear
6196 to him as my own soul could wish. This lock of hair, which now he can
6197 so readily give up, was begged of me with the most earnest
6198 supplication. Had you seen his look, his manner, had you heard his
6199 voice at that moment! Have you forgot the last evening of our being
6200 together at Barton? The morning that we parted too! When he told me
6201 that it might be many weeks before we met again--his distress--can I
6202 ever forget his distress?"
6203
6204 For a moment or two she could say no more; but when this emotion had
6205 passed away, she added, in a firmer tone,
6206
6207 "Elinor, I have been cruelly used; but not by Willoughby."
6208
6209 "Dearest Marianne, who but himself? By whom can he have been
6210 instigated?"
6211
6212 "By all the world, rather than by his own heart. I could rather
6213 believe every creature of my acquaintance leagued together to ruin me
6214 in his opinion, than believe his nature capable of such cruelty. This
6215 woman of whom he writes--whoever she be--or any one, in short, but your
6216 own dear self, mama, and Edward, may have been so barbarous to bely me.
6217 Beyond you three, is there a creature in the world whom I would not
6218 rather suspect of evil than Willoughby, whose heart I know so well?"
6219
6220 Elinor would not contend, and only replied, "Whoever may have been so
6221 detestably your enemy, let them be cheated of their malignant triumph,
6222 my dear sister, by seeing how nobly the consciousness of your own
6223 innocence and good intentions supports your spirits. It is a
6224 reasonable and laudable pride which resists such malevolence."
6225
6226 "No, no," cried Marianne, "misery such as mine has no pride. I care
6227 not who knows that I am wretched. The triumph of seeing me so may be
6228 open to all the world. Elinor, Elinor, they who suffer little may be
6229 proud and independent as they like--may resist insult, or return
6230 mortification--but I cannot. I must feel--I must be wretched--and they
6231 are welcome to enjoy the consciousness of it that can."
6232
6233 "But for my mother's sake and mine--"
6234
6235 "I would do more than for my own. But to appear happy when I am so
6236 miserable--Oh! who can require it?"
6237
6238 Again they were both silent. Elinor was employed in walking
6239 thoughtfully from the fire to the window, from the window to the fire,
6240 without knowing that she received warmth from one, or discerning
6241 objects through the other; and Marianne, seated at the foot of the bed,
6242 with her head leaning against one of its posts, again took up
6243 Willoughby's letter, and, after shuddering over every sentence,
6244 exclaimed--
6245
6246 "It is too much! Oh, Willoughby, Willoughby, could this be yours!
6247 Cruel, cruel--nothing can acquit you. Elinor, nothing can. Whatever
6248 he might have heard against me--ought he not to have suspended his
6249 belief? ought he not to have told me of it, to have given me the power
6250 of clearing myself? 'The lock of hair, (repeating it from the letter,)
6251 which you so obligingly bestowed on me'--That is unpardonable.
6252 Willoughby, where was your heart when you wrote those words? Oh,
6253 barbarously insolent!--Elinor, can he be justified?"
6254
6255 "No, Marianne, in no possible way."
6256
6257 "And yet this woman--who knows what her art may have been?--how long it
6258 may have been premeditated, and how deeply contrived by her!--Who is
6259 she?--Who can she be?--Whom did I ever hear him talk of as young and
6260 attractive among his female acquaintance?--Oh! no one, no one--he
6261 talked to me only of myself."
6262
6263 Another pause ensued; Marianne was greatly agitated, and it ended thus.
6264
6265 "Elinor, I must go home. I must go and comfort mama. Can not we be
6266 gone to-morrow?"
6267
6268 "To-morrow, Marianne!"
6269
6270 "Yes, why should I stay here? I came only for Willoughby's sake--and
6271 now who cares for me? Who regards me?"
6272
6273 "It would be impossible to go to-morrow. We owe Mrs. Jennings much more
6274 than civility; and civility of the commonest kind must prevent such a
6275 hasty removal as that."
6276
6277 "Well then, another day or two, perhaps; but I cannot stay here long, I
6278 cannot stay to endure the questions and remarks of all these people.
6279 The Middletons and Palmers--how am I to bear their pity? The pity of
6280 such a woman as Lady Middleton! Oh, what would HE say to that!"
6281
6282 Elinor advised her to lie down again, and for a moment she did so; but
6283 no attitude could give her ease; and in restless pain of mind and body
6284 she moved from one posture to another, till growing more and more
6285 hysterical, her sister could with difficulty keep her on the bed at
6286 all, and for some time was fearful of being constrained to call for
6287 assistance. Some lavender drops, however, which she was at length
6288 persuaded to take, were of use; and from that time till Mrs. Jennings
6289 returned, she continued on the bed quiet and motionless.
6290
6291
6292
6293 CHAPTER 30
6294
6295
6296 Mrs. Jennings came immediately to their room on her return, and without
6297 waiting to have her request of admittance answered, opened the door and
6298 walked in with a look of real concern.
6299
6300 "How do you do my dear?"--said she in a voice of great compassion to
6301 Marianne, who turned away her face without attempting to answer.
6302
6303 "How is she, Miss Dashwood?--Poor thing! she looks very bad.-- No
6304 wonder. Ay, it is but too true. He is to be married very soon--a
6305 good-for-nothing fellow! I have no patience with him. Mrs. Taylor
6306 told me of it half an hour ago, and she was told it by a particular
6307 friend of Miss Grey herself, else I am sure I should not have believed
6308 it; and I was almost ready to sink as it was. Well, said I, all I can
6309 say is, that if this be true, he has used a young lady of my
6310 acquaintance abominably ill, and I wish with all my soul his wife may
6311 plague his heart out. And so I shall always say, my dear, you may
6312 depend on it. I have no notion of men's going on in this way; and if
6313 ever I meet him again, I will give him such a dressing as he has not
6314 had this many a day. But there is one comfort, my dear Miss Marianne;
6315 he is not the only young man in the world worth having; and with your
6316 pretty face you will never want admirers. Well, poor thing! I won't
6317 disturb her any longer, for she had better have her cry out at once and
6318 have done with. The Parrys and Sandersons luckily are coming tonight
6319 you know, and that will amuse her."
6320
6321 She then went away, walking on tiptoe out of the room, as if she
6322 supposed her young friend's affliction could be increased by noise.
6323
6324 Marianne, to the surprise of her sister, determined on dining with
6325 them. Elinor even advised her against it. But "no, she would go down;
6326 she could bear it very well, and the bustle about her would be less."
6327 Elinor, pleased to have her governed for a moment by such a motive,
6328 though believing it hardly possible that she could sit out the dinner,
6329 said no more; and adjusting her dress for her as well as she could,
6330 while Marianne still remained on the bed, was ready to assist her into
6331 the dining room as soon as they were summoned to it.
6332
6333 When there, though looking most wretchedly, she ate more and was calmer
6334 than her sister had expected. Had she tried to speak, or had she been
6335 conscious of half Mrs. Jennings's well-meant but ill-judged attentions
6336 to her, this calmness could not have been maintained; but not a
6337 syllable escaped her lips; and the abstraction of her thoughts
6338 preserved her in ignorance of every thing that was passing before her.
6339
6340 Elinor, who did justice to Mrs. Jennings's kindness, though its
6341 effusions were often distressing, and sometimes almost ridiculous, made
6342 her those acknowledgments, and returned her those civilities, which her
6343 sister could not make or return for herself. Their good friend saw
6344 that Marianne was unhappy, and felt that every thing was due to her
6345 which might make her at all less so. She treated her therefore, with
6346 all the indulgent fondness of a parent towards a favourite child on the
6347 last day of its holidays. Marianne was to have the best place by the
6348 fire, was to be tempted to eat by every delicacy in the house, and to
6349 be amused by the relation of all the news of the day. Had not Elinor,
6350 in the sad countenance of her sister, seen a check to all mirth, she
6351 could have been entertained by Mrs. Jennings's endeavours to cure a
6352 disappointment in love, by a variety of sweetmeats and olives, and a
6353 good fire. As soon, however, as the consciousness of all this was
6354 forced by continual repetition on Marianne, she could stay no longer.
6355 With a hasty exclamation of Misery, and a sign to her sister not to
6356 follow her, she directly got up and hurried out of the room.
6357
6358 "Poor soul!" cried Mrs. Jennings, as soon as she was gone, "how it
6359 grieves me to see her! And I declare if she is not gone away without
6360 finishing her wine! And the dried cherries too! Lord! nothing seems
6361 to do her any good. I am sure if I knew of any thing she would like, I
6362 would send all over the town for it. Well, it is the oddest thing to
6363 me, that a man should use such a pretty girl so ill! But when there is
6364 plenty of money on one side, and next to none on the other, Lord bless
6365 you! they care no more about such things!--"
6366
6367 "The lady then--Miss Grey I think you called her--is very rich?"
6368
6369 "Fifty thousand pounds, my dear. Did you ever see her? a smart,
6370 stylish girl they say, but not handsome. I remember her aunt very
6371 well, Biddy Henshawe; she married a very wealthy man. But the family
6372 are all rich together. Fifty thousand pounds! and by all accounts, it
6373 won't come before it's wanted; for they say he is all to pieces. No
6374 wonder! dashing about with his curricle and hunters! Well, it don't
6375 signify talking; but when a young man, be who he will, comes and makes
6376 love to a pretty girl, and promises marriage, he has no business to fly
6377 off from his word only because he grows poor, and a richer girl is
6378 ready to have him. Why don't he, in such a case, sell his horses, let
6379 his house, turn off his servants, and make a thorough reform at once? I
6380 warrant you, Miss Marianne would have been ready to wait till matters
6381 came round. But that won't do now-a-days; nothing in the way of
6382 pleasure can ever be given up by the young men of this age."
6383
6384 "Do you know what kind of a girl Miss Grey is? Is she said to be
6385 amiable?"
6386
6387 "I never heard any harm of her; indeed I hardly ever heard her
6388 mentioned; except that Mrs. Taylor did say this morning, that one day
6389 Miss Walker hinted to her, that she believed Mr. and Mrs. Ellison would
6390 not be sorry to have Miss Grey married, for she and Mrs. Ellison could
6391 never agree."--
6392
6393 "And who are the Ellisons?"
6394
6395 "Her guardians, my dear. But now she is of age and may choose for
6396 herself; and a pretty choice she has made!--What now," after pausing a
6397 moment--"your poor sister is gone to her own room, I suppose, to moan
6398 by herself. Is there nothing one can get to comfort her? Poor dear,
6399 it seems quite cruel to let her be alone. Well, by-and-by we shall
6400 have a few friends, and that will amuse her a little. What shall we
6401 play at? She hates whist I know; but is there no round game she cares
6402 for?"
6403
6404 "Dear ma'am, this kindness is quite unnecessary. Marianne, I dare say,
6405 will not leave her room again this evening. I shall persuade her if I
6406 can to go early to bed, for I am sure she wants rest."
6407
6408 "Aye, I believe that will be best for her. Let her name her own
6409 supper, and go to bed. Lord! no wonder she has been looking so bad and
6410 so cast down this last week or two, for this matter I suppose has been
6411 hanging over her head as long as that. And so the letter that came
6412 today finished it! Poor soul! I am sure if I had had a notion of it,
6413 I would not have joked her about it for all my money. But then you
6414 know, how should I guess such a thing? I made sure of its being
6415 nothing but a common love letter, and you know young people like to be
6416 laughed at about them. Lord! how concerned Sir John and my daughters
6417 will be when they hear it! If I had my senses about me I might have
6418 called in Conduit Street in my way home, and told them of it. But I
6419 shall see them tomorrow."
6420
6421 "It would be unnecessary I am sure, for you to caution Mrs. Palmer and
6422 Sir John against ever naming Mr. Willoughby, or making the slightest
6423 allusion to what has passed, before my sister. Their own good-nature
6424 must point out to them the real cruelty of appearing to know any thing
6425 about it when she is present; and the less that may ever be said to
6426 myself on the subject, the more my feelings will be spared, as you my
6427 dear madam will easily believe."
6428
6429 "Oh! Lord! yes, that I do indeed. It must be terrible for you to hear
6430 it talked of; and as for your sister, I am sure I would not mention a
6431 word about it to her for the world. You saw I did not all dinner time.
6432 No more would Sir John, nor my daughters, for they are all very
6433 thoughtful and considerate; especially if I give them a hint, as I
6434 certainly will. For my part, I think the less that is said about such
6435 things, the better, the sooner 'tis blown over and forgot. And what
6436 does talking ever do you know?"
6437
6438 "In this affair it can only do harm; more so perhaps than in many cases
6439 of a similar kind, for it has been attended by circumstances which, for
6440 the sake of every one concerned in it, make it unfit to become the
6441 public conversation. I must do THIS justice to Mr. Willoughby--he has
6442 broken no positive engagement with my sister."
6443
6444 "Law, my dear! Don't pretend to defend him. No positive engagement
6445 indeed! after taking her all over Allenham House, and fixing on the
6446 very rooms they were to live in hereafter!"
6447
6448 Elinor, for her sister's sake, could not press the subject farther, and
6449 she hoped it was not required of her for Willoughby's; since, though
6450 Marianne might lose much, he could gain very little by the enforcement
6451 of the real truth. After a short silence on both sides, Mrs. Jennings,
6452 with all her natural hilarity, burst forth again.
6453
6454 "Well, my dear, 'tis a true saying about an ill-wind, for it will be
6455 all the better for Colonel Brandon. He will have her at last; aye,
6456 that he will. Mind me, now, if they an't married by Mid-summer. Lord!
6457 how he'll chuckle over this news! I hope he will come tonight. It
6458 will be all to one a better match for your sister. Two thousand a year
6459 without debt or drawback--except the little love-child, indeed; aye, I
6460 had forgot her; but she may be 'prenticed out at a small cost, and then
6461 what does it signify? Delaford is a nice place, I can tell you;
6462 exactly what I call a nice old fashioned place, full of comforts and
6463 conveniences; quite shut in with great garden walls that are covered
6464 with the best fruit-trees in the country; and such a mulberry tree in
6465 one corner! Lord! how Charlotte and I did stuff the only time we were
6466 there! Then, there is a dove-cote, some delightful stew-ponds, and a
6467 very pretty canal; and every thing, in short, that one could wish for;
6468 and, moreover, it is close to the church, and only a quarter of a mile
6469 from the turnpike-road, so 'tis never dull, for if you only go and sit
6470 up in an old yew arbour behind the house, you may see all the carriages
6471 that pass along. Oh! 'tis a nice place! A butcher hard by in the
6472 village, and the parsonage-house within a stone's throw. To my fancy,
6473 a thousand times prettier than Barton Park, where they are forced to
6474 send three miles for their meat, and have not a neighbour nearer than
6475 your mother. Well, I shall spirit up the Colonel as soon as I can.
6476 One shoulder of mutton, you know, drives another down. If we CAN but
6477 put Willoughby out of her head!"
6478
6479 "Ay, if we can do THAT, Ma'am," said Elinor, "we shall do very well
6480 with or without Colonel Brandon." And then rising, she went away to
6481 join Marianne, whom she found, as she expected, in her own room,
6482 leaning, in silent misery, over the small remains of a fire, which,
6483 till Elinor's entrance, had been her only light.
6484
6485 "You had better leave me," was all the notice that her sister received
6486 from her.
6487
6488 "I will leave you," said Elinor, "if you will go to bed." But this,
6489 from the momentary perverseness of impatient suffering, she at first
6490 refused to do. Her sister's earnest, though gentle persuasion,
6491 however, soon softened her to compliance, and Elinor saw her lay her
6492 aching head on the pillow, and as she hoped, in a way to get some quiet
6493 rest before she left her.
6494
6495 In the drawing-room, whither she then repaired, she was soon joined by
6496 Mrs. Jennings, with a wine-glass, full of something, in her hand.
6497
6498 "My dear," said she, entering, "I have just recollected that I have
6499 some of the finest old Constantia wine in the house that ever was
6500 tasted, so I have brought a glass of it for your sister. My poor
6501 husband! how fond he was of it! Whenever he had a touch of his old
6502 colicky gout, he said it did him more good than any thing else in the
6503 world. Do take it to your sister."
6504
6505 "Dear Ma'am," replied Elinor, smiling at the difference of the
6506 complaints for which it was recommended, "how good you are! But I have
6507 just left Marianne in bed, and, I hope, almost asleep; and as I think
6508 nothing will be of so much service to her as rest, if you will give me
6509 leave, I will drink the wine myself."
6510
6511 Mrs. Jennings, though regretting that she had not been five minutes
6512 earlier, was satisfied with the compromise; and Elinor, as she
6513 swallowed the chief of it, reflected, that though its effects on a
6514 colicky gout were, at present, of little importance to her, its healing
6515 powers, on a disappointed heart might be as reasonably tried on herself
6516 as on her sister.
6517
6518 Colonel Brandon came in while the party were at tea, and by his manner
6519 of looking round the room for Marianne, Elinor immediately fancied that
6520 he neither expected nor wished to see her there, and, in short, that he
6521 was already aware of what occasioned her absence. Mrs. Jennings was
6522 not struck by the same thought; for soon after his entrance, she walked
6523 across the room to the tea-table where Elinor presided, and whispered--
6524 "The Colonel looks as grave as ever you see. He knows nothing of it;
6525 do tell him, my dear."
6526
6527 He shortly afterwards drew a chair close to hers, and, with a look
6528 which perfectly assured her of his good information, inquired after her
6529 sister.
6530
6531 "Marianne is not well," said she. "She has been indisposed all day,
6532 and we have persuaded her to go to bed."
6533
6534 "Perhaps, then," he hesitatingly replied, "what I heard this morning
6535 may be--there may be more truth in it than I could believe possible at
6536 first."
6537
6538 "What did you hear?"
6539
6540 "That a gentleman, whom I had reason to think--in short, that a man,
6541 whom I KNEW to be engaged--but how shall I tell you? If you know it
6542 already, as surely you must, I may be spared."
6543
6544 "You mean," answered Elinor, with forced calmness, "Mr. Willoughby's
6545 marriage with Miss Grey. Yes, we DO know it all. This seems to have
6546 been a day of general elucidation, for this very morning first unfolded
6547 it to us. Mr. Willoughby is unfathomable! Where did you hear it?"
6548
6549 "In a stationer's shop in Pall Mall, where I had business. Two ladies
6550 were waiting for their carriage, and one of them was giving the other
6551 an account of the intended match, in a voice so little attempting
6552 concealment, that it was impossible for me not to hear all. The name
6553 of Willoughby, John Willoughby, frequently repeated, first caught my
6554 attention; and what followed was a positive assertion that every thing
6555 was now finally settled respecting his marriage with Miss Grey--it was
6556 no longer to be a secret--it would take place even within a few weeks,
6557 with many particulars of preparations and other matters. One thing,
6558 especially, I remember, because it served to identify the man still
6559 more:--as soon as the ceremony was over, they were to go to Combe
6560 Magna, his seat in Somersetshire. My astonishment!--but it would be
6561 impossible to describe what I felt. The communicative lady I learnt,
6562 on inquiry, for I stayed in the shop till they were gone, was a Mrs.
6563 Ellison, and that, as I have been since informed, is the name of Miss
6564 Grey's guardian."
6565
6566 "It is. But have you likewise heard that Miss Grey has fifty thousand
6567 pounds? In that, if in any thing, we may find an explanation."
6568
6569 "It may be so; but Willoughby is capable--at least I think"--he stopped
6570 a moment; then added in a voice which seemed to distrust itself, "And
6571 your sister--how did she--"
6572
6573 "Her sufferings have been very severe. I have only to hope that they
6574 may be proportionately short. It has been, it is a most cruel
6575 affliction. Till yesterday, I believe, she never doubted his regard;
6576 and even now, perhaps--but I am almost convinced that he never was
6577 really attached to her. He has been very deceitful! and, in some
6578 points, there seems a hardness of heart about him."
6579
6580 "Ah!" said Colonel Brandon, "there is, indeed! But your sister does
6581 not--I think you said so--she does not consider quite as you do?"
6582
6583 "You know her disposition, and may believe how eagerly she would still
6584 justify him if she could."
6585
6586 He made no answer; and soon afterwards, by the removal of the
6587 tea-things, and the arrangement of the card parties, the subject was
6588 necessarily dropped. Mrs. Jennings, who had watched them with pleasure
6589 while they were talking, and who expected to see the effect of Miss
6590 Dashwood's communication, in such an instantaneous gaiety on Colonel
6591 Brandon's side, as might have become a man in the bloom of youth, of
6592 hope and happiness, saw him, with amazement, remain the whole evening
6593 more serious and thoughtful than usual.
6594
6595
6596
6597 CHAPTER 31
6598
6599
6600 From a night of more sleep than she had expected, Marianne awoke the
6601 next morning to the same consciousness of misery in which she had
6602 closed her eyes.
6603
6604 Elinor encouraged her as much as possible to talk of what she felt; and
6605 before breakfast was ready, they had gone through the subject again and
6606 again; and with the same steady conviction and affectionate counsel on
6607 Elinor's side, the same impetuous feelings and varying opinions on
6608 Marianne's, as before. Sometimes she could believe Willoughby to be as
6609 unfortunate and as innocent as herself, and at others, lost every
6610 consolation in the impossibility of acquitting him. At one moment she
6611 was absolutely indifferent to the observation of all the world, at
6612 another she would seclude herself from it for ever, and at a third
6613 could resist it with energy. In one thing, however, she was uniform,
6614 when it came to the point, in avoiding, where it was possible, the
6615 presence of Mrs. Jennings, and in a determined silence when obliged to
6616 endure it. Her heart was hardened against the belief of Mrs.
6617 Jennings's entering into her sorrows with any compassion.
6618
6619 "No, no, no, it cannot be," she cried; "she cannot feel. Her kindness
6620 is not sympathy; her good-nature is not tenderness. All that she wants
6621 is gossip, and she only likes me now because I supply it."
6622
6623 Elinor had not needed this to be assured of the injustice to which her
6624 sister was often led in her opinion of others, by the irritable
6625 refinement of her own mind, and the too great importance placed by her
6626 on the delicacies of a strong sensibility, and the graces of a polished
6627 manner. Like half the rest of the world, if more than half there be
6628 that are clever and good, Marianne, with excellent abilities and an
6629 excellent disposition, was neither reasonable nor candid. She expected
6630 from other people the same opinions and feelings as her own, and she
6631 judged of their motives by the immediate effect of their actions on
6632 herself. Thus a circumstance occurred, while the sisters were together
6633 in their own room after breakfast, which sunk the heart of Mrs.
6634 Jennings still lower in her estimation; because, through her own
6635 weakness, it chanced to prove a source of fresh pain to herself, though
6636 Mrs. Jennings was governed in it by an impulse of the utmost goodwill.
6637
6638 With a letter in her outstretched hand, and countenance gaily smiling,
6639 from the persuasion of bringing comfort, she entered their room, saying,
6640
6641 "Now, my dear, I bring you something that I am sure will do you good."
6642
6643 Marianne heard enough. In one moment her imagination placed before her
6644 a letter from Willoughby, full of tenderness and contrition,
6645 explanatory of all that had passed, satisfactory, convincing; and
6646 instantly followed by Willoughby himself, rushing eagerly into the room
6647 to inforce, at her feet, by the eloquence of his eyes, the assurances
6648 of his letter. The work of one moment was destroyed by the next. The
6649 hand writing of her mother, never till then unwelcome, was before her;
6650 and, in the acuteness of the disappointment which followed such an
6651 ecstasy of more than hope, she felt as if, till that instant, she had
6652 never suffered.
6653
6654 The cruelty of Mrs. Jennings no language, within her reach in her
6655 moments of happiest eloquence, could have expressed; and now she could
6656 reproach her only by the tears which streamed from her eyes with
6657 passionate violence--a reproach, however, so entirely lost on its
6658 object, that after many expressions of pity, she withdrew, still
6659 referring her to the letter of comfort. But the letter, when she was
6660 calm enough to read it, brought little comfort. Willoughby filled
6661 every page. Her mother, still confident of their engagement, and
6662 relying as warmly as ever on his constancy, had only been roused by
6663 Elinor's application, to intreat from Marianne greater openness towards
6664 them both; and this, with such tenderness towards her, such affection
6665 for Willoughby, and such a conviction of their future happiness in each
6666 other, that she wept with agony through the whole of it.
6667
6668 All her impatience to be at home again now returned; her mother was
6669 dearer to her than ever; dearer through the very excess of her mistaken
6670 confidence in Willoughby, and she was wildly urgent to be gone.
6671 Elinor, unable herself to determine whether it were better for Marianne
6672 to be in London or at Barton, offered no counsel of her own except of
6673 patience till their mother's wishes could be known; and at length she
6674 obtained her sister's consent to wait for that knowledge.
6675
6676 Mrs. Jennings left them earlier than usual; for she could not be easy
6677 till the Middletons and Palmers were able to grieve as much as herself;
6678 and positively refusing Elinor's offered attendance, went out alone for
6679 the rest of the morning. Elinor, with a very heavy heart, aware of the
6680 pain she was going to communicate, and perceiving, by Marianne's
6681 letter, how ill she had succeeded in laying any foundation for it, then
6682 sat down to write her mother an account of what had passed, and entreat
6683 her directions for the future; while Marianne, who came into the
6684 drawing-room on Mrs. Jennings's going away, remained fixed at the table
6685 where Elinor wrote, watching the advancement of her pen, grieving over
6686 her for the hardship of such a task, and grieving still more fondly
6687 over its effect on her mother.
6688
6689 In this manner they had continued about a quarter of an hour, when
6690 Marianne, whose nerves could not then bear any sudden noise, was
6691 startled by a rap at the door.
6692
6693 "Who can this be?" cried Elinor. "So early too! I thought we HAD been
6694 safe."
6695
6696 Marianne moved to the window--
6697
6698 "It is Colonel Brandon!" said she, with vexation. "We are never safe
6699 from HIM."
6700
6701 "He will not come in, as Mrs. Jennings is from home."
6702
6703 "I will not trust to THAT," retreating to her own room. "A man who has
6704 nothing to do with his own time has no conscience in his intrusion on
6705 that of others."
6706
6707 The event proved her conjecture right, though it was founded on
6708 injustice and error; for Colonel Brandon DID come in; and Elinor, who
6709 was convinced that solicitude for Marianne brought him thither, and who
6710 saw THAT solicitude in his disturbed and melancholy look, and in his
6711 anxious though brief inquiry after her, could not forgive her sister
6712 for esteeming him so lightly.
6713
6714 "I met Mrs. Jennings in Bond Street," said he, after the first
6715 salutation, "and she encouraged me to come on; and I was the more
6716 easily encouraged, because I thought it probable that I might find you
6717 alone, which I was very desirous of doing. My object--my wish--my sole
6718 wish in desiring it--I hope, I believe it is--is to be a means of
6719 giving comfort;--no, I must not say comfort--not present comfort--but
6720 conviction, lasting conviction to your sister's mind. My regard for
6721 her, for yourself, for your mother--will you allow me to prove it, by
6722 relating some circumstances which nothing but a VERY sincere
6723 regard--nothing but an earnest desire of being useful--I think I am
6724 justified--though where so many hours have been spent in convincing
6725 myself that I am right, is there not some reason to fear I may be
6726 wrong?" He stopped.
6727
6728 "I understand you," said Elinor. "You have something to tell me of Mr.
6729 Willoughby, that will open his character farther. Your telling it will
6730 be the greatest act of friendship that can be shewn Marianne. MY
6731 gratitude will be insured immediately by any information tending to
6732 that end, and HERS must be gained by it in time. Pray, pray let me
6733 hear it."
6734
6735 "You shall; and, to be brief, when I quitted Barton last October,--but
6736 this will give you no idea--I must go farther back. You will find me a
6737 very awkward narrator, Miss Dashwood; I hardly know where to begin. A
6738 short account of myself, I believe, will be necessary, and it SHALL be
6739 a short one. On such a subject," sighing heavily, "can I have little
6740 temptation to be diffuse."
6741
6742 He stopt a moment for recollection, and then, with another sigh, went
6743 on.
6744
6745 "You have probably entirely forgotten a conversation--(it is not to be
6746 supposed that it could make any impression on you)--a conversation
6747 between us one evening at Barton Park--it was the evening of a
6748 dance--in which I alluded to a lady I had once known, as resembling, in
6749 some measure, your sister Marianne."
6750
6751 "Indeed," answered Elinor, "I have NOT forgotten it." He looked pleased
6752 by this remembrance, and added,
6753
6754 "If I am not deceived by the uncertainty, the partiality of tender
6755 recollection, there is a very strong resemblance between them, as well
6756 in mind as person. The same warmth of heart, the same eagerness of
6757 fancy and spirits. This lady was one of my nearest relations, an
6758 orphan from her infancy, and under the guardianship of my father. Our
6759 ages were nearly the same, and from our earliest years we were
6760 playfellows and friends. I cannot remember the time when I did not
6761 love Eliza; and my affection for her, as we grew up, was such, as
6762 perhaps, judging from my present forlorn and cheerless gravity, you
6763 might think me incapable of having ever felt. Hers, for me, was, I
6764 believe, fervent as the attachment of your sister to Mr. Willoughby and
6765 it was, though from a different cause, no less unfortunate. At
6766 seventeen she was lost to me for ever. She was married--married
6767 against her inclination to my brother. Her fortune was large, and our
6768 family estate much encumbered. And this, I fear, is all that can be
6769 said for the conduct of one, who was at once her uncle and guardian.
6770 My brother did not deserve her; he did not even love her. I had hoped
6771 that her regard for me would support her under any difficulty, and for
6772 some time it did; but at last the misery of her situation, for she
6773 experienced great unkindness, overcame all her resolution, and though
6774 she had promised me that nothing--but how blindly I relate! I have
6775 never told you how this was brought on. We were within a few hours of
6776 eloping together for Scotland. The treachery, or the folly, of my
6777 cousin's maid betrayed us. I was banished to the house of a relation
6778 far distant, and she was allowed no liberty, no society, no amusement,
6779 till my father's point was gained. I had depended on her fortitude too
6780 far, and the blow was a severe one--but had her marriage been happy, so
6781 young as I then was, a few months must have reconciled me to it, or at
6782 least I should not have now to lament it. This however was not the
6783 case. My brother had no regard for her; his pleasures were not what
6784 they ought to have been, and from the first he treated her unkindly.
6785 The consequence of this, upon a mind so young, so lively, so
6786 inexperienced as Mrs. Brandon's, was but too natural. She resigned
6787 herself at first to all the misery of her situation; and happy had it
6788 been if she had not lived to overcome those regrets which the
6789 remembrance of me occasioned. But can we wonder that, with such a
6790 husband to provoke inconstancy, and without a friend to advise or
6791 restrain her (for my father lived only a few months after their
6792 marriage, and I was with my regiment in the East Indies) she should
6793 fall? Had I remained in England, perhaps--but I meant to promote the
6794 happiness of both by removing from her for years, and for that purpose
6795 had procured my exchange. The shock which her marriage had given me,"
6796 he continued, in a voice of great agitation, "was of trifling
6797 weight--was nothing to what I felt when I heard, about two years
6798 afterwards, of her divorce. It was THAT which threw this gloom,--even
6799 now the recollection of what I suffered--"
6800
6801 He could say no more, and rising hastily walked for a few minutes about
6802 the room. Elinor, affected by his relation, and still more by his
6803 distress, could not speak. He saw her concern, and coming to her, took
6804 her hand, pressed it, and kissed it with grateful respect. A few
6805 minutes more of silent exertion enabled him to proceed with composure.
6806
6807 "It was nearly three years after this unhappy period before I returned
6808 to England. My first care, when I DID arrive, was of course to seek
6809 for her; but the search was as fruitless as it was melancholy. I could
6810 not trace her beyond her first seducer, and there was every reason to
6811 fear that she had removed from him only to sink deeper in a life of
6812 sin. Her legal allowance was not adequate to her fortune, nor
6813 sufficient for her comfortable maintenance, and I learnt from my
6814 brother that the power of receiving it had been made over some months
6815 before to another person. He imagined, and calmly could he imagine it,
6816 that her extravagance, and consequent distress, had obliged her to
6817 dispose of it for some immediate relief. At last, however, and after I
6818 had been six months in England, I DID find her. Regard for a former
6819 servant of my own, who had since fallen into misfortune, carried me to
6820 visit him in a spunging-house, where he was confined for debt; and
6821 there, in the same house, under a similar confinement, was my unfortunate
6822 sister. So altered--so faded--worn down by acute suffering of every
6823 kind! hardly could I believe the melancholy and sickly figure before
6824 me, to be the remains of the lovely, blooming, healthful girl, on whom
6825 I had once doted. What I endured in so beholding her--but I have no
6826 right to wound your feelings by attempting to describe it--I have
6827 pained you too much already. That she was, to all appearance, in the
6828 last stage of a consumption, was--yes, in such a situation it was my
6829 greatest comfort. Life could do nothing for her, beyond giving time
6830 for a better preparation for death; and that was given. I saw her
6831 placed in comfortable lodgings, and under proper attendants; I visited
6832 her every day during the rest of her short life: I was with her in her
6833 last moments."
6834
6835 Again he stopped to recover himself; and Elinor spoke her feelings in
6836 an exclamation of tender concern, at the fate of his unfortunate friend.
6837
6838 "Your sister, I hope, cannot be offended," said he, "by the resemblance
6839 I have fancied between her and my poor disgraced relation. Their
6840 fates, their fortunes, cannot be the same; and had the natural sweet
6841 disposition of the one been guarded by a firmer mind, or a happier
6842 marriage, she might have been all that you will live to see the other
6843 be. But to what does all this lead? I seem to have been distressing
6844 you for nothing. Ah! Miss Dashwood--a subject such as this--untouched
6845 for fourteen years--it is dangerous to handle it at all! I WILL be
6846 more collected--more concise. She left to my care her only child, a
6847 little girl, the offspring of her first guilty connection, who was then
6848 about three years old. She loved the child, and had always kept it
6849 with her. It was a valued, a precious trust to me; and gladly would I
6850 have discharged it in the strictest sense, by watching over her
6851 education myself, had the nature of our situations allowed it; but I
6852 had no family, no home; and my little Eliza was therefore placed at
6853 school. I saw her there whenever I could, and after the death of my
6854 brother, (which happened about five years ago, and which left to me the
6855 possession of the family property,) she visited me at Delaford. I
6856 called her a distant relation; but I am well aware that I have in
6857 general been suspected of a much nearer connection with her. It is now
6858 three years ago (she had just reached her fourteenth year,) that I
6859 removed her from school, to place her under the care of a very
6860 respectable woman, residing in Dorsetshire, who had the charge of four
6861 or five other girls of about the same time of life; and for two years I
6862 had every reason to be pleased with her situation. But last February,
6863 almost a twelvemonth back, she suddenly disappeared. I had allowed
6864 her, (imprudently, as it has since turned out,) at her earnest desire,
6865 to go to Bath with one of her young friends, who was attending her
6866 father there for his health. I knew him to be a very good sort of man,
6867 and I thought well of his daughter--better than she deserved, for, with
6868 a most obstinate and ill-judged secrecy, she would tell nothing, would
6869 give no clue, though she certainly knew all. He, her father, a
6870 well-meaning, but not a quick-sighted man, could really, I believe,
6871 give no information; for he had been generally confined to the house,
6872 while the girls were ranging over the town and making what acquaintance
6873 they chose; and he tried to convince me, as thoroughly as he was
6874 convinced himself, of his daughter's being entirely unconcerned in the
6875 business. In short, I could learn nothing but that she was gone; all
6876 the rest, for eight long months, was left to conjecture. What I
6877 thought, what I feared, may be imagined; and what I suffered too."
6878
6879 "Good heavens!" cried Elinor, "could it be--could Willoughby!"--
6880
6881 "The first news that reached me of her," he continued, "came in a
6882 letter from herself, last October. It was forwarded to me from
6883 Delaford, and I received it on the very morning of our intended party
6884 to Whitwell; and this was the reason of my leaving Barton so suddenly,
6885 which I am sure must at the time have appeared strange to every body,
6886 and which I believe gave offence to some. Little did Mr. Willoughby
6887 imagine, I suppose, when his looks censured me for incivility in
6888 breaking up the party, that I was called away to the relief of one whom
6889 he had made poor and miserable; but HAD he known it, what would it have
6890 availed? Would he have been less gay or less happy in the smiles of
6891 your sister? No, he had already done that, which no man who CAN feel
6892 for another would do. He had left the girl whose youth and innocence
6893 he had seduced, in a situation of the utmost distress, with no
6894 creditable home, no help, no friends, ignorant of his address! He had
6895 left her, promising to return; he neither returned, nor wrote, nor
6896 relieved her."
6897
6898 "This is beyond every thing!" exclaimed Elinor.
6899
6900 "His character is now before you; expensive, dissipated, and worse than
6901 both. Knowing all this, as I have now known it many weeks, guess what
6902 I must have felt on seeing your sister as fond of him as ever, and on
6903 being assured that she was to marry him: guess what I must have felt
6904 for all your sakes. When I came to you last week and found you alone,
6905 I came determined to know the truth; though irresolute what to do when
6906 it WAS known. My behaviour must have seemed strange to you then; but
6907 now you will comprehend it. To suffer you all to be so deceived; to
6908 see your sister--but what could I do? I had no hope of interfering
6909 with success; and sometimes I thought your sister's influence might yet
6910 reclaim him. But now, after such dishonorable usage, who can tell what
6911 were his designs on her. Whatever they may have been, however, she may
6912 now, and hereafter doubtless WILL turn with gratitude towards her own
6913 condition, when she compares it with that of my poor Eliza, when she
6914 considers the wretched and hopeless situation of this poor girl, and
6915 pictures her to herself, with an affection for him so strong, still as
6916 strong as her own, and with a mind tormented by self-reproach, which
6917 must attend her through life. Surely this comparison must have its use
6918 with her. She will feel her own sufferings to be nothing. They
6919 proceed from no misconduct, and can bring no disgrace. On the
6920 contrary, every friend must be made still more her friend by them.
6921 Concern for her unhappiness, and respect for her fortitude under it,
6922 must strengthen every attachment. Use your own discretion, however, in
6923 communicating to her what I have told you. You must know best what
6924 will be its effect; but had I not seriously, and from my heart believed
6925 it might be of service, might lessen her regrets, I would not have
6926 suffered myself to trouble you with this account of my family
6927 afflictions, with a recital which may seem to have been intended to
6928 raise myself at the expense of others."
6929
6930 Elinor's thanks followed this speech with grateful earnestness;
6931 attended too with the assurance of her expecting material advantage to
6932 Marianne, from the communication of what had passed.
6933
6934 "I have been more pained," said she, "by her endeavors to acquit him
6935 than by all the rest; for it irritates her mind more than the most
6936 perfect conviction of his unworthiness can do. Now, though at first
6937 she will suffer much, I am sure she will soon become easier. Have
6938 you," she continued, after a short silence, "ever seen Mr. Willoughby
6939 since you left him at Barton?"
6940
6941 "Yes," he replied gravely, "once I have. One meeting was unavoidable."
6942
6943 Elinor, startled by his manner, looked at him anxiously, saying,
6944
6945 "What? have you met him to--"
6946
6947 "I could meet him no other way. Eliza had confessed to me, though most
6948 reluctantly, the name of her lover; and when he returned to town, which
6949 was within a fortnight after myself, we met by appointment, he to
6950 defend, I to punish his conduct. We returned unwounded, and the
6951 meeting, therefore, never got abroad."
6952
6953 Elinor sighed over the fancied necessity of this; but to a man and a
6954 soldier she presumed not to censure it.
6955
6956 "Such," said Colonel Brandon, after a pause, "has been the unhappy
6957 resemblance between the fate of mother and daughter! and so imperfectly
6958 have I discharged my trust!"
6959
6960 "Is she still in town?"
6961
6962 "No; as soon as she recovered from her lying-in, for I found her near
6963 her delivery, I removed her and her child into the country, and there
6964 she remains."
6965
6966 Recollecting, soon afterwards, that he was probably dividing Elinor
6967 from her sister, he put an end to his visit, receiving from her again
6968 the same grateful acknowledgments, and leaving her full of compassion
6969 and esteem for him.
6970
6971
6972
6973 CHAPTER 32
6974
6975
6976 When the particulars of this conversation were repeated by Miss
6977 Dashwood to her sister, as they very soon were, the effect on her was
6978 not entirely such as the former had hoped to see. Not that Marianne
6979 appeared to distrust the truth of any part of it, for she listened to
6980 it all with the most steady and submissive attention, made neither
6981 objection nor remark, attempted no vindication of Willoughby, and
6982 seemed to shew by her tears that she felt it to be impossible. But
6983 though this behaviour assured Elinor that the conviction of this guilt
6984 WAS carried home to her mind, though she saw with satisfaction the
6985 effect of it, in her no longer avoiding Colonel Brandon when he called,
6986 in her speaking to him, even voluntarily speaking, with a kind of
6987 compassionate respect, and though she saw her spirits less violently
6988 irritated than before, she did not see her less wretched. Her mind did
6989 become settled, but it was settled in a gloomy dejection. She felt the
6990 loss of Willoughby's character yet more heavily than she had felt the
6991 loss of his heart; his seduction and desertion of Miss Williams, the
6992 misery of that poor girl, and the doubt of what his designs might ONCE
6993 have been on herself, preyed altogether so much on her spirits, that
6994 she could not bring herself to speak of what she felt even to Elinor;
6995 and, brooding over her sorrows in silence, gave more pain to her sister
6996 than could have been communicated by the most open and most frequent
6997 confession of them.
6998
6999 To give the feelings or the language of Mrs. Dashwood on receiving and
7000 answering Elinor's letter would be only to give a repetition of what
7001 her daughters had already felt and said; of a disappointment hardly
7002 less painful than Marianne's, and an indignation even greater than
7003 Elinor's. Long letters from her, quickly succeeding each other,
7004 arrived to tell all that she suffered and thought; to express her
7005 anxious solicitude for Marianne, and entreat she would bear up with
7006 fortitude under this misfortune. Bad indeed must the nature of
7007 Marianne's affliction be, when her mother could talk of fortitude!
7008 mortifying and humiliating must be the origin of those regrets, which
7009 SHE could wish her not to indulge!
7010
7011 Against the interest of her own individual comfort, Mrs. Dashwood had
7012 determined that it would be better for Marianne to be any where, at
7013 that time, than at Barton, where every thing within her view would be
7014 bringing back the past in the strongest and most afflicting manner, by
7015 constantly placing Willoughby before her, such as she had always seen
7016 him there. She recommended it to her daughters, therefore, by all
7017 means not to shorten their visit to Mrs. Jennings; the length of which,
7018 though never exactly fixed, had been expected by all to comprise at
7019 least five or six weeks. A variety of occupations, of objects, and of
7020 company, which could not be procured at Barton, would be inevitable
7021 there, and might yet, she hoped, cheat Marianne, at times, into some
7022 interest beyond herself, and even into some amusement, much as the
7023 ideas of both might now be spurned by her.
7024
7025 From all danger of seeing Willoughby again, her mother considered her
7026 to be at least equally safe in town as in the country, since his
7027 acquaintance must now be dropped by all who called themselves her
7028 friends. Design could never bring them in each other's way: negligence
7029 could never leave them exposed to a surprise; and chance had less in
7030 its favour in the crowd of London than even in the retirement of
7031 Barton, where it might force him before her while paying that visit at
7032 Allenham on his marriage, which Mrs. Dashwood, from foreseeing at first
7033 as a probable event, had brought herself to expect as a certain one.
7034
7035 She had yet another reason for wishing her children to remain where
7036 they were; a letter from her son-in-law had told her that he and his
7037 wife were to be in town before the middle of February, and she judged
7038 it right that they should sometimes see their brother.
7039
7040 Marianne had promised to be guided by her mother's opinion, and she
7041 submitted to it therefore without opposition, though it proved
7042 perfectly different from what she wished and expected, though she felt
7043 it to be entirely wrong, formed on mistaken grounds, and that by
7044 requiring her longer continuance in London it deprived her of the only
7045 possible alleviation of her wretchedness, the personal sympathy of her
7046 mother, and doomed her to such society and such scenes as must prevent
7047 her ever knowing a moment's rest.
7048
7049 But it was a matter of great consolation to her, that what brought evil
7050 to herself would bring good to her sister; and Elinor, on the other
7051 hand, suspecting that it would not be in her power to avoid Edward
7052 entirely, comforted herself by thinking, that though their longer stay
7053 would therefore militate against her own happiness, it would be better
7054 for Marianne than an immediate return into Devonshire.
7055
7056 Her carefulness in guarding her sister from ever hearing Willoughby's
7057 name mentioned, was not thrown away. Marianne, though without knowing
7058 it herself, reaped all its advantage; for neither Mrs. Jennings, nor
7059 Sir John, nor even Mrs. Palmer herself, ever spoke of him before her.
7060 Elinor wished that the same forbearance could have extended towards
7061 herself, but that was impossible, and she was obliged to listen day
7062 after day to the indignation of them all.
7063
7064 Sir John, could not have thought it possible. "A man of whom he had
7065 always had such reason to think well! Such a good-natured fellow! He
7066 did not believe there was a bolder rider in England! It was an
7067 unaccountable business. He wished him at the devil with all his heart.
7068 He would not speak another word to him, meet him where he might, for
7069 all the world! No, not if it were to be by the side of Barton covert,
7070 and they were kept watching for two hours together. Such a scoundrel
7071 of a fellow! such a deceitful dog! It was only the last time they met
7072 that he had offered him one of Folly's puppies! and this was the end of
7073 it!"
7074
7075 Mrs. Palmer, in her way, was equally angry. "She was determined to
7076 drop his acquaintance immediately, and she was very thankful that she
7077 had never been acquainted with him at all. She wished with all her
7078 heart Combe Magna was not so near Cleveland; but it did not signify,
7079 for it was a great deal too far off to visit; she hated him so much
7080 that she was resolved never to mention his name again, and she should
7081 tell everybody she saw, how good-for-nothing he was."
7082
7083 The rest of Mrs. Palmer's sympathy was shewn in procuring all the
7084 particulars in her power of the approaching marriage, and communicating
7085 them to Elinor. She could soon tell at what coachmaker's the new
7086 carriage was building, by what painter Mr. Willoughby's portrait was
7087 drawn, and at what warehouse Miss Grey's clothes might be seen.
7088
7089 The calm and polite unconcern of Lady Middleton on the occasion was a
7090 happy relief to Elinor's spirits, oppressed as they often were by the
7091 clamorous kindness of the others. It was a great comfort to her to be
7092 sure of exciting no interest in ONE person at least among their circle
7093 of friends: a great comfort to know that there was ONE who would meet
7094 her without feeling any curiosity after particulars, or any anxiety for
7095 her sister's health.
7096
7097 Every qualification is raised at times, by the circumstances of the
7098 moment, to more than its real value; and she was sometimes worried down
7099 by officious condolence to rate good-breeding as more indispensable to
7100 comfort than good-nature.
7101
7102 Lady Middleton expressed her sense of the affair about once every day,
7103 or twice, if the subject occurred very often, by saying, "It is very
7104 shocking, indeed!" and by the means of this continual though gentle
7105 vent, was able not only to see the Miss Dashwoods from the first
7106 without the smallest emotion, but very soon to see them without
7107 recollecting a word of the matter; and having thus supported the
7108 dignity of her own sex, and spoken her decided censure of what was
7109 wrong in the other, she thought herself at liberty to attend to the
7110 interest of her own assemblies, and therefore determined (though rather
7111 against the opinion of Sir John) that as Mrs. Willoughby would at once
7112 be a woman of elegance and fortune, to leave her card with her as soon
7113 as she married.
7114
7115 Colonel Brandon's delicate, unobtrusive enquiries were never unwelcome
7116 to Miss Dashwood. He had abundantly earned the privilege of intimate
7117 discussion of her sister's disappointment, by the friendly zeal with
7118 which he had endeavoured to soften it, and they always conversed with
7119 confidence. His chief reward for the painful exertion of disclosing
7120 past sorrows and present humiliations, was given in the pitying eye
7121 with which Marianne sometimes observed him, and the gentleness of her
7122 voice whenever (though it did not often happen) she was obliged, or
7123 could oblige herself to speak to him. THESE assured him that his
7124 exertion had produced an increase of good-will towards himself, and
7125 THESE gave Elinor hopes of its being farther augmented hereafter; but
7126 Mrs. Jennings, who knew nothing of all this, who knew only that the
7127 Colonel continued as grave as ever, and that she could neither prevail
7128 on him to make the offer himself, nor commission her to make it for
7129 him, began, at the end of two days, to think that, instead of
7130 Midsummer, they would not be married till Michaelmas, and by the end of
7131 a week that it would not be a match at all. The good understanding
7132 between the Colonel and Miss Dashwood seemed rather to declare that the
7133 honours of the mulberry-tree, the canal, and the yew arbour, would all
7134 be made over to HER; and Mrs. Jennings had, for some time ceased to
7135 think at all of Mrs. Ferrars.
7136
7137 Early in February, within a fortnight from the receipt of Willoughby's
7138 letter, Elinor had the painful office of informing her sister that he
7139 was married. She had taken care to have the intelligence conveyed to
7140 herself, as soon as it was known that the ceremony was over, as she was
7141 desirous that Marianne should not receive the first notice of it from
7142 the public papers, which she saw her eagerly examining every morning.
7143
7144 She received the news with resolute composure; made no observation on
7145 it, and at first shed no tears; but after a short time they would burst
7146 out, and for the rest of the day, she was in a state hardly less
7147 pitiable than when she first learnt to expect the event.
7148
7149 The Willoughbys left town as soon as they were married; and Elinor now
7150 hoped, as there could be no danger of her seeing either of them, to
7151 prevail on her sister, who had never yet left the house since the blow
7152 first fell, to go out again by degrees as she had done before.
7153
7154 About this time the two Miss Steeles, lately arrived at their cousin's
7155 house in Bartlett's Buildings, Holburn, presented themselves again
7156 before their more grand relations in Conduit and Berkeley Streets; and
7157 were welcomed by them all with great cordiality.
7158
7159 Elinor only was sorry to see them. Their presence always gave her
7160 pain, and she hardly knew how to make a very gracious return to the
7161 overpowering delight of Lucy in finding her STILL in town.
7162
7163 "I should have been quite disappointed if I had not found you here
7164 STILL," said she repeatedly, with a strong emphasis on the word. "But
7165 I always thought I SHOULD. I was almost sure you would not leave
7166 London yet awhile; though you TOLD me, you know, at Barton, that you
7167 should not stay above a MONTH. But I thought, at the time, that you
7168 would most likely change your mind when it came to the point. It would
7169 have been such a great pity to have went away before your brother and
7170 sister came. And now to be sure you will be in no hurry to be gone. I
7171 am amazingly glad you did not keep to YOUR WORD."
7172
7173 Elinor perfectly understood her, and was forced to use all her
7174 self-command to make it appear that she did NOT.
7175
7176 "Well, my dear," said Mrs. Jennings, "and how did you travel?"
7177
7178 "Not in the stage, I assure you," replied Miss Steele, with quick
7179 exultation; "we came post all the way, and had a very smart beau to
7180 attend us. Dr. Davies was coming to town, and so we thought we'd join
7181 him in a post-chaise; and he behaved very genteelly, and paid ten or
7182 twelve shillings more than we did."
7183
7184 "Oh, oh!" cried Mrs. Jennings; "very pretty, indeed! and the Doctor is
7185 a single man, I warrant you."
7186
7187 "There now," said Miss Steele, affectedly simpering, "everybody laughs
7188 at me so about the Doctor, and I cannot think why. My cousins say they
7189 are sure I have made a conquest; but for my part I declare I never
7190 think about him from one hour's end to another. 'Lord! here comes your
7191 beau, Nancy,' my cousin said t'other day, when she saw him crossing the
7192 street to the house. My beau, indeed! said I--I cannot think who you
7193 mean. The Doctor is no beau of mine."
7194
7195 "Aye, aye, that is very pretty talking--but it won't do--the Doctor is
7196 the man, I see."
7197
7198 "No, indeed!" replied her cousin, with affected earnestness, "and I beg
7199 you will contradict it, if you ever hear it talked of."
7200
7201 Mrs. Jennings directly gave her the gratifying assurance that she
7202 certainly would NOT, and Miss Steele was made completely happy.
7203
7204 "I suppose you will go and stay with your brother and sister, Miss
7205 Dashwood, when they come to town," said Lucy, returning, after a
7206 cessation of hostile hints, to the charge.
7207
7208 "No, I do not think we shall."
7209
7210 "Oh, yes, I dare say you will."
7211
7212 Elinor would not humour her by farther opposition.
7213
7214 "What a charming thing it is that Mrs. Dashwood can spare you both for
7215 so long a time together!"
7216
7217 "Long a time, indeed!" interposed Mrs. Jennings. "Why, their visit is
7218 but just begun!"
7219
7220 Lucy was silenced.
7221
7222 "I am sorry we cannot see your sister, Miss Dashwood," said Miss
7223 Steele. "I am sorry she is not well--" for Marianne had left the room
7224 on their arrival.
7225
7226 "You are very good. My sister will be equally sorry to miss the
7227 pleasure of seeing you; but she has been very much plagued lately with
7228 nervous head-aches, which make her unfit for company or conversation."
7229
7230 "Oh, dear, that is a great pity! but such old friends as Lucy and
7231 me!--I think she might see US; and I am sure we would not speak a word."
7232
7233 Elinor, with great civility, declined the proposal. Her sister was
7234 perhaps laid down upon the bed, or in her dressing gown, and therefore
7235 not able to come to them.
7236
7237 "Oh, if that's all," cried Miss Steele, "we can just as well go and see
7238 HER."
7239
7240 Elinor began to find this impertinence too much for her temper; but she
7241 was saved the trouble of checking it, by Lucy's sharp reprimand, which
7242 now, as on many occasions, though it did not give much sweetness to the
7243 manners of one sister, was of advantage in governing those of the other.
7244
7245
7246
7247 CHAPTER 33
7248
7249
7250 After some opposition, Marianne yielded to her sister's entreaties, and
7251 consented to go out with her and Mrs. Jennings one morning for half an
7252 hour. She expressly conditioned, however, for paying no visits, and
7253 would do no more than accompany them to Gray's in Sackville Street,
7254 where Elinor was carrying on a negotiation for the exchange of a few
7255 old-fashioned jewels of her mother.
7256
7257 When they stopped at the door, Mrs. Jennings recollected that there was
7258 a lady at the other end of the street on whom she ought to call; and as
7259 she had no business at Gray's, it was resolved, that while her young
7260 friends transacted their's, she should pay her visit and return for
7261 them.
7262
7263 On ascending the stairs, the Miss Dashwoods found so many people before
7264 them in the room, that there was not a person at liberty to tend to
7265 their orders; and they were obliged to wait. All that could be done
7266 was, to sit down at that end of the counter which seemed to promise the
7267 quickest succession; one gentleman only was standing there, and it is
7268 probable that Elinor was not without hope of exciting his politeness to
7269 a quicker despatch. But the correctness of his eye, and the delicacy
7270 of his taste, proved to be beyond his politeness. He was giving orders
7271 for a toothpick-case for himself, and till its size, shape, and
7272 ornaments were determined, all of which, after examining and debating
7273 for a quarter of an hour over every toothpick-case in the shop, were
7274 finally arranged by his own inventive fancy, he had no leisure to
7275 bestow any other attention on the two ladies, than what was comprised
7276 in three or four very broad stares; a kind of notice which served to
7277 imprint on Elinor the remembrance of a person and face, of strong,
7278 natural, sterling insignificance, though adorned in the first style of
7279 fashion.
7280
7281 Marianne was spared from the troublesome feelings of contempt and
7282 resentment, on this impertinent examination of their features, and on
7283 the puppyism of his manner in deciding on all the different horrors of
7284 the different toothpick-cases presented to his inspection, by remaining
7285 unconscious of it all; for she was as well able to collect her thoughts
7286 within herself, and be as ignorant of what was passing around her, in
7287 Mr. Gray's shop, as in her own bedroom.
7288
7289 At last the affair was decided. The ivory, the gold, and the pearls,
7290 all received their appointment, and the gentleman having named the last
7291 day on which his existence could be continued without the possession of
7292 the toothpick-case, drew on his gloves with leisurely care, and
7293 bestowing another glance on the Miss Dashwoods, but such a one as
7294 seemed rather to demand than express admiration, walked off with a
7295 happy air of real conceit and affected indifference.
7296
7297 Elinor lost no time in bringing her business forward, was on the point
7298 of concluding it, when another gentleman presented himself at her side.
7299 She turned her eyes towards his face, and found him with some surprise
7300 to be her brother.
7301
7302 Their affection and pleasure in meeting was just enough to make a very
7303 creditable appearance in Mr. Gray's shop. John Dashwood was really far
7304 from being sorry to see his sisters again; it rather gave them
7305 satisfaction; and his inquiries after their mother were respectful and
7306 attentive.
7307
7308 Elinor found that he and Fanny had been in town two days.
7309
7310 "I wished very much to call upon you yesterday," said he, "but it was
7311 impossible, for we were obliged to take Harry to see the wild beasts at
7312 Exeter Exchange; and we spent the rest of the day with Mrs. Ferrars.
7313 Harry was vastly pleased. THIS morning I had fully intended to call on
7314 you, if I could possibly find a spare half hour, but one has always so
7315 much to do on first coming to town. I am come here to bespeak Fanny a
7316 seal. But tomorrow I think I shall certainly be able to call in
7317 Berkeley Street, and be introduced to your friend Mrs. Jennings. I
7318 understand she is a woman of very good fortune. And the Middletons
7319 too, you must introduce me to THEM. As my mother-in-law's relations, I
7320 shall be happy to show them every respect. They are excellent
7321 neighbours to you in the country, I understand."
7322
7323 "Excellent indeed. Their attention to our comfort, their friendliness
7324 in every particular, is more than I can express."
7325
7326 "I am extremely glad to hear it, upon my word; extremely glad indeed.
7327 But so it ought to be; they are people of large fortune, they are
7328 related to you, and every civility and accommodation that can serve to
7329 make your situation pleasant might be reasonably expected. And so you
7330 are most comfortably settled in your little cottage and want for
7331 nothing! Edward brought us a most charming account of the place: the
7332 most complete thing of its kind, he said, that ever was, and you all
7333 seemed to enjoy it beyond any thing. It was a great satisfaction to us
7334 to hear it, I assure you."
7335
7336 Elinor did feel a little ashamed of her brother; and was not sorry to
7337 be spared the necessity of answering him, by the arrival of Mrs.
7338 Jennings's servant, who came to tell her that his mistress waited for
7339 them at the door.
7340
7341 Mr. Dashwood attended them down stairs, was introduced to Mrs. Jennings
7342 at the door of her carriage, and repeating his hope of being able to
7343 call on them the next day, took leave.
7344
7345 His visit was duly paid. He came with a pretence at an apology from
7346 their sister-in-law, for not coming too; "but she was so much engaged
7347 with her mother, that really she had no leisure for going any where."
7348 Mrs. Jennings, however, assured him directly, that she should not stand
7349 upon ceremony, for they were all cousins, or something like it, and she
7350 should certainly wait on Mrs. John Dashwood very soon, and bring her
7351 sisters to see her. His manners to THEM, though calm, were perfectly
7352 kind; to Mrs. Jennings, most attentively civil; and on Colonel
7353 Brandon's coming in soon after himself, he eyed him with a curiosity
7354 which seemed to say, that he only wanted to know him to be rich, to be
7355 equally civil to HIM.
7356
7357 After staying with them half an hour, he asked Elinor to walk with him
7358 to Conduit Street, and introduce him to Sir John and Lady Middleton.
7359 The weather was remarkably fine, and she readily consented. As soon as
7360 they were out of the house, his enquiries began.
7361
7362 "Who is Colonel Brandon? Is he a man of fortune?"
7363
7364 "Yes; he has very good property in Dorsetshire."
7365
7366 "I am glad of it. He seems a most gentlemanlike man; and I think,
7367 Elinor, I may congratulate you on the prospect of a very respectable
7368 establishment in life."
7369
7370 "Me, brother! what do you mean?"
7371
7372 "He likes you. I observed him narrowly, and am convinced of it. What
7373 is the amount of his fortune?"
7374
7375 "I believe about two thousand a year."
7376
7377 "Two thousand a-year;" and then working himself up to a pitch of
7378 enthusiastic generosity, he added, "Elinor, I wish with all my heart it
7379 were TWICE as much, for your sake."
7380
7381 "Indeed I believe you," replied Elinor; "but I am very sure that
7382 Colonel Brandon has not the smallest wish of marrying ME."
7383
7384 "You are mistaken, Elinor; you are very much mistaken. A very little
7385 trouble on your side secures him. Perhaps just at present he may be
7386 undecided; the smallness of your fortune may make him hang back; his
7387 friends may all advise him against it. But some of those little
7388 attentions and encouragements which ladies can so easily give will fix
7389 him, in spite of himself. And there can be no reason why you should
7390 not try for him. It is not to be supposed that any prior attachment on
7391 your side--in short, you know as to an attachment of that kind, it is
7392 quite out of the question, the objections are insurmountable--you have
7393 too much sense not to see all that. Colonel Brandon must be the man;
7394 and no civility shall be wanting on my part to make him pleased with
7395 you and your family. It is a match that must give universal
7396 satisfaction. In short, it is a kind of thing that"--lowering his
7397 voice to an important whisper--"will be exceedingly welcome to ALL
7398 PARTIES." Recollecting himself, however, he added, "That is, I mean to
7399 say--your friends are all truly anxious to see you well settled; Fanny
7400 particularly, for she has your interest very much at heart, I assure
7401 you. And her mother too, Mrs. Ferrars, a very good-natured woman, I am
7402 sure it would give her great pleasure; she said as much the other day."
7403
7404 Elinor would not vouchsafe any answer.
7405
7406 "It would be something remarkable, now," he continued, "something
7407 droll, if Fanny should have a brother and I a sister settling at the
7408 same time. And yet it is not very unlikely."
7409
7410 "Is Mr. Edward Ferrars," said Elinor, with resolution, "going to be
7411 married?"
7412
7413 "It is not actually settled, but there is such a thing in agitation.
7414 He has a most excellent mother. Mrs. Ferrars, with the utmost
7415 liberality, will come forward, and settle on him a thousand a year, if
7416 the match takes place. The lady is the Hon. Miss Morton, only daughter
7417 of the late Lord Morton, with thirty thousand pounds. A very desirable
7418 connection on both sides, and I have not a doubt of its taking place in
7419 time. A thousand a-year is a great deal for a mother to give away, to
7420 make over for ever; but Mrs. Ferrars has a noble spirit. To give you
7421 another instance of her liberality:--The other day, as soon as we came
7422 to town, aware that money could not be very plenty with us just now,
7423 she put bank-notes into Fanny's hands to the amount of two hundred
7424 pounds. And extremely acceptable it is, for we must live at a great
7425 expense while we are here."
7426
7427 He paused for her assent and compassion; and she forced herself to say,
7428
7429 "Your expenses both in town and country must certainly be considerable;
7430 but your income is a large one."
7431
7432 "Not so large, I dare say, as many people suppose. I do not mean to
7433 complain, however; it is undoubtedly a comfortable one, and I hope will
7434 in time be better. The enclosure of Norland Common, now carrying on,
7435 is a most serious drain. And then I have made a little purchase within
7436 this half year; East Kingham Farm, you must remember the place, where
7437 old Gibson used to live. The land was so very desirable for me in
7438 every respect, so immediately adjoining my own property, that I felt it
7439 my duty to buy it. I could not have answered it to my conscience to
7440 let it fall into any other hands. A man must pay for his convenience;
7441 and it HAS cost me a vast deal of money."
7442
7443 "More than you think it really and intrinsically worth."
7444
7445 "Why, I hope not that. I might have sold it again, the next day, for
7446 more than I gave: but, with regard to the purchase-money, I might have
7447 been very unfortunate indeed; for the stocks were at that time so low,
7448 that if I had not happened to have the necessary sum in my banker's
7449 hands, I must have sold out to very great loss."
7450
7451 Elinor could only smile.
7452
7453 "Other great and inevitable expenses too we have had on first coming to
7454 Norland. Our respected father, as you well know, bequeathed all the
7455 Stanhill effects that remained at Norland (and very valuable they were)
7456 to your mother. Far be it from me to repine at his doing so; he had an
7457 undoubted right to dispose of his own property as he chose, but, in
7458 consequence of it, we have been obliged to make large purchases of
7459 linen, china, &c. to supply the place of what was taken away. You may
7460 guess, after all these expenses, how very far we must be from being
7461 rich, and how acceptable Mrs. Ferrars's kindness is."
7462
7463 "Certainly," said Elinor; "and assisted by her liberality, I hope you
7464 may yet live to be in easy circumstances."
7465
7466 "Another year or two may do much towards it," he gravely replied; "but
7467 however there is still a great deal to be done. There is not a stone
7468 laid of Fanny's green-house, and nothing but the plan of the
7469 flower-garden marked out."
7470
7471 "Where is the green-house to be?"
7472
7473 "Upon the knoll behind the house. The old walnut trees are all come
7474 down to make room for it. It will be a very fine object from many
7475 parts of the park, and the flower-garden will slope down just before
7476 it, and be exceedingly pretty. We have cleared away all the old thorns
7477 that grew in patches over the brow."
7478
7479 Elinor kept her concern and her censure to herself; and was very
7480 thankful that Marianne was not present, to share the provocation.
7481
7482 Having now said enough to make his poverty clear, and to do away the
7483 necessity of buying a pair of ear-rings for each of his sisters, in his
7484 next visit at Gray's his thoughts took a cheerfuller turn, and he began
7485 to congratulate Elinor on having such a friend as Mrs. Jennings.
7486
7487 "She seems a most valuable woman indeed--Her house, her style of
7488 living, all bespeak an exceeding good income; and it is an acquaintance
7489 that has not only been of great use to you hitherto, but in the end may
7490 prove materially advantageous.--Her inviting you to town is certainly a
7491 vast thing in your favour; and indeed, it speaks altogether so great a
7492 regard for you, that in all probability when she dies you will not be
7493 forgotten.-- She must have a great deal to leave."
7494
7495 "Nothing at all, I should rather suppose; for she has only her
7496 jointure, which will descend to her children."
7497
7498 "But it is not to be imagined that she lives up to her income. Few
7499 people of common prudence will do THAT; and whatever she saves, she
7500 will be able to dispose of."
7501
7502 "And do you not think it more likely that she should leave it to her
7503 daughters, than to us?"
7504
7505 "Her daughters are both exceedingly well married, and therefore I
7506 cannot perceive the necessity of her remembering them farther.
7507 Whereas, in my opinion, by her taking so much notice of you, and
7508 treating you in this kind of way, she has given you a sort of claim on
7509 her future consideration, which a conscientious woman would not
7510 disregard. Nothing can be kinder than her behaviour; and she can
7511 hardly do all this, without being aware of the expectation it raises."
7512
7513 "But she raises none in those most concerned. Indeed, brother, your
7514 anxiety for our welfare and prosperity carries you too far."
7515
7516 "Why, to be sure," said he, seeming to recollect himself, "people have
7517 little, have very little in their power. But, my dear Elinor, what is
7518 the matter with Marianne?-- she looks very unwell, has lost her colour,
7519 and is grown quite thin. Is she ill?"
7520
7521 "She is not well, she has had a nervous complaint on her for several
7522 weeks."
7523
7524 "I am sorry for that. At her time of life, any thing of an illness
7525 destroys the bloom for ever! Hers has been a very short one! She was
7526 as handsome a girl last September, as I ever saw; and as likely to
7527 attract the man. There was something in her style of beauty, to please
7528 them particularly. I remember Fanny used to say that she would marry
7529 sooner and better than you did; not but what she is exceedingly fond of
7530 YOU, but so it happened to strike her. She will be mistaken, however.
7531 I question whether Marianne NOW, will marry a man worth more than five
7532 or six hundred a-year, at the utmost, and I am very much deceived if
7533 YOU do not do better. Dorsetshire! I know very little of Dorsetshire;
7534 but, my dear Elinor, I shall be exceedingly glad to know more of it;
7535 and I think I can answer for your having Fanny and myself among the
7536 earliest and best pleased of your visitors."
7537
7538 Elinor tried very seriously to convince him that there was no
7539 likelihood of her marrying Colonel Brandon; but it was an expectation
7540 of too much pleasure to himself to be relinquished, and he was really
7541 resolved on seeking an intimacy with that gentleman, and promoting the
7542 marriage by every possible attention. He had just compunction enough
7543 for having done nothing for his sisters himself, to be exceedingly
7544 anxious that everybody else should do a great deal; and an offer from
7545 Colonel Brandon, or a legacy from Mrs. Jennings, was the easiest means
7546 of atoning for his own neglect.
7547
7548 They were lucky enough to find Lady Middleton at home, and Sir John
7549 came in before their visit ended. Abundance of civilities passed on
7550 all sides. Sir John was ready to like anybody, and though Mr. Dashwood
7551 did not seem to know much about horses, he soon set him down as a very
7552 good-natured fellow: while Lady Middleton saw enough of fashion in his
7553 appearance to think his acquaintance worth having; and Mr. Dashwood
7554 went away delighted with both.
7555
7556 "I shall have a charming account to carry to Fanny," said he, as he
7557 walked back with his sister. "Lady Middleton is really a most elegant
7558 woman! Such a woman as I am sure Fanny will be glad to know. And Mrs.
7559 Jennings too, an exceedingly well-behaved woman, though not so elegant
7560 as her daughter. Your sister need not have any scruple even of
7561 visiting HER, which, to say the truth, has been a little the case, and
7562 very naturally; for we only knew that Mrs. Jennings was the widow of a
7563 man who had got all his money in a low way; and Fanny and Mrs. Ferrars
7564 were both strongly prepossessed, that neither she nor her daughters
7565 were such kind of women as Fanny would like to associate with. But now
7566 I can carry her a most satisfactory account of both."
7567
7568
7569
7570 CHAPTER 34
7571
7572
7573 Mrs. John Dashwood had so much confidence in her husband's judgment,
7574 that she waited the very next day both on Mrs. Jennings and her
7575 daughter; and her confidence was rewarded by finding even the former,
7576 even the woman with whom her sisters were staying, by no means unworthy
7577 her notice; and as for Lady Middleton, she found her one of the most
7578 charming women in the world!
7579
7580 Lady Middleton was equally pleased with Mrs. Dashwood. There was a
7581 kind of cold hearted selfishness on both sides, which mutually
7582 attracted them; and they sympathised with each other in an insipid
7583 propriety of demeanor, and a general want of understanding.
7584
7585 The same manners, however, which recommended Mrs. John Dashwood to the
7586 good opinion of Lady Middleton did not suit the fancy of Mrs. Jennings,
7587 and to HER she appeared nothing more than a little proud-looking woman
7588 of uncordial address, who met her husband's sisters without any
7589 affection, and almost without having anything to say to them; for of
7590 the quarter of an hour bestowed on Berkeley Street, she sat at least
7591 seven minutes and a half in silence.
7592
7593 Elinor wanted very much to know, though she did not chuse to ask,
7594 whether Edward was then in town; but nothing would have induced Fanny
7595 voluntarily to mention his name before her, till able to tell her that
7596 his marriage with Miss Morton was resolved on, or till her husband's
7597 expectations on Colonel Brandon were answered; because she believed
7598 them still so very much attached to each other, that they could not be
7599 too sedulously divided in word and deed on every occasion. The
7600 intelligence however, which SHE would not give, soon flowed from
7601 another quarter. Lucy came very shortly to claim Elinor's compassion
7602 on being unable to see Edward, though he had arrived in town with Mr.
7603 and Mrs. Dashwood. He dared not come to Bartlett's Buildings for fear
7604 of detection, and though their mutual impatience to meet, was not to be
7605 told, they could do nothing at present but write.
7606
7607 Edward assured them himself of his being in town, within a very short
7608 time, by twice calling in Berkeley Street. Twice was his card found on
7609 the table, when they returned from their morning's engagements. Elinor
7610 was pleased that he had called; and still more pleased that she had
7611 missed him.
7612
7613 The Dashwoods were so prodigiously delighted with the Middletons, that,
7614 though not much in the habit of giving anything, they determined to
7615 give them--a dinner; and soon after their acquaintance began, invited
7616 them to dine in Harley Street, where they had taken a very good house
7617 for three months. Their sisters and Mrs. Jennings were invited
7618 likewise, and John Dashwood was careful to secure Colonel Brandon, who,
7619 always glad to be where the Miss Dashwoods were, received his eager
7620 civilities with some surprise, but much more pleasure. They were to
7621 meet Mrs. Ferrars; but Elinor could not learn whether her sons were to
7622 be of the party. The expectation of seeing HER, however, was enough to
7623 make her interested in the engagement; for though she could now meet
7624 Edward's mother without that strong anxiety which had once promised to
7625 attend such an introduction, though she could now see her with perfect
7626 indifference as to her opinion of herself, her desire of being in
7627 company with Mrs. Ferrars, her curiosity to know what she was like, was
7628 as lively as ever.
7629
7630 The interest with which she thus anticipated the party, was soon
7631 afterwards increased, more powerfully than pleasantly, by her hearing
7632 that the Miss Steeles were also to be at it.
7633
7634 So well had they recommended themselves to Lady Middleton, so agreeable
7635 had their assiduities made them to her, that though Lucy was certainly
7636 not so elegant, and her sister not even genteel, she was as ready as
7637 Sir John to ask them to spend a week or two in Conduit Street; and it
7638 happened to be particularly convenient to the Miss Steeles, as soon as
7639 the Dashwoods' invitation was known, that their visit should begin a
7640 few days before the party took place.
7641
7642 Their claims to the notice of Mrs. John Dashwood, as the nieces of the
7643 gentleman who for many years had had the care of her brother, might not
7644 have done much, however, towards procuring them seats at her table; but
7645 as Lady Middleton's guests they must be welcome; and Lucy, who had long
7646 wanted to be personally known to the family, to have a nearer view of
7647 their characters and her own difficulties, and to have an opportunity
7648 of endeavouring to please them, had seldom been happier in her life,
7649 than she was on receiving Mrs. John Dashwood's card.
7650
7651 On Elinor its effect was very different. She began immediately to
7652 determine, that Edward who lived with his mother, must be asked as his
7653 mother was, to a party given by his sister; and to see him for the
7654 first time, after all that passed, in the company of Lucy!--she hardly
7655 knew how she could bear it!
7656
7657 These apprehensions, perhaps, were not founded entirely on reason, and
7658 certainly not at all on truth. They were relieved however, not by her
7659 own recollection, but by the good will of Lucy, who believed herself to
7660 be inflicting a severe disappointment when she told her that Edward
7661 certainly would not be in Harley Street on Tuesday, and even hoped to
7662 be carrying the pain still farther by persuading her that he was kept
7663 away by the extreme affection for herself, which he could not conceal
7664 when they were together.
7665
7666 The important Tuesday came that was to introduce the two young ladies
7667 to this formidable mother-in-law.
7668
7669 "Pity me, dear Miss Dashwood!" said Lucy, as they walked up the stairs
7670 together--for the Middletons arrived so directly after Mrs. Jennings,
7671 that they all followed the servant at the same time--"There is nobody
7672 here but you, that can feel for me.--I declare I can hardly stand.
7673 Good gracious!--In a moment I shall see the person that all my
7674 happiness depends on--that is to be my mother!"--
7675
7676 Elinor could have given her immediate relief by suggesting the
7677 possibility of its being Miss Morton's mother, rather than her own,
7678 whom they were about to behold; but instead of doing that, she assured
7679 her, and with great sincerity, that she did pity her--to the utter
7680 amazement of Lucy, who, though really uncomfortable herself, hoped at
7681 least to be an object of irrepressible envy to Elinor.
7682
7683 Mrs. Ferrars was a little, thin woman, upright, even to formality, in
7684 her figure, and serious, even to sourness, in her aspect. Her
7685 complexion was sallow; and her features small, without beauty, and
7686 naturally without expression; but a lucky contraction of the brow had
7687 rescued her countenance from the disgrace of insipidity, by giving it
7688 the strong characters of pride and ill nature. She was not a woman of
7689 many words; for, unlike people in general, she proportioned them to the
7690 number of her ideas; and of the few syllables that did escape her, not
7691 one fell to the share of Miss Dashwood, whom she eyed with the spirited
7692 determination of disliking her at all events.
7693
7694 Elinor could not NOW be made unhappy by this behaviour.-- A few months
7695 ago it would have hurt her exceedingly; but it was not in Mrs. Ferrars'
7696 power to distress her by it now;--and the difference of her manners to
7697 the Miss Steeles, a difference which seemed purposely made to humble
7698 her more, only amused her. She could not but smile to see the
7699 graciousness of both mother and daughter towards the very person-- for
7700 Lucy was particularly distinguished--whom of all others, had they known
7701 as much as she did, they would have been most anxious to mortify; while
7702 she herself, who had comparatively no power to wound them, sat
7703 pointedly slighted by both. But while she smiled at a graciousness so
7704 misapplied, she could not reflect on the mean-spirited folly from which
7705 it sprung, nor observe the studied attentions with which the Miss
7706 Steeles courted its continuance, without thoroughly despising them all
7707 four.
7708
7709 Lucy was all exultation on being so honorably distinguished; and Miss
7710 Steele wanted only to be teazed about Dr. Davies to be perfectly happy.
7711
7712 The dinner was a grand one, the servants were numerous, and every thing
7713 bespoke the Mistress's inclination for show, and the Master's ability
7714 to support it. In spite of the improvements and additions which were
7715 making to the Norland estate, and in spite of its owner having once
7716 been within some thousand pounds of being obliged to sell out at a
7717 loss, nothing gave any symptom of that indigence which he had tried to
7718 infer from it;--no poverty of any kind, except of conversation,
7719 appeared--but there, the deficiency was considerable. John Dashwood
7720 had not much to say for himself that was worth hearing, and his wife
7721 had still less. But there was no peculiar disgrace in this; for it was
7722 very much the case with the chief of their visitors, who almost all
7723 laboured under one or other of these disqualifications for being
7724 agreeable--Want of sense, either natural or improved--want of
7725 elegance--want of spirits--or want of temper.
7726
7727 When the ladies withdrew to the drawing-room after dinner, this poverty
7728 was particularly evident, for the gentlemen HAD supplied the discourse
7729 with some variety--the variety of politics, inclosing land, and
7730 breaking horses--but then it was all over; and one subject only engaged
7731 the ladies till coffee came in, which was the comparative heights of
7732 Harry Dashwood, and Lady Middleton's second son William, who were
7733 nearly of the same age.
7734
7735 Had both the children been there, the affair might have been determined
7736 too easily by measuring them at once; but as Harry only was present, it
7737 was all conjectural assertion on both sides; and every body had a right
7738 to be equally positive in their opinion, and to repeat it over and over
7739 again as often as they liked.
7740
7741 The parties stood thus:
7742
7743 The two mothers, though each really convinced that her own son was the
7744 tallest, politely decided in favour of the other.
7745
7746 The two grandmothers, with not less partiality, but more sincerity,
7747 were equally earnest in support of their own descendant.
7748
7749 Lucy, who was hardly less anxious to please one parent than the other,
7750 thought the boys were both remarkably tall for their age, and could not
7751 conceive that there could be the smallest difference in the world
7752 between them; and Miss Steele, with yet greater address gave it, as
7753 fast as she could, in favour of each.
7754
7755 Elinor, having once delivered her opinion on William's side, by which
7756 she offended Mrs. Ferrars and Fanny still more, did not see the
7757 necessity of enforcing it by any farther assertion; and Marianne, when
7758 called on for hers, offended them all, by declaring that she had no
7759 opinion to give, as she had never thought about it.
7760
7761 Before her removing from Norland, Elinor had painted a very pretty pair
7762 of screens for her sister-in-law, which being now just mounted and
7763 brought home, ornamented her present drawing room; and these screens,
7764 catching the eye of John Dashwood on his following the other gentlemen
7765 into the room, were officiously handed by him to Colonel Brandon for
7766 his admiration.
7767
7768 "These are done by my eldest sister," said he; "and you, as a man of
7769 taste, will, I dare say, be pleased with them. I do not know whether
7770 you have ever happened to see any of her performances before, but she
7771 is in general reckoned to draw extremely well."
7772
7773 The Colonel, though disclaiming all pretensions to connoisseurship,
7774 warmly admired the screens, as he would have done any thing painted by
7775 Miss Dashwood; and on the curiosity of the others being of course
7776 excited, they were handed round for general inspection. Mrs. Ferrars,
7777 not aware of their being Elinor's work, particularly requested to look
7778 at them; and after they had received gratifying testimony of Lady
7779 Middletons's approbation, Fanny presented them to her mother,
7780 considerately informing her, at the same time, that they were done by
7781 Miss Dashwood.
7782
7783 "Hum"--said Mrs. Ferrars--"very pretty,"--and without regarding them at
7784 all, returned them to her daughter.
7785
7786 Perhaps Fanny thought for a moment that her mother had been quite rude
7787 enough,--for, colouring a little, she immediately said,
7788
7789 "They are very pretty, ma'am--an't they?" But then again, the dread of
7790 having been too civil, too encouraging herself, probably came over her,
7791 for she presently added,
7792
7793 "Do you not think they are something in Miss Morton's style of
7794 painting, Ma'am?--She DOES paint most delightfully!--How beautifully
7795 her last landscape is done!"
7796
7797 "Beautifully indeed! But SHE does every thing well."
7798
7799 Marianne could not bear this.--She was already greatly displeased with
7800 Mrs. Ferrars; and such ill-timed praise of another, at Elinor's
7801 expense, though she had not any notion of what was principally meant by
7802 it, provoked her immediately to say with warmth,
7803
7804 "This is admiration of a very particular kind!--what is Miss Morton to
7805 us?--who knows, or who cares, for her?--it is Elinor of whom WE think
7806 and speak."
7807
7808 And so saying, she took the screens out of her sister-in-law's hands,
7809 to admire them herself as they ought to be admired.
7810
7811 Mrs. Ferrars looked exceedingly angry, and drawing herself up more
7812 stiffly than ever, pronounced in retort this bitter philippic, "Miss
7813 Morton is Lord Morton's daughter."
7814
7815 Fanny looked very angry too, and her husband was all in a fright at his
7816 sister's audacity. Elinor was much more hurt by Marianne's warmth than
7817 she had been by what produced it; but Colonel Brandon's eyes, as they
7818 were fixed on Marianne, declared that he noticed only what was amiable
7819 in it, the affectionate heart which could not bear to see a sister
7820 slighted in the smallest point.
7821
7822 Marianne's feelings did not stop here. The cold insolence of Mrs.
7823 Ferrars's general behaviour to her sister, seemed, to her, to foretell
7824 such difficulties and distresses to Elinor, as her own wounded heart
7825 taught her to think of with horror; and urged by a strong impulse of
7826 affectionate sensibility, she moved after a moment, to her sister's
7827 chair, and putting one arm round her neck, and one cheek close to hers,
7828 said in a low, but eager, voice,
7829
7830 "Dear, dear Elinor, don't mind them. Don't let them make YOU unhappy."
7831
7832 She could say no more; her spirits were quite overcome, and hiding her
7833 face on Elinor's shoulder, she burst into tears. Every body's
7834 attention was called, and almost every body was concerned.--Colonel
7835 Brandon rose up and went to them without knowing what he did.--Mrs.
7836 Jennings, with a very intelligent "Ah! poor dear," immediately gave her
7837 her salts; and Sir John felt so desperately enraged against the author
7838 of this nervous distress, that he instantly changed his seat to one
7839 close by Lucy Steele, and gave her, in a whisper, a brief account of
7840 the whole shocking affair.
7841
7842 In a few minutes, however, Marianne was recovered enough to put an end
7843 to the bustle, and sit down among the rest; though her spirits retained
7844 the impression of what had passed, the whole evening.
7845
7846 "Poor Marianne!" said her brother to Colonel Brandon, in a low voice,
7847 as soon as he could secure his attention,-- "She has not such good
7848 health as her sister,--she is very nervous,--she has not Elinor's
7849 constitution;--and one must allow that there is something very trying
7850 to a young woman who HAS BEEN a beauty in the loss of her personal
7851 attractions. You would not think it perhaps, but Marianne WAS
7852 remarkably handsome a few months ago; quite as handsome as Elinor.--
7853 Now you see it is all gone."
7854
7855
7856
7857 CHAPTER 35
7858
7859
7860 Elinor's curiosity to see Mrs. Ferrars was satisfied.-- She had found
7861 in her every thing that could tend to make a farther connection between
7862 the families undesirable.-- She had seen enough of her pride, her
7863 meanness, and her determined prejudice against herself, to comprehend
7864 all the difficulties that must have perplexed the engagement, and
7865 retarded the marriage, of Edward and herself, had he been otherwise
7866 free;--and she had seen almost enough to be thankful for her OWN sake,
7867 that one greater obstacle preserved her from suffering under any other
7868 of Mrs. Ferrars's creation, preserved her from all dependence upon her
7869 caprice, or any solicitude for her good opinion. Or at least, if she
7870 did not bring herself quite to rejoice in Edward's being fettered to
7871 Lucy, she determined, that had Lucy been more amiable, she OUGHT to
7872 have rejoiced.
7873
7874 She wondered that Lucy's spirits could be so very much elevated by the
7875 civility of Mrs. Ferrars;--that her interest and her vanity should so
7876 very much blind her as to make the attention which seemed only paid her
7877 because she was NOT ELINOR, appear a compliment to herself--or to allow
7878 her to derive encouragement from a preference only given her, because
7879 her real situation was unknown. But that it was so, had not only been
7880 declared by Lucy's eyes at the time, but was declared over again the
7881 next morning more openly, for at her particular desire, Lady Middleton
7882 set her down in Berkeley Street on the chance of seeing Elinor alone,
7883 to tell her how happy she was.
7884
7885 The chance proved a lucky one, for a message from Mrs. Palmer soon
7886 after she arrived, carried Mrs. Jennings away.
7887
7888 "My dear friend," cried Lucy, as soon as they were by themselves, "I
7889 come to talk to you of my happiness. Could anything be so flattering
7890 as Mrs. Ferrars's way of treating me yesterday? So exceeding affable
7891 as she was!--You know how I dreaded the thoughts of seeing her;--but
7892 the very moment I was introduced, there was such an affability in her
7893 behaviour as really should seem to say, she had quite took a fancy to
7894 me. Now was not it so?-- You saw it all; and was not you quite struck
7895 with it?"
7896
7897 "She was certainly very civil to you."
7898
7899 "Civil!--Did you see nothing but only civility?-- I saw a vast deal
7900 more. Such kindness as fell to the share of nobody but me!--No pride,
7901 no hauteur, and your sister just the same--all sweetness and
7902 affability!"
7903
7904 Elinor wished to talk of something else, but Lucy still pressed her to
7905 own that she had reason for her happiness; and Elinor was obliged to go
7906 on.--
7907
7908 "Undoubtedly, if they had known your engagement," said she, "nothing
7909 could be more flattering than their treatment of you;--but as that was
7910 not the case"--
7911
7912 "I guessed you would say so,"--replied Lucy quickly--"but there was no
7913 reason in the world why Mrs. Ferrars should seem to like me, if she did
7914 not, and her liking me is every thing. You shan't talk me out of my
7915 satisfaction. I am sure it will all end well, and there will be no
7916 difficulties at all, to what I used to think. Mrs. Ferrars is a
7917 charming woman, and so is your sister. They are both delightful women,
7918 indeed!--I wonder I should never hear you say how agreeable Mrs.
7919 Dashwood was!"
7920
7921 To this Elinor had no answer to make, and did not attempt any.
7922
7923 "Are you ill, Miss Dashwood?--you seem low--you don't speak;--sure you
7924 an't well."
7925
7926 "I never was in better health."
7927
7928 "I am glad of it with all my heart; but really you did not look it. I
7929 should be sorry to have YOU ill; you, that have been the greatest
7930 comfort to me in the world!--Heaven knows what I should have done
7931 without your friendship."--
7932
7933 Elinor tried to make a civil answer, though doubting her own success.
7934 But it seemed to satisfy Lucy, for she directly replied,
7935
7936 "Indeed I am perfectly convinced of your regard for me, and next to
7937 Edward's love, it is the greatest comfort I have.--Poor Edward!--But
7938 now there is one good thing, we shall be able to meet, and meet pretty
7939 often, for Lady Middleton's delighted with Mrs. Dashwood, so we shall
7940 be a good deal in Harley Street, I dare say, and Edward spends half his
7941 time with his sister--besides, Lady Middleton and Mrs. Ferrars will
7942 visit now;--and Mrs. Ferrars and your sister were both so good to say
7943 more than once, they should always be glad to see me.-- They are such
7944 charming women!--I am sure if ever you tell your sister what I think of
7945 her, you cannot speak too high."
7946
7947 But Elinor would not give her any encouragement to hope that she SHOULD
7948 tell her sister. Lucy continued.
7949
7950 "I am sure I should have seen it in a moment, if Mrs. Ferrars had took
7951 a dislike to me. If she had only made me a formal courtesy, for
7952 instance, without saying a word, and never after had took any notice of
7953 me, and never looked at me in a pleasant way--you know what I mean--if
7954 I had been treated in that forbidding sort of way, I should have gave
7955 it all up in despair. I could not have stood it. For where she DOES
7956 dislike, I know it is most violent."
7957
7958 Elinor was prevented from making any reply to this civil triumph, by
7959 the door's being thrown open, the servant's announcing Mr. Ferrars, and
7960 Edward's immediately walking in.
7961
7962 It was a very awkward moment; and the countenance of each shewed that
7963 it was so. They all looked exceedingly foolish; and Edward seemed to
7964 have as great an inclination to walk out of the room again, as to
7965 advance farther into it. The very circumstance, in its unpleasantest
7966 form, which they would each have been most anxious to avoid, had fallen
7967 on them.--They were not only all three together, but were together
7968 without the relief of any other person. The ladies recovered
7969 themselves first. It was not Lucy's business to put herself forward,
7970 and the appearance of secrecy must still be kept up. She could
7971 therefore only LOOK her tenderness, and after slightly addressing him,
7972 said no more.
7973
7974 But Elinor had more to do; and so anxious was she, for his sake and her
7975 own, to do it well, that she forced herself, after a moment's
7976 recollection, to welcome him, with a look and manner that were almost
7977 easy, and almost open; and another struggle, another effort still
7978 improved them. She would not allow the presence of Lucy, nor the
7979 consciousness of some injustice towards herself, to deter her from
7980 saying that she was happy to see him, and that she had very much
7981 regretted being from home, when he called before in Berkeley Street.
7982 She would not be frightened from paying him those attentions which, as
7983 a friend and almost a relation, were his due, by the observant eyes of
7984 Lucy, though she soon perceived them to be narrowly watching her.
7985
7986 Her manners gave some re-assurance to Edward, and he had courage enough
7987 to sit down; but his embarrassment still exceeded that of the ladies in
7988 a proportion, which the case rendered reasonable, though his sex might
7989 make it rare; for his heart had not the indifference of Lucy's, nor
7990 could his conscience have quite the ease of Elinor's.
7991
7992 Lucy, with a demure and settled air, seemed determined to make no
7993 contribution to the comfort of the others, and would not say a word;
7994 and almost every thing that WAS said, proceeded from Elinor, who was
7995 obliged to volunteer all the information about her mother's health,
7996 their coming to town, &c. which Edward ought to have inquired about,
7997 but never did.
7998
7999 Her exertions did not stop here; for she soon afterwards felt herself
8000 so heroically disposed as to determine, under pretence of fetching
8001 Marianne, to leave the others by themselves; and she really did it, and
8002 THAT in the handsomest manner, for she loitered away several minutes on
8003 the landing-place, with the most high-minded fortitude, before she went
8004 to her sister. When that was once done, however, it was time for the
8005 raptures of Edward to cease; for Marianne's joy hurried her into the
8006 drawing-room immediately. Her pleasure in seeing him was like every
8007 other of her feelings, strong in itself, and strongly spoken. She met
8008 him with a hand that would be taken, and a voice that expressed the
8009 affection of a sister.
8010
8011 "Dear Edward!" she cried, "this is a moment of great happiness!--This
8012 would almost make amends for every thing!"
8013
8014 Edward tried to return her kindness as it deserved, but before such
8015 witnesses he dared not say half what he really felt. Again they all
8016 sat down, and for a moment or two all were silent; while Marianne was
8017 looking with the most speaking tenderness, sometimes at Edward and
8018 sometimes at Elinor, regretting only that their delight in each other
8019 should be checked by Lucy's unwelcome presence. Edward was the first
8020 to speak, and it was to notice Marianne's altered looks, and express
8021 his fear of her not finding London agree with her.
8022
8023 "Oh, don't think of me!" she replied with spirited earnestness, though
8024 her eyes were filled with tears as she spoke, "don't think of MY
8025 health. Elinor is well, you see. That must be enough for us both."
8026
8027 This remark was not calculated to make Edward or Elinor more easy, nor
8028 to conciliate the good will of Lucy, who looked up at Marianne with no
8029 very benignant expression.
8030
8031 "Do you like London?" said Edward, willing to say any thing that might
8032 introduce another subject.
8033
8034 "Not at all. I expected much pleasure in it, but I have found none.
8035 The sight of you, Edward, is the only comfort it has afforded; and
8036 thank Heaven! you are what you always were!"
8037
8038 She paused--no one spoke.
8039
8040 "I think, Elinor," she presently added, "we must employ Edward to take
8041 care of us in our return to Barton. In a week or two, I suppose, we
8042 shall be going; and, I trust, Edward will not be very unwilling to
8043 accept the charge."
8044
8045 Poor Edward muttered something, but what it was, nobody knew, not even
8046 himself. But Marianne, who saw his agitation, and could easily trace
8047 it to whatever cause best pleased herself, was perfectly satisfied, and
8048 soon talked of something else.
8049
8050 "We spent such a day, Edward, in Harley Street yesterday! So dull, so
8051 wretchedly dull!--But I have much to say to you on that head, which
8052 cannot be said now."
8053
8054 And with this admirable discretion did she defer the assurance of her
8055 finding their mutual relatives more disagreeable than ever, and of her
8056 being particularly disgusted with his mother, till they were more in
8057 private.
8058
8059 "But why were you not there, Edward?--Why did you not come?"
8060
8061 "I was engaged elsewhere."
8062
8063 "Engaged! But what was that, when such friends were to be met?"
8064
8065 "Perhaps, Miss Marianne," cried Lucy, eager to take some revenge on
8066 her, "you think young men never stand upon engagements, if they have no
8067 mind to keep them, little as well as great."
8068
8069 Elinor was very angry, but Marianne seemed entirely insensible of the
8070 sting; for she calmly replied,
8071
8072 "Not so, indeed; for, seriously speaking, I am very sure that
8073 conscience only kept Edward from Harley Street. And I really believe
8074 he HAS the most delicate conscience in the world; the most scrupulous
8075 in performing every engagement, however minute, and however it may make
8076 against his interest or pleasure. He is the most fearful of giving
8077 pain, of wounding expectation, and the most incapable of being selfish,
8078 of any body I ever saw. Edward, it is so, and I will say it. What!
8079 are you never to hear yourself praised!--Then you must be no friend of
8080 mine; for those who will accept of my love and esteem, must submit to
8081 my open commendation."
8082
8083 The nature of her commendation, in the present case, however, happened
8084 to be particularly ill-suited to the feelings of two thirds of her
8085 auditors, and was so very unexhilarating to Edward, that he very soon
8086 got up to go away.
8087
8088 "Going so soon!" said Marianne; "my dear Edward, this must not be."
8089
8090 And drawing him a little aside, she whispered her persuasion that Lucy
8091 could not stay much longer. But even this encouragement failed, for he
8092 would go; and Lucy, who would have outstaid him, had his visit lasted
8093 two hours, soon afterwards went away.
8094
8095 "What can bring her here so often?" said Marianne, on her leaving them.
8096 "Could not she see that we wanted her gone!--how teazing to Edward!"
8097
8098 "Why so?--we were all his friends, and Lucy has been the longest known
8099 to him of any. It is but natural that he should like to see her as
8100 well as ourselves."
8101
8102 Marianne looked at her steadily, and said, "You know, Elinor, that this
8103 is a kind of talking which I cannot bear. If you only hope to have
8104 your assertion contradicted, as I must suppose to be the case, you
8105 ought to recollect that I am the last person in the world to do it. I
8106 cannot descend to be tricked out of assurances, that are not really
8107 wanted."
8108
8109 She then left the room; and Elinor dared not follow her to say more,
8110 for bound as she was by her promise of secrecy to Lucy, she could give
8111 no information that would convince Marianne; and painful as the
8112 consequences of her still continuing in an error might be, she was
8113 obliged to submit to it. All that she could hope, was that Edward
8114 would not often expose her or himself to the distress of hearing
8115 Marianne's mistaken warmth, nor to the repetition of any other part of
8116 the pain that had attended their recent meeting--and this she had every
8117 reason to expect.
8118
8119
8120
8121 CHAPTER 36
8122
8123
8124 Within a few days after this meeting, the newspapers announced to the
8125 world, that the lady of Thomas Palmer, Esq. was safely delivered of a
8126 son and heir; a very interesting and satisfactory paragraph, at least
8127 to all those intimate connections who knew it before.
8128
8129 This event, highly important to Mrs. Jennings's happiness, produced a
8130 temporary alteration in the disposal of her time, and influenced, in a
8131 like degree, the engagements of her young friends; for as she wished to
8132 be as much as possible with Charlotte, she went thither every morning as
8133 soon as she was dressed, and did not return till late in the evening;
8134 and the Miss Dashwoods, at the particular request of the Middletons,
8135 spent the whole of every day in Conduit Street. For their own comfort
8136 they would much rather have remained, at least all the morning, in Mrs.
8137 Jennings's house; but it was not a thing to be urged against the wishes
8138 of everybody. Their hours were therefore made over to Lady Middleton and
8139 the two Miss Steeles, by whom their company, in fact was as little
8140 valued, as it was professedly sought.
8141
8142 They had too much sense to be desirable companions to the former; and
8143 by the latter they were considered with a jealous eye, as intruding on
8144 THEIR ground, and sharing the kindness which they wanted to monopolize.
8145 Though nothing could be more polite than Lady Middleton's behaviour to
8146 Elinor and Marianne, she did not really like them at all. Because they
8147 neither flattered herself nor her children, she could not believe them
8148 good-natured; and because they were fond of reading, she fancied them
8149 satirical: perhaps without exactly knowing what it was to be satirical;
8150 but THAT did not signify. It was censure in common use, and easily
8151 given.
8152
8153 Their presence was a restraint both on her and on Lucy. It checked the
8154 idleness of one, and the business of the other. Lady Middleton was
8155 ashamed of doing nothing before them, and the flattery which Lucy was
8156 proud to think of and administer at other times, she feared they would
8157 despise her for offering. Miss Steele was the least discomposed of the
8158 three, by their presence; and it was in their power to reconcile her to
8159 it entirely. Would either of them only have given her a full and
8160 minute account of the whole affair between Marianne and Mr. Willoughby,
8161 she would have thought herself amply rewarded for the sacrifice of the
8162 best place by the fire after dinner, which their arrival occasioned.
8163 But this conciliation was not granted; for though she often threw out
8164 expressions of pity for her sister to Elinor, and more than once dropt
8165 a reflection on the inconstancy of beaux before Marianne, no effect was
8166 produced, but a look of indifference from the former, or of disgust in
8167 the latter. An effort even yet lighter might have made her their
8168 friend. Would they only have laughed at her about the Doctor! But so
8169 little were they, anymore than the others, inclined to oblige her, that
8170 if Sir John dined from home, she might spend a whole day without
8171 hearing any other raillery on the subject, than what she was kind
8172 enough to bestow on herself.
8173
8174 All these jealousies and discontents, however, were so totally
8175 unsuspected by Mrs. Jennings, that she thought it a delightful thing
8176 for the girls to be together; and generally congratulated her young
8177 friends every night, on having escaped the company of a stupid old
8178 woman so long. She joined them sometimes at Sir John's, sometimes at
8179 her own house; but wherever it was, she always came in excellent
8180 spirits, full of delight and importance, attributing Charlotte's well
8181 doing to her own care, and ready to give so exact, so minute a detail
8182 of her situation, as only Miss Steele had curiosity enough to desire.
8183 One thing DID disturb her; and of that she made her daily complaint.
8184 Mr. Palmer maintained the common, but unfatherly opinion among his sex,
8185 of all infants being alike; and though she could plainly perceive, at
8186 different times, the most striking resemblance between this baby and
8187 every one of his relations on both sides, there was no convincing his
8188 father of it; no persuading him to believe that it was not exactly like
8189 every other baby of the same age; nor could he even be brought to
8190 acknowledge the simple proposition of its being the finest child in the
8191 world.
8192
8193 I come now to the relation of a misfortune, which about this time
8194 befell Mrs. John Dashwood. It so happened that while her two sisters
8195 with Mrs. Jennings were first calling on her in Harley Street, another
8196 of her acquaintance had dropt in--a circumstance in itself not
8197 apparently likely to produce evil to her. But while the imaginations
8198 of other people will carry them away to form wrong judgments of our
8199 conduct, and to decide on it by slight appearances, one's happiness
8200 must in some measure be always at the mercy of chance. In the present
8201 instance, this last-arrived lady allowed her fancy to so far outrun
8202 truth and probability, that on merely hearing the name of the Miss
8203 Dashwoods, and understanding them to be Mr. Dashwood's sisters, she
8204 immediately concluded them to be staying in Harley Street; and this
8205 misconstruction produced within a day or two afterwards, cards of
8206 invitation for them as well as for their brother and sister, to a small
8207 musical party at her house. The consequence of which was, that Mrs.
8208 John Dashwood was obliged to submit not only to the exceedingly great
8209 inconvenience of sending her carriage for the Miss Dashwoods, but, what
8210 was still worse, must be subject to all the unpleasantness of appearing
8211 to treat them with attention: and who could tell that they might not
8212 expect to go out with her a second time? The power of disappointing
8213 them, it was true, must always be hers. But that was not enough; for
8214 when people are determined on a mode of conduct which they know to be
8215 wrong, they feel injured by the expectation of any thing better from
8216 them.
8217
8218 Marianne had now been brought by degrees, so much into the habit of
8219 going out every day, that it was become a matter of indifference to
8220 her, whether she went or not: and she prepared quietly and mechanically
8221 for every evening's engagement, though without expecting the smallest
8222 amusement from any, and very often without knowing, till the last
8223 moment, where it was to take her.
8224
8225 To her dress and appearance she was grown so perfectly indifferent, as
8226 not to bestow half the consideration on it, during the whole of her
8227 toilet, which it received from Miss Steele in the first five minutes of
8228 their being together, when it was finished. Nothing escaped HER minute
8229 observation and general curiosity; she saw every thing, and asked every
8230 thing; was never easy till she knew the price of every part of
8231 Marianne's dress; could have guessed the number of her gowns altogether
8232 with better judgment than Marianne herself, and was not without hopes
8233 of finding out before they parted, how much her washing cost per week,
8234 and how much she had every year to spend upon herself. The
8235 impertinence of these kind of scrutinies, moreover, was generally
8236 concluded with a compliment, which though meant as its douceur, was
8237 considered by Marianne as the greatest impertinence of all; for after
8238 undergoing an examination into the value and make of her gown, the
8239 colour of her shoes, and the arrangement of her hair, she was almost
8240 sure of being told that upon "her word she looked vastly smart, and she
8241 dared to say she would make a great many conquests."
8242
8243 With such encouragement as this, was she dismissed on the present
8244 occasion, to her brother's carriage; which they were ready to enter
8245 five minutes after it stopped at the door, a punctuality not very
8246 agreeable to their sister-in-law, who had preceded them to the house of
8247 her acquaintance, and was there hoping for some delay on their part
8248 that might inconvenience either herself or her coachman.
8249
8250 The events of this evening were not very remarkable. The party, like
8251 other musical parties, comprehended a great many people who had real
8252 taste for the performance, and a great many more who had none at all;
8253 and the performers themselves were, as usual, in their own estimation,
8254 and that of their immediate friends, the first private performers in
8255 England.
8256
8257 As Elinor was neither musical, nor affecting to be so, she made no
8258 scruple of turning her eyes from the grand pianoforte, whenever it
8259 suited her, and unrestrained even by the presence of a harp, and
8260 violoncello, would fix them at pleasure on any other object in the
8261 room. In one of these excursive glances she perceived among a group of
8262 young men, the very he, who had given them a lecture on toothpick-cases
8263 at Gray's. She perceived him soon afterwards looking at herself, and
8264 speaking familiarly to her brother; and had just determined to find out
8265 his name from the latter, when they both came towards her, and Mr.
8266 Dashwood introduced him to her as Mr. Robert Ferrars.
8267
8268 He addressed her with easy civility, and twisted his head into a bow
8269 which assured her as plainly as words could have done, that he was
8270 exactly the coxcomb she had heard him described to be by Lucy. Happy
8271 had it been for her, if her regard for Edward had depended less on his
8272 own merit, than on the merit of his nearest relations! For then his
8273 brother's bow must have given the finishing stroke to what the
8274 ill-humour of his mother and sister would have begun. But while she
8275 wondered at the difference of the two young men, she did not find that
8276 the emptiness of conceit of the one, put her out of all charity with
8277 the modesty and worth of the other. Why they WERE different, Robert
8278 exclaimed to her himself in the course of a quarter of an hour's
8279 conversation; for, talking of his brother, and lamenting the extreme
8280 GAUCHERIE which he really believed kept him from mixing in proper
8281 society, he candidly and generously attributed it much less to any
8282 natural deficiency, than to the misfortune of a private education;
8283 while he himself, though probably without any particular, any material
8284 superiority by nature, merely from the advantage of a public school,
8285 was as well fitted to mix in the world as any other man.
8286
8287 "Upon my soul," he added, "I believe it is nothing more; and so I often
8288 tell my mother, when she is grieving about it. 'My dear Madam,' I
8289 always say to her, 'you must make yourself easy. The evil is now
8290 irremediable, and it has been entirely your own doing. Why would you
8291 be persuaded by my uncle, Sir Robert, against your own judgment, to
8292 place Edward under private tuition, at the most critical time of his
8293 life? If you had only sent him to Westminster as well as myself,
8294 instead of sending him to Mr. Pratt's, all this would have been
8295 prevented.' This is the way in which I always consider the matter, and
8296 my mother is perfectly convinced of her error."
8297
8298 Elinor would not oppose his opinion, because, whatever might be her
8299 general estimation of the advantage of a public school, she could not
8300 think of Edward's abode in Mr. Pratt's family, with any satisfaction.
8301
8302 "You reside in Devonshire, I think,"--was his next observation, "in a
8303 cottage near Dawlish."
8304
8305 Elinor set him right as to its situation; and it seemed rather
8306 surprising to him that anybody could live in Devonshire, without living
8307 near Dawlish. He bestowed his hearty approbation however on their
8308 species of house.
8309
8310 "For my own part," said he, "I am excessively fond of a cottage; there
8311 is always so much comfort, so much elegance about them. And I protest,
8312 if I had any money to spare, I should buy a little land and build one
8313 myself, within a short distance of London, where I might drive myself
8314 down at any time, and collect a few friends about me, and be happy. I
8315 advise every body who is going to build, to build a cottage. My friend
8316 Lord Courtland came to me the other day on purpose to ask my advice,
8317 and laid before me three different plans of Bonomi's. I was to decide
8318 on the best of them. 'My dear Courtland,' said I, immediately throwing
8319 them all into the fire, 'do not adopt either of them, but by all means
8320 build a cottage.' And that I fancy, will be the end of it.
8321
8322 "Some people imagine that there can be no accommodations, no space in a
8323 cottage; but this is all a mistake. I was last month at my friend
8324 Elliott's, near Dartford. Lady Elliott wished to give a dance. 'But
8325 how can it be done?' said she; 'my dear Ferrars, do tell me how it is
8326 to be managed. There is not a room in this cottage that will hold ten
8327 couple, and where can the supper be?' I immediately saw that there
8328 could be no difficulty in it, so I said, 'My dear Lady Elliott, do not
8329 be uneasy. The dining parlour will admit eighteen couple with ease;
8330 card-tables may be placed in the drawing-room; the library may be open
8331 for tea and other refreshments; and let the supper be set out in the
8332 saloon.' Lady Elliott was delighted with the thought. We measured the
8333 dining-room, and found it would hold exactly eighteen couple, and the
8334 affair was arranged precisely after my plan. So that, in fact, you
8335 see, if people do but know how to set about it, every comfort may be as
8336 well enjoyed in a cottage as in the most spacious dwelling."
8337
8338 Elinor agreed to it all, for she did not think he deserved the
8339 compliment of rational opposition.
8340
8341 As John Dashwood had no more pleasure in music than his eldest sister,
8342 his mind was equally at liberty to fix on any thing else; and a thought
8343 struck him during the evening, which he communicated to his wife, for
8344 her approbation, when they got home. The consideration of Mrs.
8345 Dennison's mistake, in supposing his sisters their guests, had
8346 suggested the propriety of their being really invited to become such,
8347 while Mrs. Jennings's engagements kept her from home. The expense would
8348 be nothing, the inconvenience not more; and it was altogether an
8349 attention which the delicacy of his conscience pointed out to be
8350 requisite to its complete enfranchisement from his promise to his
8351 father. Fanny was startled at the proposal.
8352
8353 "I do not see how it can be done," said she, "without affronting Lady
8354 Middleton, for they spend every day with her; otherwise I should be
8355 exceedingly glad to do it. You know I am always ready to pay them any
8356 attention in my power, as my taking them out this evening shews. But
8357 they are Lady Middleton's visitors. How can I ask them away from her?"
8358
8359 Her husband, but with great humility, did not see the force of her
8360 objection. "They had already spent a week in this manner in Conduit
8361 Street, and Lady Middleton could not be displeased at their giving the
8362 same number of days to such near relations."
8363
8364 Fanny paused a moment, and then, with fresh vigor, said,
8365
8366 "My love I would ask them with all my heart, if it was in my power.
8367 But I had just settled within myself to ask the Miss Steeles to spend a
8368 few days with us. They are very well behaved, good kind of girls; and
8369 I think the attention is due to them, as their uncle did so very well
8370 by Edward. We can ask your sisters some other year, you know; but the
8371 Miss Steeles may not be in town any more. I am sure you will like
8372 them; indeed, you DO like them, you know, very much already, and so
8373 does my mother; and they are such favourites with Harry!"
8374
8375 Mr. Dashwood was convinced. He saw the necessity of inviting the Miss
8376 Steeles immediately, and his conscience was pacified by the resolution
8377 of inviting his sisters another year; at the same time, however, slyly
8378 suspecting that another year would make the invitation needless, by
8379 bringing Elinor to town as Colonel Brandon's wife, and Marianne as
8380 THEIR visitor.
8381
8382 Fanny, rejoicing in her escape, and proud of the ready wit that had
8383 procured it, wrote the next morning to Lucy, to request her company and
8384 her sister's, for some days, in Harley Street, as soon as Lady
8385 Middleton could spare them. This was enough to make Lucy really and
8386 reasonably happy. Mrs. Dashwood seemed actually working for her,
8387 herself; cherishing all her hopes, and promoting all her views! Such
8388 an opportunity of being with Edward and his family was, above all
8389 things, the most material to her interest, and such an invitation the
8390 most gratifying to her feelings! It was an advantage that could not be
8391 too gratefully acknowledged, nor too speedily made use of; and the
8392 visit to Lady Middleton, which had not before had any precise limits,
8393 was instantly discovered to have been always meant to end in two days'
8394 time.
8395
8396 When the note was shown to Elinor, as it was within ten minutes after
8397 its arrival, it gave her, for the first time, some share in the
8398 expectations of Lucy; for such a mark of uncommon kindness, vouchsafed
8399 on so short an acquaintance, seemed to declare that the good-will
8400 towards her arose from something more than merely malice against
8401 herself; and might be brought, by time and address, to do every thing
8402 that Lucy wished. Her flattery had already subdued the pride of Lady
8403 Middleton, and made an entry into the close heart of Mrs. John
8404 Dashwood; and these were effects that laid open the probability of
8405 greater.
8406
8407 The Miss Steeles removed to Harley Street, and all that reached Elinor
8408 of their influence there, strengthened her expectation of the event.
8409 Sir John, who called on them more than once, brought home such accounts
8410 of the favour they were in, as must be universally striking. Mrs.
8411 Dashwood had never been so much pleased with any young women in her
8412 life, as she was with them; had given each of them a needle book made
8413 by some emigrant; called Lucy by her Christian name; and did not know
8414 whether she should ever be able to part with them.
8415
8416
8417
8418
8419
8420 [At this point in the first and second editions, Volume II ended.]
8421
8422
8423
8424
8425 CHAPTER 37
8426
8427
8428 Mrs. Palmer was so well at the end of a fortnight, that her mother felt
8429 it no longer necessary to give up the whole of her time to her; and,
8430 contenting herself with visiting her once or twice a day, returned from
8431 that period to her own home, and her own habits, in which she found the
8432 Miss Dashwoods very ready to resume their former share.
8433
8434 About the third or fourth morning after their being thus resettled in
8435 Berkeley Street, Mrs. Jennings, on returning from her ordinary visit to
8436 Mrs. Palmer, entered the drawing-room, where Elinor was sitting by
8437 herself, with an air of such hurrying importance as prepared her to
8438 hear something wonderful; and giving her time only to form that idea,
8439 began directly to justify it, by saying,
8440
8441 "Lord! my dear Miss Dashwood! have you heard the news?"
8442
8443 "No, ma'am. What is it?"
8444
8445 "Something so strange! But you shall hear it all.-- When I got to Mr.
8446 Palmer's, I found Charlotte quite in a fuss about the child. She was
8447 sure it was very ill--it cried, and fretted, and was all over pimples.
8448 So I looked at it directly, and, 'Lord! my dear,' says I, 'it is
8449 nothing in the world, but the red gum--' and nurse said just the same.
8450 But Charlotte, she would not be satisfied, so Mr. Donavan was sent for;
8451 and luckily he happened to just come in from Harley Street, so he
8452 stepped over directly, and as soon as ever Mama, he said
8453 just as we did, that it was nothing in the world but the red gum, and
8454 then Charlotte was easy. And so, just as he was going away again, it
8455 came into my head, I am sure I do not know how I happened to think of
8456 it, but it came into my head to ask him if there was any news. So upon
8457 that, he smirked, and simpered, and looked grave, and seemed to know
8458 something or other, and at last he said in a whisper, 'For fear any
8459 unpleasant report should reach the young ladies under your care as to
8460 their sister's indisposition, I think it advisable to say, that I
8461 believe there is no great reason for alarm; I hope Mrs. Dashwood will
8462 do very well.'"
8463
8464 "What! is Fanny ill?"
8465
8466 "That is exactly what I said, my dear. 'Lord!' says I, 'is Mrs.
8467 Dashwood ill?' So then it all came out; and the long and the short of
8468 the matter, by all I can learn, seems to be this. Mr. Edward Ferrars,
8469 the very young man I used to joke with you about (but however, as it
8470 turns out, I am monstrous glad there was never any thing in it), Mr.
8471 Edward Ferrars, it seems, has been engaged above this twelvemonth to my
8472 cousin Lucy!--There's for you, my dear!--And not a creature knowing a
8473 syllable of the matter, except Nancy!--Could you have believed such a
8474 thing possible?-- There is no great wonder in their liking one another;
8475 but that matters should be brought so forward between them, and nobody
8476 suspect it!--THAT is strange!--I never happened to see them together,
8477 or I am sure I should have found it out directly. Well, and so this
8478 was kept a great secret, for fear of Mrs. Ferrars, and neither she nor
8479 your brother or sister suspected a word of the matter;--till this very
8480 morning, poor Nancy, who, you know, is a well-meaning creature, but no
8481 conjurer, popt it all out. 'Lord!' thinks she to herself, 'they are
8482 all so fond of Lucy, to be sure they will make no difficulty about it;'
8483 and so, away she went to your sister, who was sitting all alone at her
8484 carpet-work, little suspecting what was to come--for she had just been
8485 saying to your brother, only five minutes before, that she thought to
8486 make a match between Edward and some Lord's daughter or other, I forget
8487 who. So you may think what a blow it was to all her vanity and pride.
8488 She fell into violent hysterics immediately, with such screams as
8489 reached your brother's ears, as he was sitting in his own dressing-room
8490 down stairs, thinking about writing a letter to his steward in the
8491 country. So up he flew directly, and a terrible scene took place, for
8492 Lucy was come to them by that time, little dreaming what was going on.
8493 Poor soul! I pity HER. And I must say, I think she was used very
8494 hardly; for your sister scolded like any fury, and soon drove her into
8495 a fainting fit. Nancy, she fell upon her knees, and cried bitterly;
8496 and your brother, he walked about the room, and said he did not know
8497 what to do. Mrs. Dashwood declared they should not stay a minute
8498 longer in the house, and your brother was forced to go down upon HIS
8499 knees too, to persuade her to let them stay till they had packed up
8500 their clothes. THEN she fell into hysterics again, and he was so
8501 frightened that he would send for Mr. Donavan, and Mr. Donavan found
8502 the house in all this uproar. The carriage was at the door ready to
8503 take my poor cousins away, and they were just stepping in as he came
8504 off; poor Lucy in such a condition, he says, she could hardly walk; and
8505 Nancy, she was almost as bad. I declare, I have no patience with your
8506 sister; and I hope, with all my heart, it will be a match in spite of
8507 her. Lord! what a taking poor Mr. Edward will be in when he hears of
8508 it! To have his love used so scornfully! for they say he is monstrous
8509 fond of her, as well he may. I should not wonder, if he was to be in
8510 the greatest passion!--and Mr. Donavan thinks just the same. He and I
8511 had a great deal of talk about it; and the best of all is, that he is
8512 gone back again to Harley Street, that he may be within call when Mrs.
8513 Ferrars is told of it, for she was sent for as soon as ever my cousins
8514 left the house, for your sister was sure SHE would be in hysterics too;
8515 and so she may, for what I care. I have no pity for either of them. I
8516 have no notion of people's making such a to-do about money and
8517 greatness. There is no reason on earth why Mr. Edward and Lucy should
8518 not marry; for I am sure Mrs. Ferrars may afford to do very well by her
8519 son, and though Lucy has next to nothing herself, she knows better than
8520 any body how to make the most of every thing; I dare say, if Mrs.
8521 Ferrars would only allow him five hundred a-year, she would make as
8522 good an appearance with it as any body else would with eight. Lord!
8523 how snug they might live in such another cottage as yours--or a little
8524 bigger--with two maids, and two men; and I believe I could help them to
8525 a housemaid, for my Betty has a sister out of place, that would fit
8526 them exactly."
8527
8528 Here Mrs. Jennings ceased, and as Elinor had had time enough to collect
8529 her thoughts, she was able to give such an answer, and make such
8530 observations, as the subject might naturally be supposed to produce.
8531 Happy to find that she was not suspected of any extraordinary interest
8532 in it; that Mrs. Jennings (as she had of late often hoped might be the
8533 case) had ceased to imagine her at all attached to Edward; and happy
8534 above all the rest, in the absence of Marianne, she felt very well able
8535 to speak of the affair without embarrassment, and to give her judgment,
8536 as she believed, with impartiality on the conduct of every one
8537 concerned in it.
8538
8539 She could hardly determine what her own expectation of its event really
8540 was; though she earnestly tried to drive away the notion of its being
8541 possible to end otherwise at last, than in the marriage of Edward and
8542 Lucy. What Mrs. Ferrars would say and do, though there could not be a
8543 doubt of its nature, she was anxious to hear; and still more anxious to
8544 know how Edward would conduct himself. For HIM she felt much
8545 compassion;--for Lucy very little--and it cost her some pains to
8546 procure that little;--for the rest of the party none at all.
8547
8548 As Mrs. Jennings could talk on no other subject, Elinor soon saw the
8549 necessity of preparing Marianne for its discussion. No time was to be
8550 lost in undeceiving her, in making her acquainted with the real truth,
8551 and in endeavouring to bring her to hear it talked of by others,
8552 without betraying that she felt any uneasiness for her sister, or any
8553 resentment against Edward.
8554
8555 Elinor's office was a painful one.--She was going to remove what she
8556 really believed to be her sister's chief consolation,--to give such
8557 particulars of Edward as she feared would ruin him for ever in her good
8558 opinion,-and to make Marianne, by a resemblance in their situations,
8559 which to HER fancy would seem strong, feel all her own disappointment
8560 over again. But unwelcome as such a task must be, it was necessary to
8561 be done, and Elinor therefore hastened to perform it.
8562
8563 She was very far from wishing to dwell on her own feelings, or to
8564 represent herself as suffering much, any otherwise than as the
8565 self-command she had practised since her first knowledge of Edward's
8566 engagement, might suggest a hint of what was practicable to Marianne.
8567 Her narration was clear and simple; and though it could not be given
8568 without emotion, it was not accompanied by violent agitation, nor
8569 impetuous grief.--THAT belonged rather to the hearer, for Marianne
8570 listened with horror, and cried excessively. Elinor was to be the
8571 comforter of others in her own distresses, no less than in theirs; and
8572 all the comfort that could be given by assurances of her own composure
8573 of mind, and a very earnest vindication of Edward from every charge but
8574 of imprudence, was readily offered.
8575
8576 But Marianne for some time would give credit to neither. Edward seemed
8577 a second Willoughby; and acknowledging as Elinor did, that she HAD
8578 loved him most sincerely, could she feel less than herself! As for
8579 Lucy Steele, she considered her so totally unamiable, so absolutely
8580 incapable of attaching a sensible man, that she could not be persuaded
8581 at first to believe, and afterwards to pardon, any former affection of
8582 Edward for her. She would not even admit it to have been natural; and
8583 Elinor left her to be convinced that it was so, by that which only
8584 could convince her, a better knowledge of mankind.
8585
8586 Her first communication had reached no farther than to state the fact
8587 of the engagement, and the length of time it had existed.--Marianne's
8588 feelings had then broken in, and put an end to all regularity of
8589 detail; and for some time all that could be done was to soothe her
8590 distress, lessen her alarms, and combat her resentment. The first
8591 question on her side, which led to farther particulars, was,--
8592
8593 "How long has this been known to you, Elinor? has he written to you?"
8594
8595 "I have known it these four months. When Lucy first came to Barton
8596 Park last November, she told me in confidence of her engagement."
8597
8598 At these words, Marianne's eyes expressed the astonishment which her
8599 lips could not utter. After a pause of wonder, she exclaimed--
8600
8601 "Four months!--Have you known of this four months?"
8602
8603 Elinor confirmed it.
8604
8605 "What!--while attending me in all my misery, has this been on your
8606 heart?--And I have reproached you for being happy!"--
8607
8608 "It was not fit that you should then know how much I was the reverse!"
8609
8610 "Four months!"--cried Marianne again.--"So calm!--so cheerful!--how
8611 have you been supported?"--
8612
8613 "By feeling that I was doing my duty.--My promise to Lucy, obliged me
8614 to be secret. I owed it to her, therefore, to avoid giving any hint of
8615 the truth; and I owed it to my family and friends, not to create in
8616 them a solicitude about me, which it could not be in my power to
8617 satisfy."
8618
8619 Marianne seemed much struck.
8620
8621 "I have very often wished to undeceive yourself and my mother," added
8622 Elinor; "and once or twice I have attempted it;--but without betraying
8623 my trust, I never could have convinced you."
8624
8625 "Four months!--and yet you loved him!"--
8626
8627 "Yes. But I did not love only him;--and while the comfort of others was
8628 dear to me, I was glad to spare them from knowing how much I felt.
8629 Now, I can think and speak of it with little emotion. I would not have
8630 you suffer on my account; for I assure you I no longer suffer
8631 materially myself. I have many things to support me. I am not
8632 conscious of having provoked the disappointment by any imprudence of my
8633 own, I have borne it as much as possible without spreading it farther.
8634 I acquit Edward of essential misconduct. I wish him very happy; and I
8635 am so sure of his always doing his duty, that though now he may harbour
8636 some regret, in the end he must become so. Lucy does not want sense,
8637 and that is the foundation on which every thing good may be built.--And
8638 after all, Marianne, after all that is bewitching in the idea of a
8639 single and constant attachment, and all that can be said of one's
8640 happiness depending entirely on any particular person, it is not
8641 meant--it is not fit--it is not possible that it should be so.-- Edward
8642 will marry Lucy; he will marry a woman superior in person and
8643 understanding to half her sex; and time and habit will teach him to
8644 forget that he ever thought another superior to HER."--
8645
8646 "If such is your way of thinking," said Marianne, "if the loss of what
8647 is most valued is so easily to be made up by something else, your
8648 resolution, your self-command, are, perhaps, a little less to be
8649 wondered at.--They are brought more within my comprehension."
8650
8651 "I understand you.--You do not suppose that I have ever felt much.--For
8652 four months, Marianne, I have had all this hanging on my mind, without
8653 being at liberty to speak of it to a single creature; knowing that it
8654 would make you and my mother most unhappy whenever it were explained to
8655 you, yet unable to prepare you for it in the least.-- It was told
8656 me,--it was in a manner forced on me by the very person herself, whose
8657 prior engagement ruined all my prospects; and told me, as I thought,
8658 with triumph.-- This person's suspicions, therefore, I have had to
8659 oppose, by endeavouring to appear indifferent where I have been most
8660 deeply interested;--and it has not been only once;--I have had her
8661 hopes and exultation to listen to again and again.-- I have known
8662 myself to be divided from Edward for ever, without hearing one
8663 circumstance that could make me less desire the connection.--Nothing
8664 has proved him unworthy; nor has anything declared him indifferent to
8665 me.-- I have had to contend against the unkindness of his sister, and
8666 the insolence of his mother; and have suffered the punishment of an
8667 attachment, without enjoying its advantages.-- And all this has been
8668 going on at a time, when, as you know too well, it has not been my only
8669 unhappiness.-- If you can think me capable of ever feeling--surely you
8670 may suppose that I have suffered NOW. The composure of mind with which
8671 I have brought myself at present to consider the matter, the
8672 consolation that I have been willing to admit, have been the effect of
8673 constant and painful exertion;--they did not spring up of
8674 themselves;--they did not occur to relieve my spirits at first.-- No,
8675 Marianne.--THEN, if I had not been bound to silence, perhaps nothing
8676 could have kept me entirely--not even what I owed to my dearest
8677 friends--from openly shewing that I was VERY unhappy."--
8678
8679 Marianne was quite subdued.--
8680
8681 "Oh! Elinor," she cried, "you have made me hate myself for ever.--How
8682 barbarous have I been to you!--you, who have been my only comfort, who
8683 have borne with me in all my misery, who have seemed to be only
8684 suffering for me!--Is this my gratitude?--Is this the only return I can
8685 make you?--Because your merit cries out upon myself, I have been trying
8686 to do it away."
8687
8688 The tenderest caresses followed this confession. In such a frame of
8689 mind as she was now in, Elinor had no difficulty in obtaining from her
8690 whatever promise she required; and at her request, Marianne engaged
8691 never to speak of the affair to any one with the least appearance of
8692 bitterness;--to meet Lucy without betraying the smallest increase of
8693 dislike to her;--and even to see Edward himself, if chance should bring
8694 them together, without any diminution of her usual cordiality.-- These
8695 were great concessions;--but where Marianne felt that she had injured,
8696 no reparation could be too much for her to make.
8697
8698 She performed her promise of being discreet, to admiration.--She
8699 attended to all that Mrs. Jennings had to say upon the subject, with an
8700 unchanging complexion, dissented from her in nothing, and was heard
8701 three times to say, "Yes, ma'am."--She listened to her praise of Lucy
8702 with only moving from one chair to another, and when Mrs. Jennings
8703 talked of Edward's affection, it cost her only a spasm in her
8704 throat.--Such advances towards heroism in her sister, made Elinor feel
8705 equal to any thing herself.
8706
8707 The next morning brought a farther trial of it, in a visit from their
8708 brother, who came with a most serious aspect to talk over the dreadful
8709 affair, and bring them news of his wife.
8710
8711 "You have heard, I suppose," said he with great solemnity, as soon as
8712 he was seated, "of the very shocking discovery that took place under
8713 our roof yesterday."
8714
8715 They all looked their assent; it seemed too awful a moment for speech.
8716
8717 "Your sister," he continued, "has suffered dreadfully. Mrs. Ferrars
8718 too--in short it has been a scene of such complicated distress--but I
8719 will hope that the storm may be weathered without our being any of us
8720 quite overcome. Poor Fanny! she was in hysterics all yesterday. But I
8721 would not alarm you too much. Donavan says there is nothing materially
8722 to be apprehended; her constitution is a good one, and her resolution
8723 equal to any thing. She has borne it all, with the fortitude of an
8724 angel! She says she never shall think well of anybody again; and one
8725 cannot wonder at it, after being so deceived!--meeting with such
8726 ingratitude, where so much kindness had been shewn, so much confidence
8727 had been placed! It was quite out of the benevolence of her heart,
8728 that she had asked these young women to her house; merely because she
8729 thought they deserved some attention, were harmless, well-behaved
8730 girls, and would be pleasant companions; for otherwise we both wished
8731 very much to have invited you and Marianne to be with us, while your
8732 kind friend there, was attending her daughter. And now to be so
8733 rewarded! 'I wish, with all my heart,' says poor Fanny in her
8734 affectionate way, 'that we had asked your sisters instead of them.'"
8735
8736 Here he stopped to be thanked; which being done, he went on.
8737
8738 "What poor Mrs. Ferrars suffered, when first Fanny broke it to her, is
8739 not to be described. While she with the truest affection had been
8740 planning a most eligible connection for him, was it to be supposed that
8741 he could be all the time secretly engaged to another person!--such a
8742 suspicion could never have entered her head! If she suspected ANY
8743 prepossession elsewhere, it could not be in THAT quarter. 'THERE, to
8744 be sure,' said she, 'I might have thought myself safe.' She was quite
8745 in an agony. We consulted together, however, as to what should be
8746 done, and at last she determined to send for Edward. He came. But I
8747 am sorry to relate what ensued. All that Mrs. Ferrars could say to
8748 make him put an end to the engagement, assisted too as you may well
8749 suppose by my arguments, and Fanny's entreaties, was of no avail.
8750 Duty, affection, every thing was disregarded. I never thought Edward
8751 so stubborn, so unfeeling before. His mother explained to him her
8752 liberal designs, in case of his marrying Miss Morton; told him she
8753 would settle on him the Norfolk estate, which, clear of land-tax,
8754 brings in a good thousand a-year; offered even, when matters grew
8755 desperate, to make it twelve hundred; and in opposition to this, if he
8756 still persisted in this low connection, represented to him the certain
8757 penury that must attend the match. His own two thousand pounds she
8758 protested should be his all; she would never see him again; and so far
8759 would she be from affording him the smallest assistance, that if he
8760 were to enter into any profession with a view of better support, she
8761 would do all in her power to prevent him advancing in it."
8762
8763 Here Marianne, in an ecstasy of indignation, clapped her hands
8764 together, and cried, "Gracious God! can this be possible!"
8765
8766 "Well may you wonder, Marianne," replied her brother, "at the obstinacy
8767 which could resist such arguments as these. Your exclamation is very
8768 natural."
8769
8770 Marianne was going to retort, but she remembered her promises, and
8771 forbore.
8772
8773 "All this, however," he continued, "was urged in vain. Edward said
8774 very little; but what he did say, was in the most determined manner.
8775 Nothing should prevail on him to give up his engagement. He would
8776 stand to it, cost him what it might."
8777
8778 "Then," cried Mrs. Jennings with blunt sincerity, no longer able to be
8779 silent, "he has acted like an honest man! I beg your pardon, Mr.
8780 Dashwood, but if he had done otherwise, I should have thought him a
8781 rascal. I have some little concern in the business, as well as
8782 yourself, for Lucy Steele is my cousin, and I believe there is not a
8783 better kind of girl in the world, nor one who more deserves a good
8784 husband."
8785
8786 John Dashwood was greatly astonished; but his nature was calm, not open
8787 to provocation, and he never wished to offend anybody, especially
8788 anybody of good fortune. He therefore replied, without any resentment,
8789
8790 "I would by no means speak disrespectfully of any relation of yours,
8791 madam. Miss Lucy Steele is, I dare say, a very deserving young woman,
8792 but in the present case you know, the connection must be impossible.
8793 And to have entered into a secret engagement with a young man under her
8794 uncle's care, the son of a woman especially of such very large fortune
8795 as Mrs. Ferrars, is perhaps, altogether a little extraordinary. In
8796 short, I do not mean to reflect upon the behaviour of any person whom
8797 you have a regard for, Mrs. Jennings. We all wish her extremely happy;
8798 and Mrs. Ferrars's conduct throughout the whole, has been such as every
8799 conscientious, good mother, in like circumstances, would adopt. It has
8800 been dignified and liberal. Edward has drawn his own lot, and I fear
8801 it will be a bad one."
8802
8803 Marianne sighed out her similar apprehension; and Elinor's heart wrung
8804 for the feelings of Edward, while braving his mother's threats, for a
8805 woman who could not reward him.
8806
8807 "Well, sir," said Mrs. Jennings, "and how did it end?"
8808
8809 "I am sorry to say, ma'am, in a most unhappy rupture:-- Edward is
8810 dismissed for ever from his mother's notice. He left her house
8811 yesterday, but where he is gone, or whether he is still in town, I do
8812 not know; for WE of course can make no inquiry."
8813
8814 "Poor young man!--and what is to become of him?"
8815
8816 "What, indeed, ma'am! It is a melancholy consideration. Born to the
8817 prospect of such affluence! I cannot conceive a situation more
8818 deplorable. The interest of two thousand pounds--how can a man live on
8819 it?--and when to that is added the recollection, that he might, but for
8820 his own folly, within three months have been in the receipt of two
8821 thousand, five hundred a-year (for Miss Morton has thirty thousand
8822 pounds,) I cannot picture to myself a more wretched condition. We must
8823 all feel for him; and the more so, because it is totally out of our
8824 power to assist him."
8825
8826 "Poor young man!" cried Mrs. Jennings, "I am sure he should be very
8827 welcome to bed and board at my house; and so I would tell him if I
8828 could see him. It is not fit that he should be living about at his own
8829 charge now, at lodgings and taverns."
8830
8831 Elinor's heart thanked her for such kindness towards Edward, though she
8832 could not forbear smiling at the form of it.
8833
8834 "If he would only have done as well by himself," said John Dashwood,
8835 "as all his friends were disposed to do by him, he might now have been
8836 in his proper situation, and would have wanted for nothing. But as it
8837 is, it must be out of anybody's power to assist him. And there is one
8838 thing more preparing against him, which must be worse than all--his
8839 mother has determined, with a very natural kind of spirit, to settle
8840 THAT estate upon Robert immediately, which might have been Edward's, on
8841 proper conditions. I left her this morning with her lawyer, talking
8842 over the business."
8843
8844 "Well!" said Mrs. Jennings, "that is HER revenge. Everybody has a way
8845 of their own. But I don't think mine would be, to make one son
8846 independent, because another had plagued me."
8847
8848 Marianne got up and walked about the room.
8849
8850 "Can anything be more galling to the spirit of a man," continued John,
8851 "than to see his younger brother in possession of an estate which might
8852 have been his own? Poor Edward! I feel for him sincerely."
8853
8854 A few minutes more spent in the same kind of effusion, concluded his
8855 visit; and with repeated assurances to his sisters that he really
8856 believed there was no material danger in Fanny's indisposition, and
8857 that they need not therefore be very uneasy about it, he went away;
8858 leaving the three ladies unanimous in their sentiments on the present
8859 occasion, as far at least as it regarded Mrs. Ferrars's conduct, the
8860 Dashwoods', and Edward's.
8861
8862 Marianne's indignation burst forth as soon as he quitted the room; and
8863 as her vehemence made reserve impossible in Elinor, and unnecessary in
8864 Mrs. Jennings, they all joined in a very spirited critique upon the
8865 party.
8866
8867
8868
8869 CHAPTER 38
8870
8871
8872 Mrs. Jennings was very warm in her praise of Edward's conduct, but only
8873 Elinor and Marianne understood its true merit. THEY only knew how
8874 little he had had to tempt him to be disobedient, and how small was the
8875 consolation, beyond the consciousness of doing right, that could remain
8876 to him in the loss of friends and fortune. Elinor gloried in his
8877 integrity; and Marianne forgave all his offences in compassion for his
8878 punishment. But though confidence between them was, by this public
8879 discovery, restored to its proper state, it was not a subject on which
8880 either of them were fond of dwelling when alone. Elinor avoided it
8881 upon principle, as tending to fix still more upon her thoughts, by the
8882 too warm, too positive assurances of Marianne, that belief of Edward's
8883 continued affection for herself which she rather wished to do away; and
8884 Marianne's courage soon failed her, in trying to converse upon a topic
8885 which always left her more dissatisfied with herself than ever, by the
8886 comparison it necessarily produced between Elinor's conduct and her own.
8887
8888 She felt all the force of that comparison; but not as her sister had
8889 hoped, to urge her to exertion now; she felt it with all the pain of
8890 continual self-reproach, regretted most bitterly that she had never
8891 exerted herself before; but it brought only the torture of penitence,
8892 without the hope of amendment. Her mind was so much weakened that she
8893 still fancied present exertion impossible, and therefore it only
8894 dispirited her more.
8895
8896 Nothing new was heard by them, for a day or two afterwards, of affairs
8897 in Harley Street, or Bartlett's Buildings. But though so much of the
8898 matter was known to them already, that Mrs. Jennings might have had
8899 enough to do in spreading that knowledge farther, without seeking after
8900 more, she had resolved from the first to pay a visit of comfort and
8901 inquiry to her cousins as soon as she could; and nothing but the
8902 hindrance of more visitors than usual, had prevented her going to them
8903 within that time.
8904
8905 The third day succeeding their knowledge of the particulars, was so
8906 fine, so beautiful a Sunday as to draw many to Kensington Gardens,
8907 though it was only the second week in March. Mrs. Jennings and Elinor
8908 were of the number; but Marianne, who knew that the Willoughbys were
8909 again in town, and had a constant dread of meeting them, chose rather
8910 to stay at home, than venture into so public a place.
8911
8912 An intimate acquaintance of Mrs. Jennings joined them soon after they
8913 entered the Gardens, and Elinor was not sorry that by her continuing
8914 with them, and engaging all Mrs. Jennings's conversation, she was
8915 herself left to quiet reflection. She saw nothing of the Willoughbys,
8916 nothing of Edward, and for some time nothing of anybody who could by
8917 any chance whether grave or gay, be interesting to her. But at last
8918 she found herself with some surprise, accosted by Miss Steele, who,
8919 though looking rather shy, expressed great satisfaction in meeting
8920 them, and on receiving encouragement from the particular kindness of
8921 Mrs. Jennings, left her own party for a short time, to join their's.
8922 Mrs. Jennings immediately whispered to Elinor,
8923
8924 "Get it all out of her, my dear. She will tell you any thing if you
8925 ask. You see I cannot leave Mrs. Clarke."
8926
8927 It was lucky, however, for Mrs. Jennings's curiosity and Elinor's too,
8928 that she would tell any thing WITHOUT being asked; for nothing would
8929 otherwise have been learnt.
8930
8931 "I am so glad to meet you;" said Miss Steele, taking her familiarly by
8932 the arm--"for I wanted to see you of all things in the world." And
8933 then lowering her voice, "I suppose Mrs. Jennings has heard all about
8934 it. Is she angry?"
8935
8936 "Not at all, I believe, with you."
8937
8938 "That is a good thing. And Lady Middleton, is SHE angry?"
8939
8940 "I cannot suppose it possible that she should be."
8941
8942 "I am monstrous glad of it. Good gracious! I have had such a time of
8943 it! I never saw Lucy in such a rage in my life. She vowed at first
8944 she would never trim me up a new bonnet, nor do any thing else for me
8945 again, so long as she lived; but now she is quite come to, and we are
8946 as good friends as ever. Look, she made me this bow to my hat, and put
8947 in the feather last night. There now, YOU are going to laugh at me
8948 too. But why should not I wear pink ribbons? I do not care if it IS
8949 the Doctor's favourite colour. I am sure, for my part, I should never
8950 have known he DID like it better than any other colour, if he had not
8951 happened to say so. My cousins have been so plaguing me! I declare
8952 sometimes I do not know which way to look before them."
8953
8954 She had wandered away to a subject on which Elinor had nothing to say,
8955 and therefore soon judged it expedient to find her way back again to
8956 the first.
8957
8958 "Well, but Miss Dashwood," speaking triumphantly, "people may say what
8959 they chuse about Mr. Ferrars's declaring he would not have Lucy, for it
8960 is no such thing I can tell you; and it is quite a shame for such
8961 ill-natured reports to be spread abroad. Whatever Lucy might think
8962 about it herself, you know, it was no business of other people to set
8963 it down for certain."
8964
8965 "I never heard any thing of the kind hinted at before, I assure you,"
8966 said Elinor.
8967
8968 "Oh, did not you? But it WAS said, I know, very well, and by more than
8969 one; for Miss Godby told Miss Sparks, that nobody in their senses could
8970 expect Mr. Ferrars to give up a woman like Miss Morton, with thirty
8971 thousand pounds to her fortune, for Lucy Steele that had nothing at
8972 all; and I had it from Miss Sparks myself. And besides that, my cousin
8973 Richard said himself, that when it came to the point he was afraid Mr.
8974 Ferrars would be off; and when Edward did not come near us for three
8975 days, I could not tell what to think myself; and I believe in my heart
8976 Lucy gave it up all for lost; for we came away from your brother's
8977 Wednesday, and we saw nothing of him not all Thursday, Friday, and
8978 Saturday, and did not know what was become of him. Once Lucy thought
8979 to write to him, but then her spirits rose against that. However this
8980 morning he came just as we came home from church; and then it all came
8981 out, how he had been sent for Wednesday to Harley Street, and been
8982 talked to by his mother and all of them, and how he had declared before
8983 them all that he loved nobody but Lucy, and nobody but Lucy would he
8984 have. And how he had been so worried by what passed, that as soon as
8985 he had went away from his mother's house, he had got upon his horse,
8986 and rid into the country, some where or other; and how he had stayed
8987 about at an inn all Thursday and Friday, on purpose to get the better
8988 of it. And after thinking it all over and over again, he said, it
8989 seemed to him as if, now he had no fortune, and no nothing at all, it
8990 would be quite unkind to keep her on to the engagement, because it must
8991 be for her loss, for he had nothing but two thousand pounds, and no
8992 hope of any thing else; and if he was to go into orders, as he had some
8993 thoughts, he could get nothing but a curacy, and how was they to live
8994 upon that?--He could not bear to think of her doing no better, and so
8995 he begged, if she had the least mind for it, to put an end to the
8996 matter directly, and leave him shift for himself. I heard him say all
8997 this as plain as could possibly be. And it was entirely for HER sake,
8998 and upon HER account, that he said a word about being off, and not upon
8999 his own. I will take my oath he never dropt a syllable of being tired
9000 of her, or of wishing to marry Miss Morton, or any thing like it. But,
9001 to be sure, Lucy would not give ear to such kind of talking; so she
9002 told him directly (with a great deal about sweet and love, you know,
9003 and all that--Oh, la! one can't repeat such kind of things you
9004 know)--she told him directly, she had not the least mind in the world
9005 to be off, for she could live with him upon a trifle, and how little so
9006 ever he might have, she should be very glad to have it all, you know,
9007 or something of the kind. So then he was monstrous happy, and talked
9008 on some time about what they should do, and they agreed he should take
9009 orders directly, and they must wait to be married till he got a living.
9010 And just then I could not hear any more, for my cousin called from
9011 below to tell me Mrs. Richardson was come in her coach, and would take
9012 one of us to Kensington Gardens; so I was forced to go into the room
9013 and interrupt them, to ask Lucy if she would like to go, but she did
9014 not care to leave Edward; so I just run up stairs and put on a pair of
9015 silk stockings and came off with the Richardsons."
9016
9017 "I do not understand what you mean by interrupting them," said Elinor;
9018 "you were all in the same room together, were not you?"
9019
9020 "No, indeed, not us. La! Miss Dashwood, do you think people make love
9021 when any body else is by? Oh, for shame!--To be sure you must know
9022 better than that. (Laughing affectedly.)--No, no; they were shut up in
9023 the drawing-room together, and all I heard was only by listening at the
9024 door."
9025
9026 "How!" cried Elinor; "have you been repeating to me what you only
9027 learnt yourself by listening at the door? I am sorry I did not know it
9028 before; for I certainly would not have suffered you to give me
9029 particulars of a conversation which you ought not to have known
9030 yourself. How could you behave so unfairly by your sister?"
9031
9032 "Oh, la! there is nothing in THAT. I only stood at the door, and heard
9033 what I could. And I am sure Lucy would have done just the same by me;
9034 for a year or two back, when Martha Sharpe and I had so many secrets
9035 together, she never made any bones of hiding in a closet, or behind a
9036 chimney-board, on purpose to hear what we said."
9037
9038 Elinor tried to talk of something else; but Miss Steele could not be
9039 kept beyond a couple of minutes, from what was uppermost in her mind.
9040
9041 "Edward talks of going to Oxford soon," said she; "but now he is
9042 lodging at No. --, Pall Mall. What an ill-natured woman his mother is,
9043 an't she? And your brother and sister were not very kind! However, I
9044 shan't say anything against them to YOU; and to be sure they did send
9045 us home in their own chariot, which was more than I looked for. And
9046 for my part, I was all in a fright for fear your sister should ask us
9047 for the huswifes she had gave us a day or two before; but, however,
9048 nothing was said about them, and I took care to keep mine out of sight.
9049 Edward have got some business at Oxford, he says; so he must go there
9050 for a time; and after THAT, as soon as he can light upon a Bishop, he
9051 will be ordained. I wonder what curacy he will get!--Good gracious!
9052 (giggling as she spoke) I'd lay my life I know what my cousins will
9053 say, when they hear of it. They will tell me I should write to the
9054 Doctor, to get Edward the curacy of his new living. I know they will;
9055 but I am sure I would not do such a thing for all the world.-- 'La!' I
9056 shall say directly, 'I wonder how you could think of such a thing? I
9057 write to the Doctor, indeed!'"
9058
9059 "Well," said Elinor, "it is a comfort to be prepared against the worst.
9060 You have got your answer ready."
9061
9062 Miss Steele was going to reply on the same subject, but the approach of
9063 her own party made another more necessary.
9064
9065 "Oh, la! here come the Richardsons. I had a vast deal more to say to
9066 you, but I must not stay away from them not any longer. I assure you
9067 they are very genteel people. He makes a monstrous deal of money, and
9068 they keep their own coach. I have not time to speak to Mrs. Jennings
9069 about it myself, but pray tell her I am quite happy to hear she is not
9070 in anger against us, and Lady Middleton the same; and if anything
9071 should happen to take you and your sister away, and Mrs. Jennings
9072 should want company, I am sure we should be very glad to come and stay
9073 with her for as long a time as she likes. I suppose Lady Middleton
9074 won't ask us any more this bout. Good-by; I am sorry Miss Marianne was
9075 not here. Remember me kindly to her. La! if you have not got your
9076 spotted muslin on!--I wonder you was not afraid of its being torn."
9077
9078 Such was her parting concern; for after this, she had time only to pay
9079 her farewell compliments to Mrs. Jennings, before her company was
9080 claimed by Mrs. Richardson; and Elinor was left in possession of
9081 knowledge which might feed her powers of reflection some time, though
9082 she had learnt very little more than what had been already foreseen and
9083 foreplanned in her own mind. Edward's marriage with Lucy was as firmly
9084 determined on, and the time of its taking place remained as absolutely
9085 uncertain, as she had concluded it would be;--every thing depended,
9086 exactly after her expectation, on his getting that preferment, of
9087 which, at present, there seemed not the smallest chance.
9088
9089 As soon as they returned to the carriage, Mrs. Jennings was eager for
9090 information; but as Elinor wished to spread as little as possible
9091 intelligence that had in the first place been so unfairly obtained, she
9092 confined herself to the brief repetition of such simple particulars, as
9093 she felt assured that Lucy, for the sake of her own consequence, would
9094 choose to have known. The continuance of their engagement, and the
9095 means that were able to be taken for promoting its end, was all her
9096 communication; and this produced from Mrs. Jennings the following
9097 natural remark.
9098
9099 "Wait for his having a living!--ay, we all know how THAT will
9100 end:--they will wait a twelvemonth, and finding no good comes of it,
9101 will set down upon a curacy of fifty pounds a-year, with the interest
9102 of his two thousand pounds, and what little matter Mr. Steele and Mr.
9103 Pratt can give her.--Then they will have a child every year! and Lord
9104 help 'em! how poor they will be!--I must see what I can give them
9105 towards furnishing their house. Two maids and two men, indeed!--as I
9106 talked of t'other day.--No, no, they must get a stout girl of all
9107 works.-- Betty's sister would never do for them NOW."
9108
9109 The next morning brought Elinor a letter by the two-penny post from
9110 Lucy herself. It was as follows:
9111
9112 "Bartlett's Building, March.
9113
9114 "I hope my dear Miss Dashwood will excuse the
9115 liberty I take of writing to her; but I know your
9116 friendship for me will make you pleased to hear such
9117 a good account of myself and my dear Edward, after
9118 all the troubles we have went through lately,
9119 therefore will make no more apologies, but proceed
9120 to say that, thank God! though we have suffered
9121 dreadfully, we are both quite well now, and as happy
9122 as we must always be in one another's love. We have
9123 had great trials, and great persecutions, but
9124 however, at the same time, gratefully acknowledge
9125 many friends, yourself not the least among them,
9126 whose great kindness I shall always thankfully
9127 remember, as will Edward too, who I have told of
9128 it. I am sure you will be glad to hear, as likewise
9129 dear Mrs. Jennings, I spent two happy hours with
9130 him yesterday afternoon, he would not hear of our
9131 parting, though earnestly did I, as I thought my
9132 duty required, urge him to it for prudence sake,
9133 and would have parted for ever on the spot, would
9134 he consent to it; but he said it should never be,
9135 he did not regard his mother's anger, while he could
9136 have my affections; our prospects are not very
9137 bright, to be sure, but we must wait, and hope for
9138 the best; he will be ordained shortly; and should
9139 it ever be in your power to recommend him to any
9140 body that has a living to bestow, am very sure you
9141 will not forget us, and dear Mrs. Jennings too,
9142 trust she will speak a good word for us to Sir John,
9143 or Mr. Palmer, or any friend that may be able to
9144 assist us.--Poor Anne was much to blame for what
9145 she did, but she did it for the best, so I say
9146 nothing; hope Mrs. Jennings won't think it too much
9147 trouble to give us a call, should she come this way
9148 any morning, 'twould be a great kindness, and my
9149 cousins would be proud to know her.--My paper reminds
9150 me to conclude; and begging to be most gratefully
9151 and respectfully remembered to her, and to Sir John,
9152 and Lady Middleton, and the dear children, when you
9153 chance to see them, and love to Miss Marianne,
9154
9155 "I am, &c."
9156
9157 As soon as Elinor had finished it, she performed what she concluded to
9158 be its writer's real design, by placing it in the hands of Mrs.
9159 Jennings, who read it aloud with many comments of satisfaction and
9160 praise.
9161
9162 "Very well indeed!--how prettily she writes!--aye, that was quite
9163 proper to let him be off if he would. That was just like Lucy.--Poor
9164 soul! I wish I COULD get him a living, with all my heart.--She calls me
9165 dear Mrs. Jennings, you see. She is a good-hearted girl as ever
9166 lived.--Very well upon my word. That sentence is very prettily turned.
9167 Yes, yes, I will go and see her, sure enough. How attentive she is, to
9168 think of every body!--Thank you, my dear, for shewing it me. It is as
9169 pretty a letter as ever I saw, and does Lucy's head and heart great
9170 credit."
9171
9172
9173
9174 CHAPTER 39
9175
9176
9177 The Miss Dashwoods had now been rather more than two months in town,
9178 and Marianne's impatience to be gone increased every day. She sighed
9179 for the air, the liberty, the quiet of the country; and fancied that if
9180 any place could give her ease, Barton must do it. Elinor was hardly
9181 less anxious than herself for their removal, and only so much less bent
9182 on its being effected immediately, as that she was conscious of the
9183 difficulties of so long a journey, which Marianne could not be brought
9184 to acknowledge. She began, however, seriously to turn her thoughts
9185 towards its accomplishment, and had already mentioned their wishes to
9186 their kind hostess, who resisted them with all the eloquence of her
9187 good-will, when a plan was suggested, which, though detaining them from
9188 home yet a few weeks longer, appeared to Elinor altogether much more
9189 eligible than any other. The Palmers were to remove to Cleveland about
9190 the end of March, for the Easter holidays; and Mrs. Jennings, with both
9191 her friends, received a very warm invitation from Charlotte to go with
9192 them. This would not, in itself, have been sufficient for the delicacy
9193 of Miss Dashwood;--but it was inforced with so much real politeness by
9194 Mr. Palmer himself, as, joined to the very great amendment of his
9195 manners towards them since her sister had been known to be unhappy,
9196 induced her to accept it with pleasure.
9197
9198 When she told Marianne what she had done, however, her first reply was
9199 not very auspicious.
9200
9201 "Cleveland!"--she cried, with great agitation. "No, I cannot go to
9202 Cleveland."--
9203
9204 "You forget," said Elinor gently, "that its situation is not...that it
9205 is not in the neighbourhood of..."
9206
9207 "But it is in Somersetshire.--I cannot go into Somersetshire.--There,
9208 where I looked forward to going...No, Elinor, you cannot expect me to
9209 go there."
9210
9211 Elinor would not argue upon the propriety of overcoming such
9212 feelings;--she only endeavoured to counteract them by working on
9213 others;--represented it, therefore, as a measure which would fix the
9214 time of her returning to that dear mother, whom she so much wished to
9215 see, in a more eligible, more comfortable manner, than any other plan
9216 could do, and perhaps without any greater delay. From Cleveland, which
9217 was within a few miles of Bristol, the distance to Barton was not
9218 beyond one day, though a long day's journey; and their mother's servant
9219 might easily come there to attend them down; and as there could be no
9220 occasion of their staying above a week at Cleveland, they might now be
9221 at home in little more than three weeks' time. As Marianne's affection
9222 for her mother was sincere, it must triumph with little difficulty,
9223 over the imaginary evils she had started.
9224
9225 Mrs. Jennings was so far from being weary of her guests, that she
9226 pressed them very earnestly to return with her again from Cleveland.
9227 Elinor was grateful for the attention, but it could not alter her
9228 design; and their mother's concurrence being readily gained, every
9229 thing relative to their return was arranged as far as it could be;--and
9230 Marianne found some relief in drawing up a statement of the hours that
9231 were yet to divide her from Barton.
9232
9233 "Ah! Colonel, I do not know what you and I shall do without the Miss
9234 Dashwoods;"--was Mrs. Jennings's address to him when he first called on
9235 her, after their leaving her was settled--"for they are quite resolved
9236 upon going home from the Palmers;--and how forlorn we shall be, when I
9237 come back!--Lord! we shall sit and gape at one another as dull as two
9238 cats."
9239
9240 Perhaps Mrs. Jennings was in hopes, by this vigorous sketch of their
9241 future ennui, to provoke him to make that offer, which might give
9242 himself an escape from it;--and if so, she had soon afterwards good
9243 reason to think her object gained; for, on Elinor's moving to the
9244 window to take more expeditiously the dimensions of a print, which she
9245 was going to copy for her friend, he followed her to it with a look of
9246 particular meaning, and conversed with her there for several minutes.
9247 The effect of his discourse on the lady too, could not escape her
9248 observation, for though she was too honorable to listen, and had even
9249 changed her seat, on purpose that she might NOT hear, to one close by
9250 the piano forte on which Marianne was playing, she could not keep
9251 herself from seeing that Elinor changed colour, attended with
9252 agitation, and was too intent on what he said to pursue her
9253 employment.-- Still farther in confirmation of her hopes, in the
9254 interval of Marianne's turning from one lesson to another, some words
9255 of the Colonel's inevitably reached her ear, in which he seemed to be
9256 apologising for the badness of his house. This set the matter beyond a
9257 doubt. She wondered, indeed, at his thinking it necessary to do so;
9258 but supposed it to be the proper etiquette. What Elinor said in reply
9259 she could not distinguish, but judged from the motion of her lips, that
9260 she did not think THAT any material objection;--and Mrs. Jennings
9261 commended her in her heart for being so honest. They then talked on
9262 for a few minutes longer without her catching a syllable, when another
9263 lucky stop in Marianne's performance brought her these words in the
9264 Colonel's calm voice,--
9265
9266 "I am afraid it cannot take place very soon."
9267
9268 Astonished and shocked at so unlover-like a speech, she was almost
9269 ready to cry out, "Lord! what should hinder it?"--but checking her
9270 desire, confined herself to this silent ejaculation.
9271
9272 "This is very strange!--sure he need not wait to be older."
9273
9274 This delay on the Colonel's side, however, did not seem to offend or
9275 mortify his fair companion in the least, for on their breaking up the
9276 conference soon afterwards, and moving different ways, Mrs. Jennings
9277 very plainly heard Elinor say, and with a voice which shewed her to
9278 feel what she said,
9279
9280 "I shall always think myself very much obliged to you."
9281
9282 Mrs. Jennings was delighted with her gratitude, and only wondered that
9283 after hearing such a sentence, the Colonel should be able to take leave
9284 of them, as he immediately did, with the utmost sang-froid, and go away
9285 without making her any reply!--She had not thought her old friend could
9286 have made so indifferent a suitor.
9287
9288 What had really passed between them was to this effect.
9289
9290 "I have heard," said he, with great compassion, "of the injustice your
9291 friend Mr. Ferrars has suffered from his family; for if I understand
9292 the matter right, he has been entirely cast off by them for persevering
9293 in his engagement with a very deserving young woman.-- Have I been
9294 rightly informed?--Is it so?--"
9295
9296 Elinor told him that it was.
9297
9298 "The cruelty, the impolitic cruelty,"--he replied, with great
9299 feeling,--"of dividing, or attempting to divide, two young people long
9300 attached to each other, is terrible.-- Mrs. Ferrars does not know what
9301 she may be doing--what she may drive her son to. I have seen Mr.
9302 Ferrars two or three times in Harley Street, and am much pleased with
9303 him. He is not a young man with whom one can be intimately acquainted
9304 in a short time, but I have seen enough of him to wish him well for his
9305 own sake, and as a friend of yours, I wish it still more. I understand
9306 that he intends to take orders. Will you be so good as to tell him
9307 that the living of Delaford, now just vacant, as I am informed by this
9308 day's post, is his, if he think it worth his acceptance--but THAT,
9309 perhaps, so unfortunately circumstanced as he is now, it may be
9310 nonsense to appear to doubt; I only wish it were more valuable.-- It
9311 is a rectory, but a small one; the late incumbent, I believe, did not
9312 make more than 200 L per annum, and though it is certainly capable of
9313 improvement, I fear, not to such an amount as to afford him a very
9314 comfortable income. Such as it is, however, my pleasure in presenting
9315 it to him, will be very great. Pray assure him of it."
9316
9317 Elinor's astonishment at this commission could hardly have been
9318 greater, had the Colonel been really making her an offer of his hand.
9319 The preferment, which only two days before she had considered as
9320 hopeless for Edward, was already provided to enable him to marry;--and
9321 SHE, of all people in the world, was fixed on to bestow it!--Her
9322 emotion was such as Mrs. Jennings had attributed to a very different
9323 cause;--but whatever minor feelings less pure, less pleasing, might
9324 have a share in that emotion, her esteem for the general benevolence,
9325 and her gratitude for the particular friendship, which together
9326 prompted Colonel Brandon to this act, were strongly felt, and warmly
9327 expressed. She thanked him for it with all her heart, spoke of
9328 Edward's principles and disposition with that praise which she knew
9329 them to deserve; and promised to undertake the commission with
9330 pleasure, if it were really his wish to put off so agreeable an office
9331 to another. But at the same time, she could not help thinking that no
9332 one could so well perform it as himself. It was an office in short,
9333 from which, unwilling to give Edward the pain of receiving an
9334 obligation from HER, she would have been very glad to be spared
9335 herself;-- but Colonel Brandon, on motives of equal delicacy, declining
9336 it likewise, still seemed so desirous of its being given through her
9337 means, that she would not on any account make farther opposition.
9338 Edward, she believed, was still in town, and fortunately she had heard
9339 his address from Miss Steele. She could undertake therefore to inform
9340 him of it, in the course of the day. After this had been settled,
9341 Colonel Brandon began to talk of his own advantage in securing so
9342 respectable and agreeable a neighbour, and THEN it was that he
9343 mentioned with regret, that the house was small and indifferent;--an
9344 evil which Elinor, as Mrs. Jennings had supposed her to do, made very
9345 light of, at least as far as regarded its size.
9346
9347 "The smallness of the house," said she, "I cannot imagine any
9348 inconvenience to them, for it will be in proportion to their family and
9349 income."
9350
9351 By which the Colonel was surprised to find that SHE was considering Mr.
9352 Ferrars's marriage as the certain consequence of the presentation; for
9353 he did not suppose it possible that Delaford living could supply such
9354 an income, as anybody in his style of life would venture to settle
9355 on--and he said so.
9356
9357 "This little rectory CAN do no more than make Mr. Ferrars comfortable
9358 as a bachelor; it cannot enable him to marry. I am sorry to say that
9359 my patronage ends with this; and my interest is hardly more extensive.
9360 If, however, by an unforeseen chance it should be in my power to serve
9361 him farther, I must think very differently of him from what I now do,
9362 if I am not as ready to be useful to him then as I sincerely wish I
9363 could be at present. What I am now doing indeed, seems nothing at all,
9364 since it can advance him so little towards what must be his principal,
9365 his only object of happiness. His marriage must still be a distant
9366 good;--at least, I am afraid it cannot take place very soon.--"
9367
9368 Such was the sentence which, when misunderstood, so justly offended the
9369 delicate feelings of Mrs. Jennings; but after this narration of what
9370 really passed between Colonel Brandon and Elinor, while they stood at
9371 the window, the gratitude expressed by the latter on their parting, may
9372 perhaps appear in general, not less reasonably excited, nor less
9373 properly worded than if it had arisen from an offer of marriage.
9374
9375
9376
9377 CHAPTER 40
9378
9379
9380 "Well, Miss Dashwood," said Mrs. Jennings, sagaciously smiling, as soon
9381 as the gentleman had withdrawn, "I do not ask you what the Colonel has
9382 been saying to you; for though, upon my honour, I TRIED to keep out of
9383 hearing, I could not help catching enough to understand his business.
9384 And I assure you I never was better pleased in my life, and I wish you
9385 joy of it with all my heart."
9386
9387 "Thank you, ma'am," said Elinor. "It is a matter of great joy to me;
9388 and I feel the goodness of Colonel Brandon most sensibly. There are
9389 not many men who would act as he has done. Few people who have so
9390 compassionate a heart! I never was more astonished in my life."
9391
9392 "Lord! my dear, you are very modest. I an't the least astonished at it
9393 in the world, for I have often thought of late, there was nothing more
9394 likely to happen."
9395
9396 "You judged from your knowledge of the Colonel's general benevolence;
9397 but at least you could not foresee that the opportunity would so very
9398 soon occur."
9399
9400 "Opportunity!" repeated Mrs. Jennings--"Oh! as to that, when a man has
9401 once made up his mind to such a thing, somehow or other he will soon
9402 find an opportunity. Well, my dear, I wish you joy of it again and
9403 again; and if ever there was a happy couple in the world, I think I
9404 shall soon know where to look for them."
9405
9406 "You mean to go to Delaford after them I suppose," said Elinor, with a
9407 faint smile.
9408
9409 "Aye, my dear, that I do, indeed. And as to the house being a bad one,
9410 I do not know what the Colonel would be at, for it is as good a one as
9411 ever I saw."
9412
9413 "He spoke of its being out of repair."
9414
9415 "Well, and whose fault is that? why don't he repair it?--who should do
9416 it but himself?"
9417
9418 They were interrupted by the servant's coming in to announce the
9419 carriage being at the door; and Mrs. Jennings immediately preparing to
9420 go, said,--
9421
9422 "Well, my dear, I must be gone before I have had half my talk out.
9423 But, however, we may have it all over in the evening; for we shall be
9424 quite alone. I do not ask you to go with me, for I dare say your mind
9425 is too full of the matter to care for company; and besides, you must
9426 long to tell your sister all about it."
9427
9428 Marianne had left the room before the conversation began.
9429
9430 "Certainly, ma'am, I shall tell Marianne of it; but I shall not mention
9431 it at present to any body else."
9432
9433 "Oh! very well," said Mrs. Jennings rather disappointed. "Then you
9434 would not have me tell it to Lucy, for I think of going as far as
9435 Holborn to-day."
9436
9437 "No, ma'am, not even Lucy if you please. One day's delay will not be
9438 very material; and till I have written to Mr. Ferrars, I think it ought
9439 not to be mentioned to any body else. I shall do THAT directly. It is
9440 of importance that no time should be lost with him, for he will of
9441 course have much to do relative to his ordination."
9442
9443 This speech at first puzzled Mrs. Jennings exceedingly. Why Mr.
9444 Ferrars was to have been written to about it in such a hurry, she could
9445 not immediately comprehend. A few moments' reflection, however,
9446 produced a very happy idea, and she exclaimed;--
9447
9448 "Oh, ho!--I understand you. Mr. Ferrars is to be the man. Well, so
9449 much the better for him. Ay, to be sure, he must be ordained in
9450 readiness; and I am very glad to find things are so forward between
9451 you. But, my dear, is not this rather out of character? Should not
9452 the Colonel write himself?--sure, he is the proper person."
9453
9454 Elinor did not quite understand the beginning of Mrs. Jennings's
9455 speech, neither did she think it worth inquiring into; and therefore
9456 only replied to its conclusion.
9457
9458 "Colonel Brandon is so delicate a man, that he rather wished any one to
9459 announce his intentions to Mr. Ferrars than himself."
9460
9461 "And so YOU are forced to do it. Well THAT is an odd kind of delicacy!
9462 However, I will not disturb you (seeing her preparing to write.) You
9463 know your own concerns best. So goodby, my dear. I have not heard of
9464 any thing to please me so well since Charlotte was brought to bed."
9465
9466 And away she went; but returning again in a moment,
9467
9468 "I have just been thinking of Betty's sister, my dear. I should be
9469 very glad to get her so good a mistress. But whether she would do for
9470 a lady's maid, I am sure I can't tell. She is an excellent housemaid,
9471 and works very well at her needle. However, you will think of all that
9472 at your leisure."
9473
9474 "Certainly, ma'am," replied Elinor, not hearing much of what she said,
9475 and more anxious to be alone, than to be mistress of the subject.
9476
9477 How she should begin--how she should express herself in her note to
9478 Edward, was now all her concern. The particular circumstances between
9479 them made a difficulty of that which to any other person would have
9480 been the easiest thing in the world; but she equally feared to say too
9481 much or too little, and sat deliberating over her paper, with the pen
9482 in her hand, till broken in on by the entrance of Edward himself.
9483
9484 He had met Mrs. Jennings at the door in her way to the carriage, as he
9485 came to leave his farewell card; and she, after apologising for not
9486 returning herself, had obliged him to enter, by saying that Miss
9487 Dashwood was above, and wanted to speak with him on very particular
9488 business.
9489
9490 Elinor had just been congratulating herself, in the midst of her
9491 perplexity, that however difficult it might be to express herself
9492 properly by letter, it was at least preferable to giving the
9493 information by word of mouth, when her visitor entered, to force her
9494 upon this greatest exertion of all. Her astonishment and confusion
9495 were very great on his so sudden appearance. She had not seen him
9496 before since his engagement became public, and therefore not since his
9497 knowing her to be acquainted with it; which, with the consciousness of
9498 what she had been thinking of, and what she had to tell him, made her
9499 feel particularly uncomfortable for some minutes. He too was much
9500 distressed; and they sat down together in a most promising state of
9501 embarrassment.--Whether he had asked her pardon for his intrusion on
9502 first coming into the room, he could not recollect; but determining to
9503 be on the safe side, he made his apology in form as soon as he could
9504 say any thing, after taking a chair.
9505
9506 "Mrs. Jennings told me," said he, "that you wished to speak with me, at
9507 least I understood her so--or I certainly should not have intruded on
9508 you in such a manner; though at the same time, I should have been
9509 extremely sorry to leave London without seeing you and your sister;
9510 especially as it will most likely be some time--it is not probable that
9511 I should soon have the pleasure of meeting you again. I go to Oxford
9512 tomorrow."
9513
9514 "You would not have gone, however," said Elinor, recovering herself,
9515 and determined to get over what she so much dreaded as soon as
9516 possible, "without receiving our good wishes, even if we had not been
9517 able to give them in person. Mrs. Jennings was quite right in what she
9518 said. I have something of consequence to inform you of, which I was on
9519 the point of communicating by paper. I am charged with a most
9520 agreeable office (breathing rather faster than usual as she spoke.)
9521 Colonel Brandon, who was here only ten minutes ago, has desired me to
9522 say, that understanding you mean to take orders, he has great pleasure
9523 in offering you the living of Delaford now just vacant, and only wishes
9524 it were more valuable. Allow me to congratulate you on having so
9525 respectable and well-judging a friend, and to join in his wish that the
9526 living--it is about two hundred a-year--were much more considerable,
9527 and such as might better enable you to--as might be more than a
9528 temporary accommodation to yourself--such, in short, as might establish
9529 all your views of happiness."
9530
9531 What Edward felt, as he could not say it himself, it cannot be expected
9532 that any one else should say for him. He LOOKED all the astonishment
9533 which such unexpected, such unthought-of information could not fail of
9534 exciting; but he said only these two words,
9535
9536 "Colonel Brandon!"
9537
9538 "Yes," continued Elinor, gathering more resolution, as some of the
9539 worst was over, "Colonel Brandon means it as a testimony of his concern
9540 for what has lately passed--for the cruel situation in which the
9541 unjustifiable conduct of your family has placed you--a concern which I
9542 am sure Marianne, myself, and all your friends, must share; and
9543 likewise as a proof of his high esteem for your general character, and
9544 his particular approbation of your behaviour on the present occasion."
9545
9546 "Colonel Brandon give ME a living!--Can it be possible?"
9547
9548 "The unkindness of your own relations has made you astonished to find
9549 friendship any where."
9550
9551 "No," replied he, with sudden consciousness, "not to find it in YOU;
9552 for I cannot be ignorant that to you, to your goodness, I owe it
9553 all.--I feel it--I would express it if I could--but, as you well know,
9554 I am no orator."
9555
9556 "You are very much mistaken. I do assure you that you owe it entirely,
9557 at least almost entirely, to your own merit, and Colonel Brandon's
9558 discernment of it. I have had no hand in it. I did not even know,
9559 till I understood his design, that the living was vacant; nor had it
9560 ever occurred to me that he might have had such a living in his gift.
9561 As a friend of mine, of my family, he may, perhaps--indeed I know he
9562 HAS, still greater pleasure in bestowing it; but, upon my word, you owe
9563 nothing to my solicitation."
9564
9565 Truth obliged her to acknowledge some small share in the action, but
9566 she was at the same time so unwilling to appear as the benefactress of
9567 Edward, that she acknowledged it with hesitation; which probably
9568 contributed to fix that suspicion in his mind which had recently
9569 entered it. For a short time he sat deep in thought, after Elinor had
9570 ceased to speak;--at last, and as if it were rather an effort, he said,
9571
9572 "Colonel Brandon seems a man of great worth and respectability. I have
9573 always heard him spoken of as such, and your brother I know esteems him
9574 highly. He is undoubtedly a sensible man, and in his manners perfectly
9575 the gentleman."
9576
9577 "Indeed," replied Elinor, "I believe that you will find him, on farther
9578 acquaintance, all that you have heard him to be, and as you will be
9579 such very near neighbours (for I understand the parsonage is almost
9580 close to the mansion-house,) it is particularly important that he
9581 SHOULD be all this."
9582
9583 Edward made no answer; but when she had turned away her head, gave her
9584 a look so serious, so earnest, so uncheerful, as seemed to say, that he
9585 might hereafter wish the distance between the parsonage and the
9586 mansion-house much greater.
9587
9588 "Colonel Brandon, I think, lodges in St. James Street," said he, soon
9589 afterwards, rising from his chair.
9590
9591 Elinor told him the number of the house.
9592
9593 "I must hurry away then, to give him those thanks which you will not
9594 allow me to give YOU; to assure him that he has made me a very--an
9595 exceedingly happy man."
9596
9597 Elinor did not offer to detain him; and they parted, with a very
9598 earnest assurance on HER side of her unceasing good wishes for his
9599 happiness in every change of situation that might befall him; on HIS,
9600 with rather an attempt to return the same good will, than the power of
9601 expressing it.
9602
9603 "When I see him again," said Elinor to herself, as the door shut him
9604 out, "I shall see him the husband of Lucy."
9605
9606 And with this pleasing anticipation, she sat down to reconsider the
9607 past, recall the words and endeavour to comprehend all the feelings of
9608 Edward; and, of course, to reflect on her own with discontent.
9609
9610 When Mrs. Jennings came home, though she returned from seeing people
9611 whom she had never seen before, and of whom therefore she must have a
9612 great deal to say, her mind was so much more occupied by the important
9613 secret in her possession, than by anything else, that she reverted to
9614 it again as soon as Elinor appeared.
9615
9616 "Well, my dear," she cried, "I sent you up the young man. Did not I
9617 do right?--And I suppose you had no great difficulty--You did not find
9618 him very unwilling to accept your proposal?"
9619
9620 "No, ma'am; THAT was not very likely."
9621
9622 "Well, and how soon will he be ready?--For it seems all to depend upon
9623 that."
9624
9625 "Really," said Elinor, "I know so little of these kind of forms, that I
9626 can hardly even conjecture as to the time, or the preparation
9627 necessary; but I suppose two or three months will complete his
9628 ordination."
9629
9630 "Two or three months!" cried Mrs. Jennings; "Lord! my dear, how calmly
9631 you talk of it; and can the Colonel wait two or three months! Lord
9632 bless me!--I am sure it would put ME quite out of patience!--And though
9633 one would be very glad to do a kindness by poor Mr. Ferrars, I do think
9634 it is not worth while to wait two or three months for him. Sure
9635 somebody else might be found that would do as well; somebody that is in
9636 orders already."
9637
9638 "My dear ma'am," said Elinor, "what can you be thinking of?-- Why,
9639 Colonel Brandon's only object is to be of use to Mr. Ferrars."
9640
9641 "Lord bless you, my dear!--Sure you do not mean to persuade me that the
9642 Colonel only marries you for the sake of giving ten guineas to Mr.
9643 Ferrars!"
9644
9645 The deception could not continue after this; and an explanation
9646 immediately took place, by which both gained considerable amusement for
9647 the moment, without any material loss of happiness to either, for Mrs.
9648 Jennings only exchanged one form of delight for another, and still
9649 without forfeiting her expectation of the first.
9650
9651 "Aye, aye, the parsonage is but a small one," said she, after the first
9652 ebullition of surprise and satisfaction was over, "and very likely MAY
9653 be out of repair; but to hear a man apologising, as I thought, for a
9654 house that to my knowledge has five sitting rooms on the ground-floor,
9655 and I think the housekeeper told me could make up fifteen beds!--and to
9656 you too, that had been used to live in Barton cottage!-- It seems quite
9657 ridiculous. But, my dear, we must touch up the Colonel to do some
9658 thing to the parsonage, and make it comfortable for them, before Lucy
9659 goes to it."
9660
9661 "But Colonel Brandon does not seem to have any idea of the living's
9662 being enough to allow them to marry."
9663
9664 "The Colonel is a ninny, my dear; because he has two thousand a-year
9665 himself, he thinks that nobody else can marry on less. Take my word
9666 for it, that, if I am alive, I shall be paying a visit at Delaford
9667 Parsonage before Michaelmas; and I am sure I shan't go if Lucy an't
9668 there."
9669
9670 Elinor was quite of her opinion, as to the probability of their not
9671 waiting for any thing more.
9672
9673
9674
9675 CHAPTER 41
9676
9677
9678 Edward, having carried his thanks to Colonel Brandon, proceeded with
9679 his happiness to Lucy; and such was the excess of it by the time he
9680 reached Bartlett's Buildings, that she was able to assure Mrs.
9681 Jennings, who called on her again the next day with her
9682 congratulations, that she had never seen him in such spirits before in
9683 her life.
9684
9685 Her own happiness, and her own spirits, were at least very certain; and
9686 she joined Mrs. Jennings most heartily in her expectation of their
9687 being all comfortably together in Delaford Parsonage before Michaelmas.
9688 So far was she, at the same time, from any backwardness to give Elinor
9689 that credit which Edward WOULD give her, that she spoke of her
9690 friendship for them both with the most grateful warmth, was ready to
9691 own all their obligation to her, and openly declared that no exertion
9692 for their good on Miss Dashwood's part, either present or future, would
9693 ever surprise her, for she believed her capable of doing any thing in
9694 the world for those she really valued. As for Colonel Brandon, she was
9695 not only ready to worship him as a saint, but was moreover truly
9696 anxious that he should be treated as one in all worldly concerns;
9697 anxious that his tithes should be raised to the utmost; and scarcely
9698 resolved to avail herself, at Delaford, as far as she possibly could,
9699 of his servants, his carriage, his cows, and his poultry.
9700
9701 It was now above a week since John Dashwood had called in Berkeley
9702 Street, and as since that time no notice had been taken by them of his
9703 wife's indisposition, beyond one verbal enquiry, Elinor began to feel
9704 it necessary to pay her a visit.--This was an obligation, however,
9705 which not only opposed her own inclination, but which had not the
9706 assistance of any encouragement from her companions. Marianne, not
9707 contented with absolutely refusing to go herself, was very urgent to
9708 prevent her sister's going at all; and Mrs. Jennings, though her
9709 carriage was always at Elinor's service, so very much disliked Mrs.
9710 John Dashwood, that not even her curiosity to see how she looked after
9711 the late discovery, nor her strong desire to affront her by taking
9712 Edward's part, could overcome her unwillingness to be in her company
9713 again. The consequence was, that Elinor set out by herself to pay a
9714 visit, for which no one could really have less inclination, and to run
9715 the risk of a tete-a-tete with a woman, whom neither of the others had
9716 so much reason to dislike.
9717
9718 Mrs. Dashwood was denied; but before the carriage could turn from the
9719 house, her husband accidentally came out. He expressed great pleasure
9720 in meeting Elinor, told her that he had been just going to call in
9721 Berkeley Street, and, assuring her that Fanny would be very glad to see
9722 her, invited her to come in.
9723
9724 They walked up stairs in to the drawing-room.--Nobody was there.
9725
9726 "Fanny is in her own room, I suppose," said he:--"I will go to her
9727 presently, for I am sure she will not have the least objection in the
9728 world to seeing YOU.-- Very far from it, indeed. NOW especially there
9729 cannot be--but however, you and Marianne were always great
9730 favourites.--Why would not Marianne come?"--
9731
9732 Elinor made what excuse she could for her.
9733
9734 "I am not sorry to see you alone," he replied, "for I have a good deal
9735 to say to you. This living of Colonel Brandon's--can it be true?--has
9736 he really given it to Edward?--I heard it yesterday by chance, and was
9737 coming to you on purpose to enquire farther about it."
9738
9739 "It is perfectly true.--Colonel Brandon has given the living of
9740 Delaford to Edward."
9741
9742 "Really!--Well, this is very astonishing!--no relationship!--no
9743 connection between them!--and now that livings fetch such a
9744 price!--what was the value of this?"
9745
9746 "About two hundred a year."
9747
9748 "Very well--and for the next presentation to a living of that
9749 value--supposing the late incumbent to have been old and sickly, and
9750 likely to vacate it soon--he might have got I dare say--fourteen
9751 hundred pounds. And how came he not to have settled that matter before
9752 this person's death?--NOW indeed it would be too late to sell it, but a
9753 man of Colonel Brandon's sense!--I wonder he should be so improvident
9754 in a point of such common, such natural, concern!--Well, I am convinced
9755 that there is a vast deal of inconsistency in almost every human
9756 character. I suppose, however--on recollection--that the case may
9757 probably be THIS. Edward is only to hold the living till the person to
9758 whom the Colonel has really sold the presentation, is old enough to
9759 take it.--Aye, aye, that is the fact, depend upon it."
9760
9761 Elinor contradicted it, however, very positively; and by relating that
9762 she had herself been employed in conveying the offer from Colonel
9763 Brandon to Edward, and, therefore, must understand the terms on which
9764 it was given, obliged him to submit to her authority.
9765
9766 "It is truly astonishing!"--he cried, after hearing what she
9767 said--"what could be the Colonel's motive?"
9768
9769 "A very simple one--to be of use to Mr. Ferrars."
9770
9771 "Well, well; whatever Colonel Brandon may be, Edward is a very lucky
9772 man.--You will not mention the matter to Fanny, however, for though I
9773 have broke it to her, and she bears it vastly well,--she will not like
9774 to hear it much talked of."
9775
9776 Elinor had some difficulty here to refrain from observing, that she
9777 thought Fanny might have borne with composure, an acquisition of wealth
9778 to her brother, by which neither she nor her child could be possibly
9779 impoverished.
9780
9781 "Mrs. Ferrars," added he, lowering his voice to the tone becoming so
9782 important a subject, "knows nothing about it at present, and I believe
9783 it will be best to keep it entirely concealed from her as long as may
9784 be.-- When the marriage takes place, I fear she must hear of it all."
9785
9786 "But why should such precaution be used?--Though it is not to be
9787 supposed that Mrs. Ferrars can have the smallest satisfaction in
9788 knowing that her son has money enough to live upon,--for THAT must be
9789 quite out of the question; yet why, upon her late behaviour, is she
9790 supposed to feel at all?--She has done with her son, she cast him off
9791 for ever, and has made all those over whom she had any influence, cast
9792 him off likewise. Surely, after doing so, she cannot be imagined
9793 liable to any impression of sorrow or of joy on his account--she cannot
9794 be interested in any thing that befalls him.-- She would not be so weak
9795 as to throw away the comfort of a child, and yet retain the anxiety of
9796 a parent!"
9797
9798 "Ah! Elinor," said John, "your reasoning is very good, but it is
9799 founded on ignorance of human nature. When Edward's unhappy match
9800 takes place, depend upon it his mother will feel as much as if she had
9801 never discarded him; and, therefore every circumstance that may
9802 accelerate that dreadful event, must be concealed from her as much as
9803 possible. Mrs. Ferrars can never forget that Edward is her son."
9804
9805 "You surprise me; I should think it must nearly have escaped her memory
9806 by THIS time."
9807
9808 "You wrong her exceedingly. Mrs. Ferrars is one of the most
9809 affectionate mothers in the world."
9810
9811 Elinor was silent.
9812
9813 "We think NOW,"--said Mr. Dashwood, after a short pause, "of ROBERT'S
9814 marrying Miss Morton."
9815
9816 Elinor, smiling at the grave and decisive importance of her brother's
9817 tone, calmly replied,
9818
9819 "The lady, I suppose, has no choice in the affair."
9820
9821 "Choice!--how do you mean?"
9822
9823 "I only mean that I suppose, from your manner of speaking, it must be
9824 the same to Miss Morton whether she marry Edward or Robert."
9825
9826 "Certainly, there can be no difference; for Robert will now to all
9827 intents and purposes be considered as the eldest son;--and as to any
9828 thing else, they are both very agreeable young men: I do not know that
9829 one is superior to the other."
9830
9831 Elinor said no more, and John was also for a short time silent.--His
9832 reflections ended thus.
9833
9834 "Of ONE thing, my dear sister," kindly taking her hand, and speaking in
9835 an awful whisper,--"I may assure you;--and I WILL do it, because I know
9836 it must gratify you. I have good reason to think--indeed I have it
9837 from the best authority, or I should not repeat it, for otherwise it
9838 would be very wrong to say any thing about it--but I have it from the
9839 very best authority--not that I ever precisely heard Mrs. Ferrars say
9840 it herself--but her daughter DID, and I have it from her--That in
9841 short, whatever objections there might be against a certain--a certain
9842 connection--you understand me--it would have been far preferable to
9843 her, it would not have given her half the vexation that THIS does. I
9844 was exceedingly pleased to hear that Mrs. Ferrars considered it in that
9845 light--a very gratifying circumstance you know to us all. 'It would
9846 have been beyond comparison,' she said, 'the least evil of the two, and
9847 she would be glad to compound NOW for nothing worse.' But however, all
9848 that is quite out of the question--not to be thought of or
9849 mentioned--as to any attachment you know--it never could be--all that
9850 is gone by. But I thought I would just tell you of this, because I
9851 knew how much it must please you. Not that you have any reason to
9852 regret, my dear Elinor. There is no doubt of your doing exceedingly
9853 well--quite as well, or better, perhaps, all things considered. Has
9854 Colonel Brandon been with you lately?"
9855
9856 Elinor had heard enough, if not to gratify her vanity, and raise her
9857 self-importance, to agitate her nerves and fill her mind;--and she was
9858 therefore glad to be spared from the necessity of saying much in reply
9859 herself, and from the danger of hearing any thing more from her
9860 brother, by the entrance of Mr. Robert Ferrars. After a few moments'
9861 chat, John Dashwood, recollecting that Fanny was yet uninformed of her
9862 sister's being there, quitted the room in quest of her; and Elinor was
9863 left to improve her acquaintance with Robert, who, by the gay
9864 unconcern, the happy self-complacency of his manner while enjoying so
9865 unfair a division of his mother's love and liberality, to the prejudice
9866 of his banished brother, earned only by his own dissipated course of
9867 life, and that brother's integrity, was confirming her most
9868 unfavourable opinion of his head and heart.
9869
9870 They had scarcely been two minutes by themselves, before he began to
9871 speak of Edward; for he, too, had heard of the living, and was very
9872 inquisitive on the subject. Elinor repeated the particulars of it, as
9873 she had given them to John; and their effect on Robert, though very
9874 different, was not less striking than it had been on HIM. He laughed
9875 most immoderately. The idea of Edward's being a clergyman, and living
9876 in a small parsonage-house, diverted him beyond measure;--and when to
9877 that was added the fanciful imagery of Edward reading prayers in a
9878 white surplice, and publishing the banns of marriage between John Smith
9879 and Mary Brown, he could conceive nothing more ridiculous.
9880
9881 Elinor, while she waited in silence and immovable gravity, the
9882 conclusion of such folly, could not restrain her eyes from being fixed
9883 on him with a look that spoke all the contempt it excited. It was a
9884 look, however, very well bestowed, for it relieved her own feelings,
9885 and gave no intelligence to him. He was recalled from wit to wisdom,
9886 not by any reproof of hers, but by his own sensibility.
9887
9888 "We may treat it as a joke," said he, at last, recovering from the
9889 affected laugh which had considerably lengthened out the genuine gaiety
9890 of the moment--"but, upon my soul, it is a most serious business. Poor
9891 Edward! he is ruined for ever. I am extremely sorry for it--for I
9892 know him to be a very good-hearted creature; as well-meaning a fellow
9893 perhaps, as any in the world. You must not judge of him, Miss
9894 Dashwood, from YOUR slight acquaintance.--Poor Edward!--His manners are
9895 certainly not the happiest in nature.--But we are not all born, you
9896 know, with the same powers,--the same address.-- Poor fellow!--to see
9897 him in a circle of strangers!--to be sure it was pitiable enough!--but
9898 upon my soul, I believe he has as good a heart as any in the kingdom;
9899 and I declare and protest to you I never was so shocked in my life, as
9900 when it all burst forth. I could not believe it.-- My mother was the
9901 first person who told me of it; and I, feeling myself called on to act
9902 with resolution, immediately said to her, 'My dear madam, I do not know
9903 what you may intend to do on the occasion, but as for myself, I must
9904 say, that if Edward does marry this young woman, I never will see him
9905 again.' That was what I said immediately.-- I was most uncommonly
9906 shocked, indeed!--Poor Edward!--he has done for himself
9907 completely--shut himself out for ever from all decent society!--but, as
9908 I directly said to my mother, I am not in the least surprised at it;
9909 from his style of education, it was always to be expected. My poor
9910 mother was half frantic."
9911
9912 "Have you ever seen the lady?"
9913
9914 "Yes; once, while she was staying in this house, I happened to drop in
9915 for ten minutes; and I saw quite enough of her. The merest awkward
9916 country girl, without style, or elegance, and almost without beauty.--
9917 I remember her perfectly. Just the kind of girl I should suppose
9918 likely to captivate poor Edward. I offered immediately, as soon as my
9919 mother related the affair to me, to talk to him myself, and dissuade
9920 him from the match; but it was too late THEN, I found, to do any thing,
9921 for unluckily, I was not in the way at first, and knew nothing of it
9922 till after the breach had taken place, when it was not for me, you
9923 know, to interfere. But had I been informed of it a few hours
9924 earlier--I think it is most probable--that something might have been
9925 hit on. I certainly should have represented it to Edward in a very
9926 strong light. 'My dear fellow,' I should have said, 'consider what you
9927 are doing. You are making a most disgraceful connection, and such a
9928 one as your family are unanimous in disapproving.' I cannot help
9929 thinking, in short, that means might have been found. But now it is
9930 all too late. He must be starved, you know;--that is certain;
9931 absolutely starved."
9932
9933 He had just settled this point with great composure, when the entrance
9934 of Mrs. John Dashwood put an end to the subject. But though SHE never
9935 spoke of it out of her own family, Elinor could see its influence on
9936 her mind, in the something like confusion of countenance with which she
9937 entered, and an attempt at cordiality in her behaviour to herself. She
9938 even proceeded so far as to be concerned to find that Elinor and her
9939 sister were so soon to leave town, as she had hoped to see more of
9940 them;--an exertion in which her husband, who attended her into the
9941 room, and hung enamoured over her accents, seemed to distinguish every
9942 thing that was most affectionate and graceful.
9943
9944
9945
9946 CHAPTER 42
9947
9948
9949 One other short call in Harley Street, in which Elinor received her
9950 brother's congratulations on their travelling so far towards Barton
9951 without any expense, and on Colonel Brandon's being to follow them to
9952 Cleveland in a day or two, completed the intercourse of the brother and
9953 sisters in town;--and a faint invitation from Fanny, to come to Norland
9954 whenever it should happen to be in their way, which of all things was
9955 the most unlikely to occur, with a more warm, though less public,
9956 assurance, from John to Elinor, of the promptitude with which he should
9957 come to see her at Delaford, was all that foretold any meeting in the
9958 country.
9959
9960 It amused her to observe that all her friends seemed determined to send
9961 her to Delaford;--a place, in which, of all others, she would now least
9962 chuse to visit, or wish to reside; for not only was it considered as
9963 her future home by her brother and Mrs. Jennings, but even Lucy, when
9964 they parted, gave her a pressing invitation to visit her there.
9965
9966 Very early in April, and tolerably early in the day, the two parties
9967 from Hanover Square and Berkeley Street set out from their respective
9968 homes, to meet, by appointment, on the road. For the convenience of
9969 Charlotte and her child, they were to be more than two days on their
9970 journey, and Mr. Palmer, travelling more expeditiously with Colonel
9971 Brandon, was to join them at Cleveland soon after their arrival.
9972
9973 Marianne, few as had been her hours of comfort in London, and eager as
9974 she had long been to quit it, could not, when it came to the point, bid
9975 adieu to the house in which she had for the last time enjoyed those
9976 hopes, and that confidence, in Willoughby, which were now extinguished
9977 for ever, without great pain. Nor could she leave the place in which
9978 Willoughby remained, busy in new engagements, and new schemes, in which
9979 SHE could have no share, without shedding many tears.
9980
9981 Elinor's satisfaction, at the moment of removal, was more positive.
9982 She had no such object for her lingering thoughts to fix on, she left
9983 no creature behind, from whom it would give her a moment's regret to be
9984 divided for ever, she was pleased to be free herself from the
9985 persecution of Lucy's friendship, she was grateful for bringing her
9986 sister away unseen by Willoughby since his marriage, and she looked
9987 forward with hope to what a few months of tranquility at Barton might
9988 do towards restoring Marianne's peace of mind, and confirming her own.
9989
9990 Their journey was safely performed. The second day brought them into
9991 the cherished, or the prohibited, county of Somerset, for as such was
9992 it dwelt on by turns in Marianne's imagination; and in the forenoon of
9993 the third they drove up to Cleveland.
9994
9995 Cleveland was a spacious, modern-built house, situated on a sloping
9996 lawn. It had no park, but the pleasure-grounds were tolerably
9997 extensive; and like every other place of the same degree of importance,
9998 it had its open shrubbery, and closer wood walk, a road of smooth
9999 gravel winding round a plantation, led to the front, the lawn was
10000 dotted over with timber, the house itself was under the guardianship of
10001 the fir, the mountain-ash, and the acacia, and a thick screen of them
10002 altogether, interspersed with tall Lombardy poplars, shut out the
10003 offices.
10004
10005 Marianne entered the house with a heart swelling with emotion from the
10006 consciousness of being only eighty miles from Barton, and not thirty
10007 from Combe Magna; and before she had been five minutes within its
10008 walls, while the others were busily helping Charlotte to show her child
10009 to the housekeeper, she quitted it again, stealing away through the
10010 winding shrubberies, now just beginning to be in beauty, to gain a
10011 distant eminence; where, from its Grecian temple, her eye, wandering
10012 over a wide tract of country to the south-east, could fondly rest on
10013 the farthest ridge of hills in the horizon, and fancy that from their
10014 summits Combe Magna might be seen.
10015
10016 In such moments of precious, invaluable misery, she rejoiced in tears
10017 of agony to be at Cleveland; and as she returned by a different circuit
10018 to the house, feeling all the happy privilege of country liberty, of
10019 wandering from place to place in free and luxurious solitude, she
10020 resolved to spend almost every hour of every day while she remained
10021 with the Palmers, in the indulgence of such solitary rambles.
10022
10023 She returned just in time to join the others as they quitted the house,
10024 on an excursion through its more immediate premises; and the rest of
10025 the morning was easily whiled away, in lounging round the kitchen
10026 garden, examining the bloom upon its walls, and listening to the
10027 gardener's lamentations upon blights, in dawdling through the
10028 green-house, where the loss of her favourite plants, unwarily exposed,
10029 and nipped by the lingering frost, raised the laughter of
10030 Charlotte,--and in visiting her poultry-yard, where, in the
10031 disappointed hopes of her dairy-maid, by hens forsaking their nests, or
10032 being stolen by a fox, or in the rapid decrease of a promising young
10033 brood, she found fresh sources of merriment.
10034
10035 The morning was fine and dry, and Marianne, in her plan of employment
10036 abroad, had not calculated for any change of weather during their stay
10037 at Cleveland. With great surprise therefore, did she find herself
10038 prevented by a settled rain from going out again after dinner. She had
10039 depended on a twilight walk to the Grecian temple, and perhaps all over
10040 the grounds, and an evening merely cold or damp would not have deterred
10041 her from it; but a heavy and settled rain even SHE could not fancy dry
10042 or pleasant weather for walking.
10043
10044 Their party was small, and the hours passed quietly away. Mrs. Palmer
10045 had her child, and Mrs. Jennings her carpet-work; they talked of the
10046 friends they had left behind, arranged Lady Middleton's engagements,
10047 and wondered whether Mr. Palmer and Colonel Brandon would get farther
10048 than Reading that night. Elinor, however little concerned in it,
10049 joined in their discourse; and Marianne, who had the knack of finding
10050 her way in every house to the library, however it might be avoided by
10051 the family in general, soon procured herself a book.
10052
10053 Nothing was wanting on Mrs. Palmer's side that constant and friendly
10054 good humour could do, to make them feel themselves welcome. The
10055 openness and heartiness of her manner more than atoned for that want of
10056 recollection and elegance which made her often deficient in the forms
10057 of politeness; her kindness, recommended by so pretty a face, was
10058 engaging; her folly, though evident was not disgusting, because it was
10059 not conceited; and Elinor could have forgiven every thing but her laugh.
10060
10061 The two gentlemen arrived the next day to a very late dinner, affording
10062 a pleasant enlargement of the party, and a very welcome variety to
10063 their conversation, which a long morning of the same continued rain had
10064 reduced very low.
10065
10066 Elinor had seen so little of Mr. Palmer, and in that little had seen so
10067 much variety in his address to her sister and herself, that she knew
10068 not what to expect to find him in his own family. She found him,
10069 however, perfectly the gentleman in his behaviour to all his visitors,
10070 and only occasionally rude to his wife and her mother; she found him
10071 very capable of being a pleasant companion, and only prevented from
10072 being so always, by too great an aptitude to fancy himself as much
10073 superior to people in general, as he must feel himself to be to Mrs.
10074 Jennings and Charlotte. For the rest of his character and habits, they
10075 were marked, as far as Elinor could perceive, with no traits at all
10076 unusual in his sex and time of life. He was nice in his eating,
10077 uncertain in his hours; fond of his child, though affecting to slight
10078 it; and idled away the mornings at billiards, which ought to have been
10079 devoted to business. She liked him, however, upon the whole, much
10080 better than she had expected, and in her heart was not sorry that she
10081 could like him no more;--not sorry to be driven by the observation of
10082 his Epicurism, his selfishness, and his conceit, to rest with
10083 complacency on the remembrance of Edward's generous temper, simple
10084 taste, and diffident feelings.
10085
10086 Of Edward, or at least of some of his concerns, she now received
10087 intelligence from Colonel Brandon, who had been into Dorsetshire
10088 lately; and who, treating her at once as the disinterested friend of
10089 Mr. Ferrars, and the kind confidante of himself, talked to her a
10090 great deal of the parsonage at Delaford, described its deficiencies,
10091 and told her what he meant to do himself towards removing them.--His
10092 behaviour to her in this, as well as in every other particular, his
10093 open pleasure in meeting her after an absence of only ten days, his
10094 readiness to converse with her, and his deference for her opinion,
10095 might very well justify Mrs. Jennings's persuasion of his attachment,
10096 and would have been enough, perhaps, had not Elinor still, as from the
10097 first, believed Marianne his real favourite, to make her suspect it
10098 herself. But as it was, such a notion had scarcely ever entered her
10099 head, except by Mrs. Jennings's suggestion; and she could not help
10100 believing herself the nicest observer of the two;--she watched his
10101 eyes, while Mrs. Jennings thought only of his behaviour;--and while his
10102 looks of anxious solicitude on Marianne's feeling, in her head and
10103 throat, the beginning of a heavy cold, because unexpressed by words,
10104 entirely escaped the latter lady's observation;--SHE could discover in
10105 them the quick feelings, and needless alarm of a lover.
10106
10107 Two delightful twilight walks on the third and fourth evenings of her
10108 being there, not merely on the dry gravel of the shrubbery, but all
10109 over the grounds, and especially in the most distant parts of them,
10110 where there was something more of wildness than in the rest, where the
10111 trees were the oldest, and the grass was the longest and wettest,
10112 had--assisted by the still greater imprudence of sitting in her wet
10113 shoes and stockings--given Marianne a cold so violent as, though for a
10114 day or two trifled with or denied, would force itself by increasing
10115 ailments on the concern of every body, and the notice of herself.
10116 Prescriptions poured in from all quarters, and as usual, were all
10117 declined. Though heavy and feverish, with a pain in her limbs, and a
10118 cough, and a sore throat, a good night's rest was to cure her entirely;
10119 and it was with difficulty that Elinor prevailed on her, when she went
10120 to bed, to try one or two of the simplest of the remedies.
10121
10122
10123
10124 CHAPTER 43
10125
10126
10127 Marianne got up the next morning at her usual time; to every inquiry
10128 replied that she was better, and tried to prove herself so, by engaging
10129 in her accustomary employments. But a day spent in sitting shivering
10130 over the fire with a book in her hand, which she was unable to read, or
10131 in lying, weary and languid, on a sofa, did not speak much in favour of
10132 her amendment; and when, at last, she went early to bed, more and more
10133 indisposed, Colonel Brandon was only astonished at her sister's
10134 composure, who, though attending and nursing her the whole day, against
10135 Marianne's inclination, and forcing proper medicines on her at night,
10136 trusted, like Marianne, to the certainty and efficacy of sleep, and
10137 felt no real alarm.
10138
10139 A very restless and feverish night, however, disappointed the
10140 expectation of both; and when Marianne, after persisting in rising,
10141 confessed herself unable to sit up, and returned voluntarily to her
10142 bed, Elinor was very ready to adopt Mrs. Jennings's advice, of sending
10143 for the Palmers' apothecary.
10144
10145 He came, examined his patient, and though encouraging Miss Dashwood to
10146 expect that a very few days would restore her sister to health, yet, by
10147 pronouncing her disorder to have a putrid tendency, and allowing the
10148 word "infection" to pass his lips, gave instant alarm to Mrs. Palmer,
10149 on her baby's account. Mrs. Jennings, who had been inclined from the
10150 first to think Marianne's complaint more serious than Elinor, now
10151 looked very grave on Mr. Harris's report, and confirming Charlotte's
10152 fears and caution, urged the necessity of her immediate removal with
10153 her infant; and Mr. Palmer, though treating their apprehensions as
10154 idle, found the anxiety and importunity of his wife too great to be
10155 withstood. Her departure, therefore, was fixed on; and within an hour
10156 after Mr. Harris's arrival, she set off, with her little boy and his
10157 nurse, for the house of a near relation of Mr. Palmer's, who lived a
10158 few miles on the other side of Bath; whither her husband promised, at
10159 her earnest entreaty, to join her in a day or two; and whither she was
10160 almost equally urgent with her mother to accompany her. Mrs. Jennings,
10161 however, with a kindness of heart which made Elinor really love her,
10162 declared her resolution of not stirring from Cleveland as long as
10163 Marianne remained ill, and of endeavouring, by her own attentive care,
10164 to supply to her the place of the mother she had taken her from; and
10165 Elinor found her on every occasion a most willing and active helpmate,
10166 desirous to share in all her fatigues, and often by her better
10167 experience in nursing, of material use.
10168
10169 Poor Marianne, languid and low from the nature of her malady, and
10170 feeling herself universally ill, could no longer hope that tomorrow
10171 would find her recovered; and the idea of what tomorrow would have
10172 produced, but for this unlucky illness, made every ailment severe; for
10173 on that day they were to have begun their journey home; and, attended
10174 the whole way by a servant of Mrs. Jennings, were to have taken their
10175 mother by surprise on the following forenoon. The little she said was
10176 all in lamentation of this inevitable delay; though Elinor tried to
10177 raise her spirits, and make her believe, as she THEN really believed
10178 herself, that it would be a very short one.
10179
10180 The next day produced little or no alteration in the state of the
10181 patient; she certainly was not better, and, except that there was no
10182 amendment, did not appear worse. Their party was now farther reduced;
10183 for Mr. Palmer, though very unwilling to go as well from real humanity
10184 and good-nature, as from a dislike of appearing to be frightened away
10185 by his wife, was persuaded at last by Colonel Brandon to perform his
10186 promise of following her; and while he was preparing to go, Colonel
10187 Brandon himself, with a much greater exertion, began to talk of going
10188 likewise.--Here, however, the kindness of Mrs. Jennings interposed most
10189 acceptably; for to send the Colonel away while his love was in so much
10190 uneasiness on her sister's account, would be to deprive them both, she
10191 thought, of every comfort; and therefore telling him at once that his
10192 stay at Cleveland was necessary to herself, that she should want him to
10193 play at piquet of an evening, while Miss Dashwood was above with her
10194 sister, &c. she urged him so strongly to remain, that he, who was
10195 gratifying the first wish of his own heart by a compliance, could not
10196 long even affect to demur; especially as Mrs. Jennings's entreaty was
10197 warmly seconded by Mr. Palmer, who seemed to feel a relief to himself,
10198 in leaving behind him a person so well able to assist or advise Miss
10199 Dashwood in any emergence.
10200
10201 Marianne was, of course, kept in ignorance of all these arrangements.
10202 She knew not that she had been the means of sending the owners of
10203 Cleveland away, in about seven days from the time of their arrival. It
10204 gave her no surprise that she saw nothing of Mrs. Palmer; and as it
10205 gave her likewise no concern, she never mentioned her name.
10206
10207 Two days passed away from the time of Mr. Palmer's departure, and her
10208 situation continued, with little variation, the same. Mr. Harris, who
10209 attended her every day, still talked boldly of a speedy recovery, and
10210 Miss Dashwood was equally sanguine; but the expectation of the others
10211 was by no means so cheerful. Mrs. Jennings had determined very early
10212 in the seizure that Marianne would never get over it, and Colonel
10213 Brandon, who was chiefly of use in listening to Mrs. Jennings's
10214 forebodings, was not in a state of mind to resist their influence. He
10215 tried to reason himself out of fears, which the different judgment of
10216 the apothecary seemed to render absurd; but the many hours of each day
10217 in which he was left entirely alone, were but too favourable for the
10218 admission of every melancholy idea, and he could not expel from his
10219 mind the persuasion that he should see Marianne no more.
10220
10221 On the morning of the third day however, the gloomy anticipations of
10222 both were almost done away; for when Mr. Harris arrived, he declared
10223 his patient materially better. Her pulse was much stronger, and every
10224 symptom more favourable than on the preceding visit. Elinor, confirmed
10225 in every pleasant hope, was all cheerfulness; rejoicing that in her
10226 letters to her mother, she had pursued her own judgment rather than her
10227 friend's, in making very light of the indisposition which delayed them
10228 at Cleveland; and almost fixing on the time when Marianne would be able
10229 to travel.
10230
10231 But the day did not close so auspiciously as it began.-- Towards the
10232 evening Marianne became ill again, growing more heavy, restless, and
10233 uncomfortable than before. Her sister, however, still sanguine, was
10234 willing to attribute the change to nothing more than the fatigue of
10235 having sat up to have her bed made; and carefully administering the
10236 cordials prescribed, saw her, with satisfaction, sink at last into a
10237 slumber, from which she expected the most beneficial effects. Her
10238 sleep, though not so quiet as Elinor wished to see it, lasted a
10239 considerable time; and anxious to observe the result of it herself, she
10240 resolved to sit with her during the whole of it. Mrs. Jennings,
10241 knowing nothing of any change in the patient, went unusually early to
10242 bed; her maid, who was one of the principal nurses, was recreating
10243 herself in the housekeeper's room, and Elinor remained alone with
10244 Marianne.
10245
10246 The repose of the latter became more and more disturbed; and her
10247 sister, who watched, with unremitting attention her continual change of
10248 posture, and heard the frequent but inarticulate sounds of complaint
10249 which passed her lips, was almost wishing to rouse her from so painful
10250 a slumber, when Marianne, suddenly awakened by some accidental noise in
10251 the house, started hastily up, and, with feverish wildness, cried out,--
10252
10253 "Is mama coming?--"
10254
10255 "Not yet," cried the other, concealing her terror, and assisting
10256 Marianne to lie down again, "but she will be here, I hope, before it is
10257 long. It is a great way, you know, from hence to Barton."
10258
10259 "But she must not go round by London," cried Marianne, in the same
10260 hurried manner. "I shall never see her, if she goes by London."
10261
10262 Elinor perceived with alarm that she was not quite herself, and, while
10263 attempting to soothe her, eagerly felt her pulse. It was lower and
10264 quicker than ever! and Marianne, still talking wildly of mama, her
10265 alarm increased so rapidly, as to determine her on sending instantly
10266 for Mr. Harris, and despatching a messenger to Barton for her mother.
10267 To consult with Colonel Brandon on the best means of effecting the
10268 latter, was a thought which immediately followed the resolution of its
10269 performance; and as soon she had rung up the maid to take her place by
10270 her sister, she hastened down to the drawing-room, where she knew he
10271 was generally to be found at a much later hour than the present.
10272
10273 It was no time for hesitation. Her fears and her difficulties were
10274 immediately before him. Her fears, he had no courage, no confidence to
10275 attempt the removal of:--he listened to them in silent despondence;--but
10276 her difficulties were instantly obviated, for with a readiness that
10277 seemed to speak the occasion, and the service pre-arranged in his mind,
10278 he offered himself as the messenger who should fetch Mrs. Dashwood.
10279 Elinor made no resistance that was not easily overcome. She thanked him
10280 with brief, though fervent gratitude, and while he went to hurry off his
10281 servant with a message to Mr. Harris, and an order for post-horses
10282 directly, she wrote a few lines to her mother.
10283
10284 The comfort of such a friend at that moment as Colonel Brandon--or such
10285 a companion for her mother,--how gratefully was it felt!--a companion
10286 whose judgment would guide, whose attendance must relieve, and whose
10287 friendship might soothe her!--as far as the shock of such a summons
10288 COULD be lessened to her, his presence, his manners, his assistance,
10289 would lessen it.
10290
10291 HE, meanwhile, whatever he might feel, acted with all the firmness of a
10292 collected mind, made every necessary arrangement with the utmost
10293 despatch, and calculated with exactness the time in which she might
10294 look for his return. Not a moment was lost in delay of any kind. The
10295 horses arrived, even before they were expected, and Colonel Brandon
10296 only pressing her hand with a look of solemnity, and a few words spoken
10297 too low to reach her ear, hurried into the carriage. It was then about
10298 twelve o'clock, and she returned to her sister's apartment to wait for
10299 the arrival of the apothecary, and to watch by her the rest of the
10300 night. It was a night of almost equal suffering to both. Hour after
10301 hour passed away in sleepless pain and delirium on Marianne's side, and
10302 in the most cruel anxiety on Elinor's, before Mr. Harris appeared. Her
10303 apprehensions once raised, paid by their excess for all her former
10304 security; and the servant who sat up with her, for she would not allow
10305 Mrs. Jennings to be called, only tortured her more, by hints of what
10306 her mistress had always thought.
10307
10308 Marianne's ideas were still, at intervals, fixed incoherently on her
10309 mother, and whenever she mentioned her name, it gave a pang to the
10310 heart of poor Elinor, who, reproaching herself for having trifled with
10311 so many days of illness, and wretched for some immediate relief,
10312 fancied that all relief might soon be in vain, that every thing had
10313 been delayed too long, and pictured to herself her suffering mother
10314 arriving too late to see this darling child, or to see her rational.
10315
10316 She was on the point of sending again for Mr. Harris, or if HE could
10317 not come, for some other advice, when the former--but not till after
10318 five o'clock--arrived. His opinion, however, made some little amends
10319 for his delay, for though acknowledging a very unexpected and
10320 unpleasant alteration in his patient, he would not allow the danger to
10321 be material, and talked of the relief which a fresh mode of treatment
10322 must procure, with a confidence which, in a lesser degree, was
10323 communicated to Elinor. He promised to call again in the course of
10324 three or four hours, and left both the patient and her anxious
10325 attendant more composed than he had found them.
10326
10327 With strong concern, and with many reproaches for not being called to
10328 their aid, did Mrs. Jennings hear in the morning of what had passed.
10329 Her former apprehensions, now with greater reason restored, left her no
10330 doubt of the event; and though trying to speak comfort to Elinor, her
10331 conviction of her sister's danger would not allow her to offer the
10332 comfort of hope. Her heart was really grieved. The rapid decay, the
10333 early death of a girl so young, so lovely as Marianne, must have struck
10334 a less interested person with concern. On Mrs. Jennings's compassion
10335 she had other claims. She had been for three months her companion, was
10336 still under her care, and she was known to have been greatly injured,
10337 and long unhappy. The distress of her sister too, particularly a
10338 favourite, was before her;--and as for their mother, when Mrs. Jennings
10339 considered that Marianne might probably be to HER what Charlotte was to
10340 herself, her sympathy in HER sufferings was very sincere.
10341
10342 Mr. Harris was punctual in his second visit;--but he came to be
10343 disappointed in his hopes of what the last would produce. His
10344 medicines had failed;--the fever was unabated; and Marianne only more
10345 quiet--not more herself--remained in a heavy stupor. Elinor, catching
10346 all, and more than all, his fears in a moment, proposed to call in
10347 further advice. But he judged it unnecessary: he had still something
10348 more to try, some more fresh application, of whose success he was as
10349 confident as the last, and his visit concluded with encouraging
10350 assurances which reached the ear, but could not enter the heart of Miss
10351 Dashwood. She was calm, except when she thought of her mother; but she
10352 was almost hopeless; and in this state she continued till noon,
10353 scarcely stirring from her sister's bed, her thoughts wandering from
10354 one image of grief, one suffering friend to another, and her spirits
10355 oppressed to the utmost by the conversation of Mrs. Jennings, who
10356 scrupled not to attribute the severity and danger of this attack to the
10357 many weeks of previous indisposition which Marianne's disappointment
10358 had brought on. Elinor felt all the reasonableness of the idea, and it
10359 gave fresh misery to her reflections.
10360
10361 About noon, however, she began--but with a caution--a dread of
10362 disappointment which for some time kept her silent, even to her
10363 friend--to fancy, to hope she could perceive a slight amendment in her
10364 sister's pulse;--she waited, watched, and examined it again and
10365 again;--and at last, with an agitation more difficult to bury under
10366 exterior calmness, than all her foregoing distress, ventured to
10367 communicate her hopes. Mrs. Jennings, though forced, on examination,
10368 to acknowledge a temporary revival, tried to keep her young friend from
10369 indulging a thought of its continuance;--and Elinor, conning over every
10370 injunction of distrust, told herself likewise not to hope. But it was
10371 too late. Hope had already entered; and feeling all its anxious
10372 flutter, she bent over her sister to watch--she hardly knew for what.
10373 Half an hour passed away, and the favourable symptom yet blessed her.
10374 Others even arose to confirm it. Her breath, her skin, her lips, all
10375 flattered Elinor with signs of amendment; and Marianne fixed her eyes
10376 on her with a rational, though languid, gaze. Anxiety and hope now
10377 oppressed her in equal degrees, and left her no moment of tranquillity
10378 till the arrival of Mr. Harris at four o'clock;--when his assurances,
10379 his felicitations on a recovery in her sister even surpassing his
10380 expectation, gave her confidence, comfort, and tears of joy.
10381
10382 Marianne was in every respect materially better, and he declared her
10383 entirely out of danger. Mrs. Jennings, perhaps satisfied with the
10384 partial justification of her forebodings which had been found in their
10385 late alarm, allowed herself to trust in his judgment, and admitted,
10386 with unfeigned joy, and soon with unequivocal cheerfulness, the
10387 probability of an entire recovery.
10388
10389 Elinor could not be cheerful. Her joy was of a different kind, and led
10390 to any thing rather than to gaiety. Marianne restored to life, health,
10391 friends, and to her doting mother, was an idea to fill her heart with
10392 sensations of exquisite comfort, and expand it in fervent
10393 gratitude;--but it led to no outward demonstrations of joy, no words,
10394 no smiles. All within Elinor's breast was satisfaction, silent and
10395 strong.
10396
10397 She continued by the side of her sister, with little intermission the
10398 whole afternoon, calming every fear, satisfying every inquiry of her
10399 enfeebled spirits, supplying every succour, and watching almost every
10400 look and every breath. The possibility of a relapse would of course,
10401 in some moments, occur to remind her of what anxiety was--but when she
10402 saw, on her frequent and minute examination, that every symptom of
10403 recovery continued, and saw Marianne at six o'clock sink into a quiet,
10404 steady, and to all appearance comfortable, sleep, she silenced every
10405 doubt.
10406
10407 The time was now drawing on, when Colonel Brandon might be expected
10408 back. At ten o'clock, she trusted, or at least not much later her
10409 mother would be relieved from the dreadful suspense in which she must
10410 now be travelling towards them. The Colonel, too!--perhaps scarcely
10411 less an object of pity!--Oh!--how slow was the progress of time which
10412 yet kept them in ignorance!
10413
10414 At seven o'clock, leaving Marianne still sweetly asleep, she joined
10415 Mrs. Jennings in the drawing-room to tea. Of breakfast she had been
10416 kept by her fears, and of dinner by their sudden reverse, from eating
10417 much;--and the present refreshment, therefore, with such feelings of
10418 content as she brought to it, was particularly welcome. Mrs. Jennings
10419 would have persuaded her, at its conclusion, to take some rest before
10420 her mother's arrival, and allow HER to take her place by Marianne; but
10421 Elinor had no sense of fatigue, no capability of sleep at that moment
10422 about her, and she was not to be kept away from her sister an
10423 unnecessary instant. Mrs. Jennings therefore attending her up stairs
10424 into the sick chamber, to satisfy herself that all continued right,
10425 left her there again to her charge and her thoughts, and retired to her
10426 own room to write letters and sleep.
10427
10428 The night was cold and stormy. The wind roared round the house, and
10429 the rain beat against the windows; but Elinor, all happiness within,
10430 regarded it not. Marianne slept through every blast; and the
10431 travellers--they had a rich reward in store, for every present
10432 inconvenience.
10433
10434 The clock struck eight. Had it been ten, Elinor would have been
10435 convinced that at that moment she heard a carriage driving up to the
10436 house; and so strong was the persuasion that she DID, in spite of the
10437 ALMOST impossibility of their being already come, that she moved into
10438 the adjoining dressing-closet and opened a window shutter, to be
10439 satisfied of the truth. She instantly saw that her ears had not
10440 deceived her. The flaring lamps of a carriage were immediately in
10441 view. By their uncertain light she thought she could discern it to be
10442 drawn by four horses; and this, while it told the excess of her poor
10443 mother's alarm, gave some explanation to such unexpected rapidity.
10444
10445 Never in her life had Elinor found it so difficult to be calm, as at
10446 that moment. The knowledge of what her mother must be feeling as the
10447 carriage stopt at the door--of her doubt--her dread--perhaps her
10448 despair!--and of what SHE had to tell!--with such knowledge it was
10449 impossible to be calm. All that remained to be done was to be speedy;
10450 and, therefore staying only till she could leave Mrs. Jennings's maid
10451 with her sister, she hurried down stairs.
10452
10453 The bustle in the vestibule, as she passed along an inner lobby,
10454 assured her that they were already in the house. She rushed to the
10455 drawing-room,--she entered it,--and saw only Willoughby.
10456
10457
10458
10459 CHAPTER 44
10460
10461
10462 Elinor, starting back with a look of horror at the sight of him, obeyed
10463 the first impulse of her heart in turning instantly to quit the room,
10464 and her hand was already on the lock, when its action was suspended by
10465 his hastily advancing, and saying, in a voice rather of command than
10466 supplication,
10467
10468 "Miss Dashwood, for half an hour--for ten minutes--I entreat you to
10469 stay."
10470
10471 "No, sir," she replied with firmness, "I shall NOT stay. Your business
10472 cannot be with ME. The servants, I suppose, forgot to tell you that
10473 Mr. Palmer was not in the house."
10474
10475 "Had they told me," he cried with vehemence, "that Mr. Palmer and all
10476 his relations were at the devil, it would not have turned me from the
10477 door. My business is with you, and only you."
10478
10479 "With me!"--in the utmost amazement--"well, sir,--be quick--and if you
10480 can--less violent."
10481
10482 "Sit down, and I will be both."
10483
10484 She hesitated; she knew not what to do. The possibility of Colonel
10485 Brandon's arriving and finding her there, came across her. But she had
10486 promised to hear him, and her curiosity no less than her honor was
10487 engaged. After a moment's recollection, therefore, concluding that
10488 prudence required dispatch, and that her acquiescence would best
10489 promote it, she walked silently towards the table, and sat down. He
10490 took the opposite chair, and for half a minute not a word was said by
10491 either.
10492
10493 "Pray be quick, sir,"--said Elinor, impatiently;--"I have no time to
10494 spare."
10495
10496 He was sitting in an attitude of deep meditation, and seemed not to
10497 hear her.
10498
10499 "Your sister," said he, with abruptness, a moment afterwards--"is out
10500 of danger. I heard it from the servant. God be praised!--But is it
10501 true? is it really true?"
10502
10503 Elinor would not speak. He repeated the inquiry with yet greater
10504 eagerness.
10505
10506 "For God's sake tell me, is she out of danger, or is she not?"
10507
10508 "We hope she is."
10509
10510 He rose up, and walked across the room.
10511
10512 "Had I known as much half an hour ago--But since I AM here,"--speaking
10513 with a forced vivacity as he returned to his seat--"what does it
10514 signify?--For once, Miss Dashwood--it will be the last time,
10515 perhaps--let us be cheerful together.--I am in a fine mood for
10516 gaiety.-- Tell me honestly"--a deeper glow overspreading his
10517 cheeks--"do you think me most a knave or a fool?"
10518
10519 Elinor looked at him with greater astonishment than ever. She began to
10520 think that he must be in liquor;--the strangeness of such a visit, and
10521 of such manners, seemed no otherwise intelligible; and with this
10522 impression she immediately rose, saying,
10523
10524 "Mr. Willoughby, I advise you at present to return to Combe--I am not
10525 at leisure to remain with you longer.-- Whatever your business may be
10526 with me, it will be better recollected and explained to-morrow."
10527
10528 "I understand you," he replied, with an expressive smile, and a voice
10529 perfectly calm; "yes, I am very drunk.-- A pint of porter with my cold
10530 beef at Marlborough was enough to over-set me."
10531
10532 "At Marlborough!"--cried Elinor, more and more at a loss to understand
10533 what he would be at.
10534
10535 "Yes,--I left London this morning at eight o'clock, and the only ten
10536 minutes I have spent out of my chaise since that time procured me a
10537 nuncheon at Marlborough."
10538
10539 The steadiness of his manner, and the intelligence of his eye as he
10540 spoke, convincing Elinor, that whatever other unpardonable folly might
10541 bring him to Cleveland, he was not brought there by intoxication, she
10542 said, after a moment's recollection,
10543
10544 "Mr. Willoughby, you OUGHT to feel, and I certainly DO--that after what
10545 has passed--your coming here in this manner, and forcing yourself upon
10546 my notice, requires a very particular excuse.--What is it, that you
10547 mean by it?"--
10548
10549 "I mean,"--said he, with serious energy--"if I can, to make you hate me
10550 one degree less than you do NOW. I mean to offer some kind of
10551 explanation, some kind of apology, for the past; to open my whole heart
10552 to you, and by convincing you, that though I have been always a
10553 blockhead, I have not been always a rascal, to obtain something like
10554 forgiveness from Ma--from your sister."
10555
10556 "Is this the real reason of your coming?"
10557
10558 "Upon my soul it is,"--was his answer, with a warmth which brought all
10559 the former Willoughby to her remembrance, and in spite of herself made
10560 her think him sincere.
10561
10562 "If that is all, you may be satisfied already,--for Marianne DOES--she
10563 has LONG forgiven you."
10564
10565 "Has she?"--he cried, in the same eager tone.-- "Then she has forgiven
10566 me before she ought to have done it. But she shall forgive me again,
10567 and on more reasonable grounds.--NOW will you listen to me?"
10568
10569 Elinor bowed her assent.
10570
10571 "I do not know," said he, after a pause of expectation on her side, and
10572 thoughtfulness on his own,--"how YOU may have accounted for my
10573 behaviour to your sister, or what diabolical motive you may have
10574 imputed to me.-- Perhaps you will hardly think the better of me,--it is
10575 worth the trial however, and you shall hear every thing. When I first
10576 became intimate in your family, I had no other intention, no other view
10577 in the acquaintance than to pass my time pleasantly while I was obliged
10578 to remain in Devonshire, more pleasantly than I had ever done before.
10579 Your sister's lovely person and interesting manners could not but
10580 please me; and her behaviour to me almost from the first, was of a
10581 kind--It is astonishing, when I reflect on what it was, and what SHE
10582 was, that my heart should have been so insensible! But at first I must
10583 confess, my vanity only was elevated by it. Careless of her happiness,
10584 thinking only of my own amusement, giving way to feelings which I had
10585 always been too much in the habit of indulging, I endeavoured, by every
10586 means in my power, to make myself pleasing to her, without any design
10587 of returning her affection."
10588
10589 Miss Dashwood, at this point, turning her eyes on him with the most
10590 angry contempt, stopped him, by saying,
10591
10592 "It is hardly worth while, Mr. Willoughby, for you to relate, or for me
10593 to listen any longer. Such a beginning as this cannot be followed by
10594 any thing.-- Do not let me be pained by hearing any thing more on the
10595 subject."
10596
10597 "I insist on you hearing the whole of it," he replied, "My fortune was
10598 never large, and I had always been expensive, always in the habit of
10599 associating with people of better income than myself. Every year since
10600 my coming of age, or even before, I believe, had added to my debts; and
10601 though the death of my old cousin, Mrs. Smith, was to set me free; yet
10602 that event being uncertain, and possibly far distant, it had been for
10603 some time my intention to re-establish my circumstances by marrying a
10604 woman of fortune. To attach myself to your sister, therefore, was not
10605 a thing to be thought of;--and with a meanness, selfishness,
10606 cruelty--which no indignant, no contemptuous look, even of yours, Miss
10607 Dashwood, can ever reprobate too much--I was acting in this manner,
10608 trying to engage her regard, without a thought of returning it.--But
10609 one thing may be said for me: even in that horrid state of selfish
10610 vanity, I did not know the extent of the injury I meditated, because I
10611 did not THEN know what it was to love. But have I ever known it?--Well
10612 may it be doubted; for, had I really loved, could I have sacrificed my
10613 feelings to vanity, to avarice?--or, what is more, could I have
10614 sacrificed hers?-- But I have done it. To avoid a comparative poverty,
10615 which her affection and her society would have deprived of all its
10616 horrors, I have, by raising myself to affluence, lost every thing that
10617 could make it a blessing."
10618
10619 "You did then," said Elinor, a little softened, "believe yourself at
10620 one time attached to her?"
10621
10622 "To have resisted such attractions, to have withstood such
10623 tenderness!--Is there a man on earth who could have done it?--Yes, I
10624 found myself, by insensible degrees, sincerely fond of her; and the
10625 happiest hours of my life were what I spent with her when I felt my
10626 intentions were strictly honourable, and my feelings blameless. Even
10627 THEN, however, when fully determined on paying my addresses to her, I
10628 allowed myself most improperly to put off, from day to day, the moment
10629 of doing it, from an unwillingness to enter into an engagement while my
10630 circumstances were so greatly embarrassed. I will not reason here--nor
10631 will I stop for YOU to expatiate on the absurdity, and the worse than
10632 absurdity, of scrupling to engage my faith where my honour was already
10633 bound. The event has proved, that I was a cunning fool, providing with
10634 great circumspection for a possible opportunity of making myself
10635 contemptible and wretched for ever. At last, however, my resolution
10636 was taken, and I had determined, as soon as I could engage her alone,
10637 to justify the attentions I had so invariably paid her, and openly
10638 assure her of an affection which I had already taken such pains to
10639 display. But in the interim--in the interim of the very few hours that
10640 were to pass, before I could have an opportunity of speaking with her
10641 in private--a circumstance occurred--an unlucky circumstance, to ruin
10642 all my resolution, and with it all my comfort. A discovery took
10643 place,"--here he hesitated and looked down.--"Mrs. Smith had somehow or
10644 other been informed, I imagine by some distant relation, whose interest
10645 it was to deprive me of her favour, of an affair, a connection--but I
10646 need not explain myself farther," he added, looking at her with an
10647 heightened colour and an enquiring eye--"your particular intimacy--you
10648 have probably heard the whole story long ago."
10649
10650 "I have," returned Elinor, colouring likewise, and hardening her heart
10651 anew against any compassion for him, "I have heard it all. And how you
10652 will explain away any part of your guilt in that dreadful business, I
10653 confess is beyond my comprehension."
10654
10655 "Remember," cried Willoughby, "from whom you received the account.
10656 Could it be an impartial one? I acknowledge that her situation and her
10657 character ought to have been respected by me. I do not mean to justify
10658 myself, but at the same time cannot leave you to suppose that I have
10659 nothing to urge--that because she was injured she was irreproachable,
10660 and because I was a libertine, SHE must be a saint. If the violence of
10661 her passions, the weakness of her understanding--I do not mean,
10662 however, to defend myself. Her affection for me deserved better
10663 treatment, and I often, with great self-reproach, recall the tenderness
10664 which, for a very short time, had the power of creating any return. I
10665 wish--I heartily wish it had never been. But I have injured more than
10666 herself; and I have injured one, whose affection for me--(may I say
10667 it?) was scarcely less warm than hers; and whose mind--Oh! how
10668 infinitely superior!"--
10669
10670 "Your indifference, however, towards that unfortunate girl--I must say
10671 it, unpleasant to me as the discussion of such a subject may well
10672 be--your indifference is no apology for your cruel neglect of her. Do
10673 not think yourself excused by any weakness, any natural defect of
10674 understanding on her side, in the wanton cruelty so evident on yours.
10675 You must have known, that while you were enjoying yourself in
10676 Devonshire pursuing fresh schemes, always gay, always happy, she was
10677 reduced to the extremest indigence."
10678
10679 "But, upon my soul, I did NOT know it," he warmly replied; "I did not
10680 recollect that I had omitted to give her my direction; and common sense
10681 might have told her how to find it out."
10682
10683 "Well, sir, and what said Mrs. Smith?"
10684
10685 "She taxed me with the offence at once, and my confusion may be
10686 guessed. The purity of her life, the formality of her notions, her
10687 ignorance of the world--every thing was against me. The matter itself
10688 I could not deny, and vain was every endeavour to soften it. She was
10689 previously disposed, I believe, to doubt the morality of my conduct in
10690 general, and was moreover discontented with the very little attention,
10691 the very little portion of my time that I had bestowed on her, in my
10692 present visit. In short, it ended in a total breach. By one measure I
10693 might have saved myself. In the height of her morality, good woman!
10694 she offered to forgive the past, if I would marry Eliza. That could
10695 not be--and I was formally dismissed from her favour and her house.
10696 The night following this affair--I was to go the next morning--was
10697 spent by me in deliberating on what my future conduct should be. The
10698 struggle was great--but it ended too soon. My affection for Marianne,
10699 my thorough conviction of her attachment to me--it was all insufficient
10700 to outweigh that dread of poverty, or get the better of those false
10701 ideas of the necessity of riches, which I was naturally inclined to
10702 feel, and expensive society had increased. I had reason to believe
10703 myself secure of my present wife, if I chose to address her, and I
10704 persuaded myself to think that nothing else in common prudence remained
10705 for me to do. A heavy scene however awaited me, before I could leave
10706 Devonshire;--I was engaged to dine with you on that very day; some
10707 apology was therefore necessary for my breaking this engagement. But
10708 whether I should write this apology, or deliver it in person, was a
10709 point of long debate. To see Marianne, I felt, would be dreadful, and
10710 I even doubted whether I could see her again, and keep to my
10711 resolution. In that point, however, I undervalued my own magnanimity,
10712 as the event declared; for I went, I saw her, and saw her miserable,
10713 and left her miserable--and left her hoping never to see her again."
10714
10715 "Why did you call, Mr. Willoughby?" said Elinor, reproachfully; "a note
10716 would have answered every purpose.-- Why was it necessary to call?"
10717
10718 "It was necessary to my own pride. I could not bear to leave the
10719 country in a manner that might lead you, or the rest of the
10720 neighbourhood, to suspect any part of what had really passed between
10721 Mrs. Smith and myself--and I resolved therefore on calling at the
10722 cottage, in my way to Honiton. The sight of your dear sister, however,
10723 was really dreadful; and, to heighten the matter, I found her alone.
10724 You were all gone I do not know where. I had left her only the evening
10725 before, so fully, so firmly resolved within my self on doing right! A
10726 few hours were to have engaged her to me for ever; and I remember how
10727 happy, how gay were my spirits, as I walked from the cottage to
10728 Allenham, satisfied with myself, delighted with every body! But in
10729 this, our last interview of friendship, I approached her with a sense
10730 of guilt that almost took from me the power of dissembling. Her
10731 sorrow, her disappointment, her deep regret, when I told her that I was
10732 obliged to leave Devonshire so immediately--I never shall forget
10733 it--united too with such reliance, such confidence in me!--Oh,
10734 God!--what a hard-hearted rascal I was!"
10735
10736 They were both silent for a few moments. Elinor first spoke.
10737
10738 "Did you tell her that you should soon return?"
10739
10740 "I do not know what I told her," he replied, impatiently; "less than
10741 was due to the past, beyond a doubt, and in all likelihood much more
10742 than was justified by the future. I cannot think of it.--It won't
10743 do.--Then came your dear mother to torture me farther, with all her
10744 kindness and confidence. Thank Heaven! it DID torture me. I was
10745 miserable. Miss Dashwood, you cannot have an idea of the comfort it
10746 gives me to look back on my own misery. I owe such a grudge to myself
10747 for the stupid, rascally folly of my own heart, that all my past
10748 sufferings under it are only triumph and exultation to me now. Well, I
10749 went, left all that I loved, and went to those to whom, at best, I was
10750 only indifferent. My journey to town--travelling with my own horses,
10751 and therefore so tediously--no creature to speak to--my own reflections
10752 so cheerful--when I looked forward every thing so inviting!--when I
10753 looked back at Barton, the picture so soothing!--oh, it was a blessed
10754 journey!"
10755
10756 He stopped.
10757
10758 "Well, sir," said Elinor, who, though pitying him, grew impatient for
10759 his departure, "and this is all?"
10760
10761 "Ah!--no,--have you forgot what passed in town?-- That infamous
10762 letter--Did she shew it you?"
10763
10764 "Yes, I saw every note that passed."
10765
10766 "When the first of hers reached me (as it immediately did, for I was in
10767 town the whole time,) what I felt is--in the common phrase, not to be
10768 expressed; in a more simple one--perhaps too simple to raise any
10769 emotion--my feelings were very, very painful.--Every line, every word
10770 was--in the hackneyed metaphor which their dear writer, were she here,
10771 would forbid--a dagger to my heart. To know that Marianne was in town
10772 was--in the same language--a thunderbolt.--Thunderbolts and
10773 daggers!--what a reproof would she have given me!--her taste, her
10774 opinions--I believe they are better known to me than my own,--and I am
10775 sure they are dearer."
10776
10777 Elinor's heart, which had undergone many changes in the course of this
10778 extraordinary conversation, was now softened again;--yet she felt it
10779 her duty to check such ideas in her companion as the last.
10780
10781 "This is not right, Mr. Willoughby.--Remember that you are married.
10782 Relate only what in your conscience you think necessary for me to hear."
10783
10784 "Marianne's note, by assuring me that I was still as dear to her as in
10785 former days, that in spite of the many, many weeks we had been
10786 separated, she was as constant in her own feelings, and as full of
10787 faith in the constancy of mine as ever, awakened all my remorse. I say
10788 awakened, because time and London, business and dissipation, had in
10789 some measure quieted it, and I had been growing a fine hardened
10790 villain, fancying myself indifferent to her, and chusing to fancy that
10791 she too must have become indifferent to me; talking to myself of our
10792 past attachment as a mere idle, trifling business, shrugging up my
10793 shoulders in proof of its being so, and silencing every reproach,
10794 overcoming every scruple, by secretly saying now and then, 'I shall be
10795 heartily glad to hear she is well married.'-- But this note made me
10796 know myself better. I felt that she was infinitely dearer to me than
10797 any other woman in the world, and that I was using her infamously. But
10798 every thing was then just settled between Miss Grey and me. To retreat
10799 was impossible. All that I had to do, was to avoid you both. I sent
10800 no answer to Marianne, intending by that to preserve myself from her
10801 farther notice; and for some time I was even determined not to call in
10802 Berkeley Street;--but at last, judging it wiser to affect the air of a
10803 cool, common acquaintance than anything else, I watched you all safely
10804 out of the house one morning, and left my name."
10805
10806 "Watched us out of the house!"
10807
10808 "Even so. You would be surprised to hear how often I watched you, how
10809 often I was on the point of falling in with you. I have entered many a
10810 shop to avoid your sight, as the carriage drove by. Lodging as I did
10811 in Bond Street, there was hardly a day in which I did not catch a
10812 glimpse of one or other of you; and nothing but the most constant
10813 watchfulness on my side, a most invariably prevailing desire to keep
10814 out of your sight, could have separated us so long. I avoided the
10815 Middletons as much as possible, as well as everybody else who was
10816 likely to prove an acquaintance in common. Not aware of their being in
10817 town, however, I blundered on Sir John, I believe, the first day of his
10818 coming, and the day after I had called at Mrs. Jennings's. He asked me
10819 to a party, a dance at his house in the evening.--Had he NOT told me as
10820 an inducement that you and your sister were to be there, I should have
10821 felt it too certain a thing, to trust myself near him. The next
10822 morning brought another short note from Marianne--still affectionate,
10823 open, artless, confiding--everything that could make MY conduct most
10824 hateful. I could not answer it. I tried--but could not frame a
10825 sentence. But I thought of her, I believe, every moment of the day.
10826 If you CAN pity me, Miss Dashwood, pity my situation as it was THEN.
10827 With my head and heart full of your sister, I was forced to play the
10828 happy lover to another woman!--Those three or four weeks were worse
10829 than all. Well, at last, as I need not tell you, you were forced on
10830 me; and what a sweet figure I cut!--what an evening of agony it was!--
10831 Marianne, beautiful as an angel on one side, calling me Willoughby in
10832 such a tone!--Oh, God!--holding out her hand to me, asking me for an
10833 explanation, with those bewitching eyes fixed in such speaking
10834 solicitude on my face!--and Sophia, jealous as the devil on the other
10835 hand, looking all that was--Well, it does not signify; it is over
10836 now.-- Such an evening!--I ran away from you all as soon as I could;
10837 but not before I had seen Marianne's sweet face as white as
10838 death.--THAT was the last, last look I ever had of her;--the last
10839 manner in which she appeared to me. It was a horrid sight!--yet when I
10840 thought of her to-day as really dying, it was a kind of comfort to me
10841 to imagine that I knew exactly how she would appear to those, who saw
10842 her last in this world. She was before me, constantly before me, as I
10843 travelled, in the same look and hue."
10844
10845 A short pause of mutual thoughtfulness succeeded. Willoughby first
10846 rousing himself, broke it thus:
10847
10848 "Well, let me make haste and be gone. Your sister is certainly better,
10849 certainly out of danger?"
10850
10851 "We are assured of it."
10852
10853 "Your poor mother, too!--doting on Marianne."
10854
10855 "But the letter, Mr. Willoughby, your own letter; have you any thing to
10856 say about that?"
10857
10858 "Yes, yes, THAT in particular. Your sister wrote to me again, you
10859 know, the very next morning. You saw what she said. I was
10860 breakfasting at the Ellisons,--and her letter, with some others, was
10861 brought to me there from my lodgings. It happened to catch Sophia's
10862 eye before it caught mine--and its size, the elegance of the paper, the
10863 hand-writing altogether, immediately gave her a suspicion. Some vague
10864 report had reached her before of my attachment to some young lady in
10865 Devonshire, and what had passed within her observation the preceding
10866 evening had marked who the young lady was, and made her more jealous
10867 than ever. Affecting that air of playfulness, therefore, which is
10868 delightful in a woman one loves, she opened the letter directly,
10869 and read its contents. She was well paid for her impudence.
10870 She read what made her wretched. Her wretchedness I could have
10871 borne, but her passion--her malice--At all events it must be appeased.
10872 And, in short--what do you think of my wife's style of
10873 letter-writing?--delicate--tender--truly feminine--was it not?"
10874
10875 "Your wife!--The letter was in your own hand-writing."
10876
10877 "Yes, but I had only the credit of servilely copying such sentences as
10878 I was ashamed to put my name to. The original was all her own--her own
10879 happy thoughts and gentle diction. But what could I do!--we were
10880 engaged, every thing in preparation, the day almost fixed--But I am
10881 talking like a fool. Preparation!--day!--In honest words, her money
10882 was necessary to me, and in a situation like mine, any thing was to be
10883 done to prevent a rupture. And after all, what did it signify to my
10884 character in the opinion of Marianne and her friends, in what language
10885 my answer was couched?--It must have been only to one end. My business
10886 was to declare myself a scoundrel, and whether I did it with a bow or a
10887 bluster was of little importance.-- 'I am ruined for ever in their
10888 opinion--' said I to myself--'I am shut out for ever from their
10889 society, they already think me an unprincipled fellow, this letter will
10890 only make them think me a blackguard one.' Such were my reasonings, as,
10891 in a sort of desperate carelessness, I copied my wife's words, and
10892 parted with the last relics of Marianne. Her three notes--unluckily
10893 they were all in my pocketbook, or I should have denied their
10894 existence, and hoarded them for ever--I was forced to put them up, and
10895 could not even kiss them. And the lock of hair--that too I had always
10896 carried about me in the same pocket-book, which was now searched by
10897 Madam with the most ingratiating virulence,--the dear lock--all, every
10898 memento was torn from me."
10899
10900 "You are very wrong, Mr. Willoughby, very blamable," said Elinor, while
10901 her voice, in spite of herself, betrayed her compassionate emotion;
10902 "you ought not to speak in this way, either of Mrs. Willoughby or my
10903 sister. You had made your own choice. It was not forced on you. Your
10904 wife has a claim to your politeness, to your respect, at least. She
10905 must be attached to you, or she would not have married you. To treat
10906 her with unkindness, to speak of her slightingly is no atonement to
10907 Marianne--nor can I suppose it a relief to your own conscience."
10908
10909 "Do not talk to me of my wife," said he with a heavy sigh.-- "She does
10910 not deserve your compassion.--She knew I had no regard for her when we
10911 married.--Well, married we were, and came down to Combe Magna to be
10912 happy, and afterwards returned to town to be gay.--And now do you pity
10913 me, Miss Dashwood?--or have I said all this to no purpose?-- Am I--be
10914 it only one degree--am I less guilty in your opinion than I was
10915 before?--My intentions were not always wrong. Have I explained away
10916 any part of my guilt?"
10917
10918 "Yes, you have certainly removed something--a little.-- You have proved
10919 yourself, on the whole, less faulty than I had believed you. You have
10920 proved your heart less wicked, much less wicked. But I hardly
10921 know--the misery that you have inflicted--I hardly know what could have
10922 made it worse."
10923
10924 "Will you repeat to your sister when she is recovered, what I have been
10925 telling you?--Let me be a little lightened too in her opinion as well
10926 as in yours. You tell me that she has forgiven me already. Let me be
10927 able to fancy that a better knowledge of my heart, and of my present
10928 feelings, will draw from her a more spontaneous, more natural, more
10929 gentle, less dignified, forgiveness. Tell her of my misery and my
10930 penitence--tell her that my heart was never inconstant to her, and if
10931 you will, that at this moment she is dearer to me than ever."
10932
10933 "I will tell her all that is necessary to what may comparatively be
10934 called, your justification. But you have not explained to me the
10935 particular reason of your coming now, nor how you heard of her illness."
10936
10937 "Last night, in Drury Lane lobby, I ran against Sir John Middleton, and
10938 when he saw who I was--for the first time these two months--he spoke to
10939 me.--That he had cut me ever since my marriage, I had seen without
10940 surprise or resentment. Now, however, his good-natured, honest, stupid
10941 soul, full of indignation against me, and concern for your sister,
10942 could not resist the temptation of telling me what he knew ought
10943 to--though probably he did not think it WOULD--vex me horridly. As
10944 bluntly as he could speak it, therefore, he told me that Marianne
10945 Dashwood was dying of a putrid fever at Cleveland--a letter that
10946 morning received from Mrs. Jennings declared her danger most
10947 imminent--the Palmers are all gone off in a fright, &c.--I was too much
10948 shocked to be able to pass myself off as insensible even to the
10949 undiscerning Sir John. His heart was softened in seeing mine suffer;
10950 and so much of his ill-will was done away, that when we parted, he
10951 almost shook me by the hand while he reminded me of an old promise
10952 about a pointer puppy. What I felt on hearing that your sister was
10953 dying--and dying too, believing me the greatest villain upon earth,
10954 scorning, hating me in her latest moments--for how could I tell what
10955 horrid projects might not have been imputed? ONE person I was sure
10956 would represent me as capable of any thing-- What I felt was
10957 dreadful!--My resolution was soon made, and at eight o'clock this
10958 morning I was in my carriage. Now you know all."
10959
10960 Elinor made no answer. Her thoughts were silently fixed on the
10961 irreparable injury which too early an independence and its consequent
10962 habits of idleness, dissipation, and luxury, had made in the mind, the
10963 character, the happiness, of a man who, to every advantage of person
10964 and talents, united a disposition naturally open and honest, and a
10965 feeling, affectionate temper. The world had made him extravagant and
10966 vain--Extravagance and vanity had made him cold-hearted and selfish.
10967 Vanity, while seeking its own guilty triumph at the expense of another,
10968 had involved him in a real attachment, which extravagance, or at least
10969 its offspring, necessity, had required to be sacrificed. Each faulty
10970 propensity in leading him to evil, had led him likewise to punishment.
10971 The attachment, from which against honour, against feeling, against
10972 every better interest he had outwardly torn himself, now, when no
10973 longer allowable, governed every thought; and the connection, for the
10974 sake of which he had, with little scruple, left her sister to misery,
10975 was likely to prove a source of unhappiness to himself of a far more
10976 incurable nature. From a reverie of this kind she was recalled at the
10977 end of some minutes by Willoughby, who, rousing himself from a reverie
10978 at least equally painful, started up in preparation for going, and
10979 said--
10980
10981 "There is no use in staying here; I must be off."
10982
10983 "Are you going back to town?"
10984
10985 "No--to Combe Magna. I have business there; from thence to town in a
10986 day or two. Good bye."
10987
10988 He held out his hand. She could not refuse to give him hers;--he
10989 pressed it with affection.
10990
10991 "And you DO think something better of me than you did?"--said he,
10992 letting it fall, and leaning against the mantel-piece as if forgetting
10993 he was to go.
10994
10995 Elinor assured him that she did;--that she forgave, pitied, wished him
10996 well--was even interested in his happiness--and added some gentle
10997 counsel as to the behaviour most likely to promote it. His answer was
10998 not very encouraging.
10999
11000 "As to that," said he, "I must rub through the world as well as I can.
11001 Domestic happiness is out of the question. If, however, I am allowed
11002 to think that you and yours feel an interest in my fate and actions, it
11003 may be the means--it may put me on my guard--at least, it may be
11004 something to live for. Marianne to be sure is lost to me for ever.
11005 Were I even by any blessed chance at liberty again--"
11006
11007 Elinor stopped him with a reproof.
11008
11009 "Well,"--he replied--"once more good bye. I shall now go away and live
11010 in dread of one event."
11011
11012 "What do you mean?"
11013
11014 "Your sister's marriage."
11015
11016 "You are very wrong. She can never be more lost to you than she is
11017 now."
11018
11019 "But she will be gained by some one else. And if that some one should
11020 be the very he whom, of all others, I could least bear--but I will not
11021 stay to rob myself of all your compassionate goodwill, by shewing that
11022 where I have most injured I can least forgive. Good bye,--God bless
11023 you!"
11024
11025 And with these words, he almost ran out of the room.
11026
11027
11028
11029 CHAPTER 45
11030
11031
11032 Elinor, for some time after he left her, for some time even after the
11033 sound of his carriage had died away, remained too much oppressed by a
11034 crowd of ideas, widely differing in themselves, but of which sadness
11035 was the general result, to think even of her sister.
11036
11037 Willoughby, he, whom only half an hour ago she had abhorred as the most
11038 worthless of men, Willoughby, in spite of all his faults, excited a
11039 degree of commiseration for the sufferings produced by them, which made
11040 her think of him as now separated for ever from her family, with a
11041 tenderness, a regret, rather in proportion, as she soon acknowledged
11042 within herself--to his wishes than to his merits. She felt that his
11043 influence over her mind was heightened by circumstances which ought not
11044 in reason to have weight; by that person of uncommon attraction, that
11045 open, affectionate, and lively manner which it was no merit to possess;
11046 and by that still ardent love for Marianne, which it was not even
11047 innocent to indulge. But she felt that it was so, long, long before
11048 she could feel his influence less.
11049
11050 When at last she returned to the unconscious Marianne, she found her
11051 just awaking, refreshed by so long and sweet a sleep to the extent of
11052 her hopes. Elinor's heart was full. The past, the present, the
11053 future, Willoughby's visit, Marianne's safety, and her mother's
11054 expected arrival, threw her altogether into an agitation of spirits
11055 which kept off every indication of fatigue, and made her only fearful
11056 of betraying herself to her sister. Short was the time, however, in
11057 which that fear could affect her, for within half an hour after
11058 Willoughby's leaving the house, she was again called down stairs by the
11059 sound of another carriage.--Eager to save her mother from every
11060 unnecessary moment's horrible suspense, she ran immediately into the
11061 hall, and reached the outward door just in time to receive and support
11062 her as she entered it.
11063
11064 Mrs. Dashwood, whose terror as they drew near the house had produced
11065 almost the conviction of Marianne's being no more, had no voice to
11066 inquire after her, no voice even for Elinor; but SHE, waiting neither
11067 for salutation nor inquiry, instantly gave the joyful relief;--and her
11068 mother, catching it with all her usual warmth, was in a moment as much
11069 overcome by her happiness, as she had been before by her fears. She
11070 was supported into the drawing-room between her daughter and her
11071 friend;--and there, shedding tears of joy, though still unable to
11072 speak, embraced Elinor again and again, turning from her at intervals
11073 to press Colonel Brandon's hand, with a look which spoke at once her
11074 gratitude, and her conviction of his sharing with herself in the bliss
11075 of the moment. He shared it, however, in a silence even greater than
11076 her own.
11077
11078 As soon as Mrs. Dashwood had recovered herself, to see Marianne was her
11079 first desire; and in two minutes she was with her beloved child,
11080 rendered dearer to her than ever by absence, unhappiness, and danger.
11081 Elinor's delight, as she saw what each felt in the meeting, was only
11082 checked by an apprehension of its robbing Marianne of farther
11083 sleep;--but Mrs. Dashwood could be calm, could be even prudent, when
11084 the life of a child was at stake, and Marianne, satisfied in knowing
11085 her mother was near her, and conscious of being too weak for
11086 conversation, submitted readily to the silence and quiet prescribed by
11087 every nurse around her. Mrs. Dashwood WOULD sit up with her all night;
11088 and Elinor, in compliance with her mother's entreaty, went to bed. But
11089 the rest, which one night entirely sleepless, and many hours of the
11090 most wearing anxiety seemed to make requisite, was kept off by
11091 irritation of spirits. Willoughby, "poor Willoughby," as she now
11092 allowed herself to call him, was constantly in her thoughts; she would
11093 not but have heard his vindication for the world, and now blamed, now
11094 acquitted herself for having judged him so harshly before. But her
11095 promise of relating it to her sister was invariably painful. She
11096 dreaded the performance of it, dreaded what its effect on Marianne
11097 might be; doubted whether after such an explanation she could ever be
11098 happy with another; and for a moment wished Willoughby a widower.
11099 Then, remembering Colonel Brandon, reproved herself, felt that to HIS
11100 sufferings and his constancy far more than to his rival's, the reward
11101 of her sister was due, and wished any thing rather than Mrs.
11102 Willoughby's death.
11103
11104 The shock of Colonel Brandon's errand at Barton had been much softened
11105 to Mrs. Dashwood by her own previous alarm; for so great was her
11106 uneasiness about Marianne, that she had already determined to set out
11107 for Cleveland on that very day, without waiting for any further
11108 intelligence, and had so far settled her journey before his arrival,
11109 that the Careys were then expected every moment to fetch Margaret away,
11110 as her mother was unwilling to take her where there might be infection.
11111
11112 Marianne continued to mend every day, and the brilliant cheerfulness of
11113 Mrs. Dashwood's looks and spirits proved her to be, as she repeatedly
11114 declared herself, one of the happiest women in the world. Elinor could
11115 not hear the declaration, nor witness its proofs without sometimes
11116 wondering whether her mother ever recollected Edward. But Mrs.
11117 Dashwood, trusting to the temperate account of her own disappointment
11118 which Elinor had sent her, was led away by the exuberance of her joy to
11119 think only of what would increase it. Marianne was restored to her
11120 from a danger in which, as she now began to feel, her own mistaken
11121 judgment in encouraging the unfortunate attachment to Willoughby, had
11122 contributed to place her;--and in her recovery she had yet another
11123 source of joy unthought of by Elinor. It was thus imparted to her, as
11124 soon as any opportunity of private conference between them occurred.
11125
11126 "At last we are alone. My Elinor, you do not yet know all my
11127 happiness. Colonel Brandon loves Marianne. He has told me so himself."
11128
11129 Her daughter, feeling by turns both pleased and pained, surprised and
11130 not surprised, was all silent attention.
11131
11132 "You are never like me, dear Elinor, or I should wonder at your
11133 composure now. Had I sat down to wish for any possible good to my
11134 family, I should have fixed on Colonel Brandon's marrying one of you as
11135 the object most desirable. And I believe Marianne will be the most
11136 happy with him of the two."
11137
11138 Elinor was half inclined to ask her reason for thinking so, because
11139 satisfied that none founded on an impartial consideration of their age,
11140 characters, or feelings, could be given;--but her mother must always be
11141 carried away by her imagination on any interesting subject, and
11142 therefore instead of an inquiry, she passed it off with a smile.
11143
11144 "He opened his whole heart to me yesterday as we travelled. It came
11145 out quite unawares, quite undesignedly. I, you may well believe, could
11146 talk of nothing but my child;--he could not conceal his distress; I saw
11147 that it equalled my own, and he perhaps, thinking that mere friendship,
11148 as the world now goes, would not justify so warm a sympathy--or rather,
11149 not thinking at all, I suppose--giving way to irresistible feelings,
11150 made me acquainted with his earnest, tender, constant, affection for
11151 Marianne. He has loved her, my Elinor, ever since the first moment of
11152 seeing her."
11153
11154 Here, however, Elinor perceived,--not the language, not the professions
11155 of Colonel Brandon, but the natural embellishments of her mother's
11156 active fancy, which fashioned every thing delightful to her as it chose.
11157
11158 "His regard for her, infinitely surpassing anything that Willoughby
11159 ever felt or feigned, as much more warm, as more sincere or
11160 constant--which ever we are to call it--has subsisted through all the
11161 knowledge of dear Marianne's unhappy prepossession for that worthless
11162 young man!--and without selfishness--without encouraging a hope!--could
11163 he have seen her happy with another--Such a noble mind!--such openness,
11164 such sincerity!--no one can be deceived in HIM."
11165
11166 "Colonel Brandon's character," said Elinor, "as an excellent man, is
11167 well established."
11168
11169 "I know it is,"--replied her mother seriously, "or after such a warning,
11170 I should be the last to encourage such affection, or even to be pleased
11171 by it. But his coming for me as he did, with such active, such ready
11172 friendship, is enough to prove him one of the worthiest of men."
11173
11174 "His character, however," answered Elinor, "does not rest on ONE act of
11175 kindness, to which his affection for Marianne, were humanity out of the
11176 case, would have prompted him. To Mrs. Jennings, to the Middletons, he
11177 has been long and intimately known; they equally love and respect him;
11178 and even my own knowledge of him, though lately acquired, is very
11179 considerable; and so highly do I value and esteem him, that if Marianne
11180 can be happy with him, I shall be as ready as yourself to think our
11181 connection the greatest blessing to us in the world. What answer did
11182 you give him?--Did you allow him to hope?"
11183
11184 "Oh! my love, I could not then talk of hope to him or to myself.
11185 Marianne might at that moment be dying. But he did not ask for hope or
11186 encouragement. His was an involuntary confidence, an irrepressible
11187 effusion to a soothing friend--not an application to a parent. Yet
11188 after a time I DID say, for at first I was quite overcome--that if she
11189 lived, as I trusted she might, my greatest happiness would lie in
11190 promoting their marriage; and since our arrival, since our delightful
11191 security, I have repeated it to him more fully, have given him every
11192 encouragement in my power. Time, a very little time, I tell him, will
11193 do everything;--Marianne's heart is not to be wasted for ever on such a
11194 man as Willoughby.-- His own merits must soon secure it."
11195
11196 "To judge from the Colonel's spirits, however, you have not yet made
11197 him equally sanguine."
11198
11199 "No.--He thinks Marianne's affection too deeply rooted for any change
11200 in it under a great length of time, and even supposing her heart again
11201 free, is too diffident of himself to believe, that with such a
11202 difference of age and disposition he could ever attach her. There,
11203 however, he is quite mistaken. His age is only so much beyond hers as
11204 to be an advantage, as to make his character and principles fixed;--and
11205 his disposition, I am well convinced, is exactly the very one to make
11206 your sister happy. And his person, his manners too, are all in his
11207 favour. My partiality does not blind me; he certainly is not so
11208 handsome as Willoughby--but at the same time, there is something much
11209 more pleasing in his countenance.-- There was always a something,--if
11210 you remember,--in Willoughby's eyes at times, which I did not like."
11211
11212 Elinor could NOT remember it;--but her mother, without waiting for her
11213 assent, continued,
11214
11215 "And his manners, the Colonel's manners are not only more pleasing to
11216 me than Willoughby's ever were, but they are of a kind I well know to
11217 be more solidly attaching to Marianne. Their gentleness, their genuine
11218 attention to other people, and their manly unstudied simplicity is much
11219 more accordant with her real disposition, than the liveliness--often
11220 artificial, and often ill-timed of the other. I am very sure myself,
11221 that had Willoughby turned out as really amiable, as he has proved
11222 himself the contrary, Marianne would yet never have been so happy with
11223 HIM, as she will be with Colonel Brandon."
11224
11225 She paused.--Her daughter could not quite agree with her, but her
11226 dissent was not heard, and therefore gave no offence.
11227
11228 "At Delaford, she will be within an easy distance of me," added Mrs.
11229 Dashwood, "even if I remain at Barton; and in all probability,--for I
11230 hear it is a large village,--indeed there certainly MUST be some small
11231 house or cottage close by, that would suit us quite as well as our
11232 present situation."
11233
11234 Poor Elinor!--here was a new scheme for getting her to Delaford!--but
11235 her spirit was stubborn.
11236
11237 "His fortune too!--for at my time of life you know, everybody cares
11238 about THAT;--and though I neither know nor desire to know, what it
11239 really is, I am sure it must be a good one."
11240
11241 Here they were interrupted by the entrance of a third person, and
11242 Elinor withdrew to think it all over in private, to wish success to her
11243 friend, and yet in wishing it, to feel a pang for Willoughby.
11244
11245
11246
11247 CHAPTER 46
11248
11249
11250 Marianne's illness, though weakening in its kind, had not been long
11251 enough to make her recovery slow; and with youth, natural strength, and
11252 her mother's presence in aid, it proceeded so smoothly as to enable her
11253 to remove, within four days after the arrival of the latter, into Mrs.
11254 Palmer's dressing-room. When there, at her own particular request, for
11255 she was impatient to pour forth her thanks to him for fetching her
11256 mother, Colonel Brandon was invited to visit her.
11257
11258 His emotion on entering the room, in seeing her altered looks, and in
11259 receiving the pale hand which she immediately held out to him, was
11260 such, as, in Elinor's conjecture, must arise from something more than
11261 his affection for Marianne, or the consciousness of its being known to
11262 others; and she soon discovered in his melancholy eye and varying
11263 complexion as he looked at her sister, the probable recurrence of many
11264 past scenes of misery to his mind, brought back by that resemblance
11265 between Marianne and Eliza already acknowledged, and now strengthened
11266 by the hollow eye, the sickly skin, the posture of reclining weakness,
11267 and the warm acknowledgment of peculiar obligation.
11268
11269 Mrs. Dashwood, not less watchful of what passed than her daughter, but
11270 with a mind very differently influenced, and therefore watching to very
11271 different effect, saw nothing in the Colonel's behaviour but what arose
11272 from the most simple and self-evident sensations, while in the actions
11273 and words of Marianne she persuaded herself to think that something
11274 more than gratitude already dawned.
11275
11276 At the end of another day or two, Marianne growing visibly stronger
11277 every twelve hours, Mrs. Dashwood, urged equally by her own and her
11278 daughter's wishes, began to talk of removing to Barton. On HER
11279 measures depended those of her two friends; Mrs. Jennings could not
11280 quit Cleveland during the Dashwoods' stay; and Colonel Brandon was soon
11281 brought, by their united request, to consider his own abode there as
11282 equally determinate, if not equally indispensable. At his and Mrs.
11283 Jennings's united request in return, Mrs. Dashwood was prevailed on to
11284 accept the use of his carriage on her journey back, for the better
11285 accommodation of her sick child; and the Colonel, at the joint
11286 invitation of Mrs. Dashwood and Mrs. Jennings, whose active good-nature
11287 made her friendly and hospitable for other people as well as herself,
11288 engaged with pleasure to redeem it by a visit at the cottage, in the
11289 course of a few weeks.
11290
11291 The day of separation and departure arrived; and Marianne, after taking
11292 so particular and lengthened a leave of Mrs. Jennings, one so earnestly
11293 grateful, so full of respect and kind wishes as seemed due to her own
11294 heart from a secret acknowledgment of past inattention, and bidding
11295 Colonel Brandon farewell with a cordiality of a friend, was carefully
11296 assisted by him into the carriage, of which he seemed anxious that she
11297 should engross at least half. Mrs. Dashwood and Elinor then followed,
11298 and the others were left by themselves, to talk of the travellers, and
11299 feel their own dullness, till Mrs. Jennings was summoned to her chaise
11300 to take comfort in the gossip of her maid for the loss of her two young
11301 companions; and Colonel Brandon immediately afterwards took his
11302 solitary way to Delaford.
11303
11304 The Dashwoods were two days on the road, and Marianne bore her journey
11305 on both, without essential fatigue. Every thing that the most zealous
11306 affection, the most solicitous care could do to render her comfortable,
11307 was the office of each watchful companion, and each found their reward
11308 in her bodily ease, and her calmness of spirits. To Elinor, the
11309 observation of the latter was particularly grateful. She, who had seen
11310 her week after week so constantly suffering, oppressed by anguish of
11311 heart which she had neither courage to speak of, nor fortitude to
11312 conceal, now saw with a joy, which no other could equally share, an
11313 apparent composure of mind, which, in being the result as she trusted
11314 of serious reflection, must eventually lead her to contentment and
11315 cheerfulness.
11316
11317 As they approached Barton, indeed, and entered on scenes of which every
11318 field and every tree brought some peculiar, some painful recollection,
11319 she grew silent and thoughtful, and turning away her face from their
11320 notice, sat earnestly gazing through the window. But here, Elinor
11321 could neither wonder nor blame; and when she saw, as she assisted
11322 Marianne from the carriage, that she had been crying, she saw only an
11323 emotion too natural in itself to raise any thing less tender than pity,
11324 and in its unobtrusiveness entitled to praise. In the whole of her
11325 subsequent manner, she traced the direction of a mind awakened to
11326 reasonable exertion; for no sooner had they entered their common
11327 sitting-room, than Marianne turned her eyes around it with a look of
11328 resolute firmness, as if determined at once to accustom herself to the
11329 sight of every object with which the remembrance of Willoughby could be
11330 connected.--She said little, but every sentence aimed at cheerfulness,
11331 and though a sigh sometimes escaped her, it never passed away without
11332 the atonement of a smile. After dinner she would try her piano-forte.
11333 She went to it; but the music on which her eye first rested was an
11334 opera, procured for her by Willoughby, containing some of their
11335 favourite duets, and bearing on its outward leaf her own name in his
11336 hand-writing.--That would not do.--She shook her head, put the music
11337 aside, and after running over the keys for a minute, complained of
11338 feebleness in her fingers, and closed the instrument again; declaring
11339 however with firmness as she did so, that she should in future practice
11340 much.
11341
11342 The next morning produced no abatement in these happy symptoms. On the
11343 contrary, with a mind and body alike strengthened by rest, she looked
11344 and spoke with more genuine spirit, anticipating the pleasure of
11345 Margaret's return, and talking of the dear family party which would
11346 then be restored, of their mutual pursuits and cheerful society, as the
11347 only happiness worth a wish.
11348
11349 "When the weather is settled, and I have recovered my strength," said
11350 she, "we will take long walks together every day. We will walk to the
11351 farm at the edge of the down, and see how the children go on; we will
11352 walk to Sir John's new plantations at Barton Cross, and the Abbeyland;
11353 and we will often go to the old ruins of the Priory, and try to trace its
11354 foundations as far as we are told they once reached. I know we shall
11355 be happy. I know the summer will pass happily away. I mean never to
11356 be later in rising than six, and from that time till dinner I shall
11357 divide every moment between music and reading. I have formed my plan,
11358 and am determined to enter on a course of serious study. Our own
11359 library is too well known to me, to be resorted to for any thing beyond
11360 mere amusement. But there are many works well worth reading at the
11361 Park; and there are others of more modern production which I know I can
11362 borrow of Colonel Brandon. By reading only six hours a-day, I shall
11363 gain in the course of a twelve-month a great deal of instruction which
11364 I now feel myself to want."
11365
11366 Elinor honoured her for a plan which originated so nobly as this;
11367 though smiling to see the same eager fancy which had been leading her
11368 to the extreme of languid indolence and selfish repining, now at work
11369 in introducing excess into a scheme of such rational employment and
11370 virtuous self-control. Her smile however changed to a sigh when she
11371 remembered that promise to Willoughby was yet unfulfilled, and feared
11372 she had that to communicate which might again unsettle the mind of
11373 Marianne, and ruin at least for a time this fair prospect of busy
11374 tranquillity. Willing therefore to delay the evil hour, she resolved
11375 to wait till her sister's health were more secure, before she appointed
11376 it. But the resolution was made only to be broken.
11377
11378 Marianne had been two or three days at home, before the weather was
11379 fine enough for an invalid like herself to venture out. But at last a
11380 soft, genial morning appeared; such as might tempt the daughter's
11381 wishes and the mother's confidence; and Marianne, leaning on Elinor's
11382 arm, was authorised to walk as long as she could without fatigue, in
11383 the lane before the house.
11384
11385 The sisters set out at a pace, slow as the feebleness of Marianne in an
11386 exercise hitherto untried since her illness required;--and they had
11387 advanced only so far beyond the house as to admit a full view of the
11388 hill, the important hill behind, when pausing with her eyes turned
11389 towards it, Marianne calmly said,
11390
11391 "There, exactly there,"--pointing with one hand, "on that projecting
11392 mound,--there I fell; and there I first saw Willoughby."
11393
11394 Her voice sunk with the word, but presently reviving she added,
11395
11396 "I am thankful to find that I can look with so little pain on the
11397 spot!--shall we ever talk on that subject, Elinor?"--hesitatingly it
11398 was said.--"Or will it be wrong?--I can talk of it now, I hope, as I
11399 ought to do."--
11400
11401 Elinor tenderly invited her to be open.
11402
11403 "As for regret," said Marianne, "I have done with that, as far as HE is
11404 concerned. I do not mean to talk to you of what my feelings have been
11405 for him, but what they are NOW.--At present, if I could be satisfied on
11406 one point, if I could be allowed to think that he was not ALWAYS acting
11407 a part, not ALWAYS deceiving me;--but above all, if I could be assured
11408 that he never was so VERY wicked as my fears have sometimes fancied
11409 him, since the story of that unfortunate girl"--
11410
11411 She stopt. Elinor joyfully treasured her words as she answered,
11412
11413 "If you could be assured of that, you think you should be easy."
11414
11415 "Yes. My peace of mind is doubly involved in it;--for not only is it
11416 horrible to suspect a person, who has been what HE has been to ME, of
11417 such designs,--but what must it make me appear to myself?--What in a
11418 situation like mine, but a most shamefully unguarded affection could
11419 expose me to"--
11420
11421 "How then," asked her sister, "would you account for his behaviour?"
11422
11423 "I would suppose him,--Oh, how gladly would I suppose him, only fickle,
11424 very, very fickle."
11425
11426 Elinor said no more. She was debating within herself on the
11427 eligibility of beginning her story directly, or postponing it till
11428 Marianne were in stronger health;--and they crept on for a few minutes
11429 in silence.
11430
11431 "I am not wishing him too much good," said Marianne at last with a
11432 sigh, "when I wish his secret reflections may be no more unpleasant
11433 than my own. He will suffer enough in them."
11434
11435 "Do you compare your conduct with his?"
11436
11437 "No. I compare it with what it ought to have been; I compare it with
11438 yours."
11439
11440 "Our situations have borne little resemblance."
11441
11442 "They have borne more than our conduct.--Do not, my dearest Elinor, let
11443 your kindness defend what I know your judgment must censure. My
11444 illness has made me think-- It has given me leisure and calmness for
11445 serious recollection. Long before I was enough recovered to talk, I
11446 was perfectly able to reflect. I considered the past: I saw in my own
11447 behaviour, since the beginning of our acquaintance with him last
11448 autumn, nothing but a series of imprudence towards myself, and want of
11449 kindness to others. I saw that my own feelings had prepared my
11450 sufferings, and that my want of fortitude under them had almost led me
11451 to the grave. My illness, I well knew, had been entirely brought on by
11452 myself by such negligence of my own health, as I had felt even at the
11453 time to be wrong. Had I died,--it would have been self-destruction. I
11454 did not know my danger till the danger was removed; but with such
11455 feelings as these reflections gave me, I wonder at my recovery,--wonder
11456 that the very eagerness of my desire to live, to have time for
11457 atonement to my God, and to you all, did not kill me at once. Had I
11458 died,--in what peculiar misery should I have left you, my nurse, my
11459 friend, my sister!--You, who had seen all the fretful selfishness of my
11460 latter days; who had known all the murmurings of my heart!--How should
11461 I have lived in YOUR remembrance!--My mother too! How could you have
11462 consoled her!--I cannot express my own abhorrence of myself. Whenever
11463 I looked towards the past, I saw some duty neglected, or some failing
11464 indulged. Every body seemed injured by me. The kindness, the
11465 unceasing kindness of Mrs. Jennings, I had repaid with ungrateful
11466 contempt. To the Middletons, to the Palmers, the Steeles, to every
11467 common acquaintance even, I had been insolent and unjust; with a heart
11468 hardened against their merits, and a temper irritated by their very
11469 attention.--To John, to Fanny,--yes, even to them, little as they
11470 deserve, I had given less than their due. But you,--you above all,
11471 above my mother, had been wronged by me. I, and only I, knew your
11472 heart and its sorrows; yet to what did it influence me?--not to any
11473 compassion that could benefit you or myself.--Your example was before
11474 me; but to what avail?--Was I more considerate of you and your comfort?
11475 Did I imitate your forbearance, or lessen your restraints, by taking
11476 any part in those offices of general complaisance or particular
11477 gratitude which you had hitherto been left to discharge
11478 alone?--No;--not less when I knew you to be unhappy, than when I had
11479 believed you at ease, did I turn away from every exertion of duty or
11480 friendship; scarcely allowing sorrow to exist but with me, regretting
11481 only THAT heart which had deserted and wronged me, and leaving you, for
11482 whom I professed an unbounded affection, to be miserable for my sake."
11483
11484 Here ceased the rapid flow of her self-reproving spirit; and Elinor,
11485 impatient to soothe, though too honest to flatter, gave her instantly
11486 that praise and support which her frankness and her contrition so well
11487 deserved. Marianne pressed her hand and replied,
11488
11489 "You are very good.--The future must be my proof. I have laid down my
11490 plan, and if I am capable of adhering to it--my feelings shall be
11491 governed and my temper improved. They shall no longer worry others,
11492 nor torture myself. I shall now live solely for my family. You, my
11493 mother, and Margaret, must henceforth be all the world to me; you will
11494 share my affections entirely between you. From you, from my home, I
11495 shall never again have the smallest incitement to move; and if I do mix
11496 in other society, it will be only to shew that my spirit is humbled, my
11497 heart amended, and that I can practise the civilities, the lesser
11498 duties of life, with gentleness and forbearance. As for Willoughby--to
11499 say that I shall soon or that I shall ever forget him, would be idle.
11500 His remembrance can be overcome by no change of circumstances or
11501 opinions. But it shall be regulated, it shall be checked by religion,
11502 by reason, by constant employment."
11503
11504 She paused--and added in a low voice, "If I could but know HIS heart,
11505 everything would become easy."
11506
11507 Elinor, who had now been for some time reflecting on the propriety or
11508 impropriety of speedily hazarding her narration, without feeling at all
11509 nearer decision than at first, heard this; and perceiving that as
11510 reflection did nothing, resolution must do all, soon found herself
11511 leading to the fact.
11512
11513 She managed the recital, as she hoped, with address; prepared her
11514 anxious listener with caution; related simply and honestly the chief
11515 points on which Willoughby grounded his apology; did justice to his
11516 repentance, and softened only his protestations of present regard.
11517 Marianne said not a word.--She trembled, her eyes were fixed on the
11518 ground, and her lips became whiter than even sickness had left them. A
11519 thousand inquiries sprung up from her heart, but she dared not urge
11520 one. She caught every syllable with panting eagerness; her hand,
11521 unknowingly to herself, closely pressed her sister's, and tears covered
11522 her cheeks.
11523
11524 Elinor, dreading her being tired, led her towards home; and till they
11525 reached the door of the cottage, easily conjecturing what her curiosity
11526 must be though no question was suffered to speak it, talked of nothing
11527 but Willoughby, and their conversation together; and was carefully
11528 minute in every particular of speech and look, where minuteness could
11529 be safely indulged. As soon as they entered the house, Marianne with a
11530 kiss of gratitude and these two words just articulate through her
11531 tears, "Tell mama," withdrew from her sister and walked slowly up
11532 stairs. Elinor would not attempt to disturb a solitude so reasonable
11533 as what she now sought; and with a mind anxiously pre-arranging its
11534 result, and a resolution of reviving the subject again, should Marianne
11535 fail to do it, she turned into the parlour to fulfill her parting
11536 injunction.
11537
11538
11539
11540 CHAPTER 47
11541
11542
11543 Mrs. Dashwood did not hear unmoved the vindication of her former
11544 favourite. She rejoiced in his being cleared from some part of his
11545 imputed guilt;--she was sorry for him;--she wished him happy. But the
11546 feelings of the past could not be recalled.--Nothing could restore him
11547 with a faith unbroken--a character unblemished, to Marianne. Nothing
11548 could do away the knowledge of what the latter had suffered through his
11549 means, nor remove the guilt of his conduct towards Eliza. Nothing
11550 could replace him, therefore, in her former esteem, nor injure the
11551 interests of Colonel Brandon.
11552
11553 Had Mrs. Dashwood, like her daughter, heard Willoughby's story from
11554 himself--had she witnessed his distress, and been under the influence
11555 of his countenance and his manner, it is probable that her compassion
11556 would have been greater. But it was neither in Elinor's power, nor in
11557 her wish, to rouse such feelings in another, by her retailed
11558 explanation, as had at first been called forth in herself. Reflection
11559 had given calmness to her judgment, and sobered her own opinion of
11560 Willoughby's deserts;--she wished, therefore, to declare only the
11561 simple truth, and lay open such facts as were really due to his
11562 character, without any embellishment of tenderness to lead the fancy
11563 astray.
11564
11565 In the evening, when they were all three together, Marianne began
11566 voluntarily to speak of him again;--but that it was not without an
11567 effort, the restless, unquiet thoughtfulness in which she had been for
11568 some time previously sitting--her rising colour, as she spoke,--and her
11569 unsteady voice, plainly shewed.
11570
11571 "I wish to assure you both," said she, "that I see every thing--as you
11572 can desire me to do."
11573
11574 Mrs. Dashwood would have interrupted her instantly with soothing
11575 tenderness, had not Elinor, who really wished to hear her sister's
11576 unbiased opinion, by an eager sign, engaged her silence. Marianne
11577 slowly continued--
11578
11579 "It is a great relief to me--what Elinor told me this morning--I have
11580 now heard exactly what I wished to hear."--For some moments her voice
11581 was lost; but recovering herself, she added, and with greater calmness
11582 than before--"I am now perfectly satisfied, I wish for no change. I
11583 never could have been happy with him, after knowing, as sooner or later
11584 I must have known, all this.--I should have had no confidence, no
11585 esteem. Nothing could have done it away to my feelings."
11586
11587 "I know it--I know it," cried her mother. "Happy with a man of
11588 libertine practices!--With one who so injured the peace of the dearest
11589 of our friends, and the best of men!--No--my Marianne has not a heart
11590 to be made happy with such a man!--Her conscience, her sensitive
11591 conscience, would have felt all that the conscience of her husband
11592 ought to have felt."
11593
11594 Marianne sighed, and repeated, "I wish for no change."
11595
11596 "You consider the matter," said Elinor, "exactly as a good mind and a
11597 sound understanding must consider it; and I dare say you perceive, as
11598 well as myself, not only in this, but in many other circumstances,
11599 reason enough to be convinced that your marriage must have involved you
11600 in many certain troubles and disappointments, in which you would have
11601 been poorly supported by an affection, on his side, much less certain.
11602 Had you married, you must have been always poor. His expensiveness is
11603 acknowledged even by himself, and his whole conduct declares that
11604 self-denial is a word hardly understood by him. His demands and your
11605 inexperience together, on a small, very small income, must have brought
11606 on distresses which would not be the LESS grievous to you, from having
11607 been entirely unknown and unthought of before. YOUR sense of honour
11608 and honesty would have led you, I know, when aware of your situation,
11609 to attempt all the economy that would appear to you possible: and,
11610 perhaps, as long as your frugality retrenched only on your own comfort,
11611 you might have been suffered to practice it, but beyond that--and how
11612 little could the utmost of your single management do to stop the ruin
11613 which had begun before your marriage?-- Beyond THAT, had you
11614 endeavoured, however reasonably, to abridge HIS enjoyments, is it not
11615 to be feared, that instead of prevailing on feelings so selfish to
11616 consent to it, you would have lessened your own influence on his heart,
11617 and made him regret the connection which had involved him in such
11618 difficulties?"
11619
11620 Marianne's lips quivered, and she repeated the word "Selfish?" in a
11621 tone that implied--"do you really think him selfish?"
11622
11623 "The whole of his behaviour," replied Elinor, "from the beginning to
11624 the end of the affair, has been grounded on selfishness. It was
11625 selfishness which first made him sport with your affections; which
11626 afterwards, when his own were engaged, made him delay the confession of
11627 it, and which finally carried him from Barton. His own enjoyment, or
11628 his own ease, was, in every particular, his ruling principle."
11629
11630 "It is very true. MY happiness never was his object."
11631
11632 "At present," continued Elinor, "he regrets what he has done. And why
11633 does he regret it?--Because he finds it has not answered towards
11634 himself. It has not made him happy. His circumstances are now
11635 unembarrassed--he suffers from no evil of that kind; and he thinks only
11636 that he has married a woman of a less amiable temper than yourself.
11637 But does it follow that had he married you, he would have been
11638 happy?--The inconveniences would have been different. He would then
11639 have suffered under the pecuniary distresses which, because they are
11640 removed, he now reckons as nothing. He would have had a wife of whose
11641 temper he could make no complaint, but he would have been always
11642 necessitous--always poor; and probably would soon have learned to rank
11643 the innumerable comforts of a clear estate and good income as of far
11644 more importance, even to domestic happiness, than the mere temper of a
11645 wife."
11646
11647 "I have not a doubt of it," said Marianne; "and I have nothing to
11648 regret--nothing but my own folly."
11649
11650 "Rather say your mother's imprudence, my child," said Mrs. Dashwood;
11651 "SHE must be answerable."
11652
11653 Marianne would not let her proceed;--and Elinor, satisfied that each
11654 felt their own error, wished to avoid any survey of the past that might
11655 weaken her sister's spirits; she, therefore, pursuing the first
11656 subject, immediately continued,
11657
11658 "One observation may, I think, be fairly drawn from the whole of the
11659 story--that all Willoughby's difficulties have arisen from the first
11660 offence against virtue, in his behaviour to Eliza Williams. That crime
11661 has been the origin of every lesser one, and of all his present
11662 discontents."
11663
11664 Marianne assented most feelingly to the remark; and her mother was led
11665 by it to an enumeration of Colonel Brandon's injuries and merits, warm
11666 as friendship and design could unitedly dictate. Her daughter did not
11667 look, however, as if much of it were heard by her.
11668
11669 Elinor, according to her expectation, saw on the two or three following
11670 days, that Marianne did not continue to gain strength as she had done;
11671 but while her resolution was unsubdued, and she still tried to appear
11672 cheerful and easy, her sister could safely trust to the effect of time
11673 upon her health.
11674
11675 Margaret returned, and the family were again all restored to each
11676 other, again quietly settled at the cottage; and if not pursuing their
11677 usual studies with quite so much vigour as when they first came to
11678 Barton, at least planning a vigorous prosecution of them in future.
11679
11680 Elinor grew impatient for some tidings of Edward. She had heard
11681 nothing of him since her leaving London, nothing new of his plans,
11682 nothing certain even of his present abode. Some letters had passed
11683 between her and her brother, in consequence of Marianne's illness; and
11684 in the first of John's, there had been this sentence:-- "We know
11685 nothing of our unfortunate Edward, and can make no enquiries on so
11686 prohibited a subject, but conclude him to be still at Oxford;" which
11687 was all the intelligence of Edward afforded her by the correspondence,
11688 for his name was not even mentioned in any of the succeeding letters.
11689 She was not doomed, however, to be long in ignorance of his measures.
11690
11691 Their man-servant had been sent one morning to Exeter on business; and
11692 when, as he waited at table, he had satisfied the inquiries of his
11693 mistress as to the event of his errand, this was his voluntary
11694 communication--
11695
11696 "I suppose you know, ma'am, that Mr. Ferrars is married."
11697
11698 Marianne gave a violent start, fixed her eyes upon Elinor, saw her
11699 turning pale, and fell back in her chair in hysterics. Mrs. Dashwood,
11700 whose eyes, as she answered the servant's inquiry, had intuitively
11701 taken the same direction, was shocked to perceive by Elinor's
11702 countenance how much she really suffered, and a moment afterwards,
11703 alike distressed by Marianne's situation, knew not on which child to
11704 bestow her principal attention.
11705
11706 The servant, who saw only that Miss Marianne was taken ill, had sense
11707 enough to call one of the maids, who, with Mrs. Dashwood's assistance,
11708 supported her into the other room. By that time, Marianne was rather
11709 better, and her mother leaving her to the care of Margaret and the
11710 maid, returned to Elinor, who, though still much disordered, had so far
11711 recovered the use of her reason and voice as to be just beginning an
11712 inquiry of Thomas, as to the source of his intelligence. Mrs. Dashwood
11713 immediately took all that trouble on herself; and Elinor had the
11714 benefit of the information without the exertion of seeking it.
11715
11716 "Who told you that Mr. Ferrars was married, Thomas?"
11717
11718 "I see Mr. Ferrars myself, ma'am, this morning in Exeter, and his lady
11719 too, Miss Steele as was. They was stopping in a chaise at the door of
11720 the New London Inn, as I went there with a message from Sally at the
11721 Park to her brother, who is one of the post-boys. I happened to look up
11722 as I went by the chaise, and so I see directly it was the youngest Miss
11723 Steele; so I took off my hat, and she knew me and called to me, and
11724 inquired after you, ma'am, and the young ladies, especially Miss
11725 Marianne, and bid me I should give her compliments and Mr. Ferrars's,
11726 their best compliments and service, and how sorry they was they had not
11727 time to come on and see you, but they was in a great hurry to go
11728 forwards, for they was going further down for a little while, but
11729 howsever, when they come back, they'd make sure to come and see you."
11730
11731 "But did she tell you she was married, Thomas?"
11732
11733 "Yes, ma'am. She smiled, and said how she had changed her name since
11734 she was in these parts. She was always a very affable and free-spoken
11735 young lady, and very civil behaved. So, I made free to wish her joy."
11736
11737 "Was Mr. Ferrars in the carriage with her?"
11738
11739 "Yes, ma'am, I just see him leaning back in it, but he did not look
11740 up;--he never was a gentleman much for talking."
11741
11742 Elinor's heart could easily account for his not putting himself
11743 forward; and Mrs. Dashwood probably found the same explanation.
11744
11745 "Was there no one else in the carriage?"
11746
11747 "No, ma'am, only they two."
11748
11749 "Do you know where they came from?"
11750
11751 "They come straight from town, as Miss Lucy--Mrs. Ferrars told me."
11752
11753 "And are they going farther westward?"
11754
11755 "Yes, ma'am--but not to bide long. They will soon be back again, and
11756 then they'd be sure and call here."
11757
11758 Mrs. Dashwood now looked at her daughter; but Elinor knew better than
11759 to expect them. She recognised the whole of Lucy in the message, and
11760 was very confident that Edward would never come near them. She
11761 observed in a low voice, to her mother, that they were probably going
11762 down to Mr. Pratt's, near Plymouth.
11763
11764 Thomas's intelligence seemed over. Elinor looked as if she wished to
11765 hear more.
11766
11767 "Did you see them off, before you came away?"
11768
11769 "No, ma'am--the horses were just coming out, but I could not bide any
11770 longer; I was afraid of being late."
11771
11772 "Did Mrs. Ferrars look well?"
11773
11774 "Yes, ma'am, she said how she was very well; and to my mind she was
11775 always a very handsome young lady--and she seemed vastly contented."
11776
11777 Mrs. Dashwood could think of no other question, and Thomas and the
11778 tablecloth, now alike needless, were soon afterwards dismissed.
11779 Marianne had already sent to say, that she should eat nothing more.
11780 Mrs. Dashwood's and Elinor's appetites were equally lost, and Margaret
11781 might think herself very well off, that with so much uneasiness as both
11782 her sisters had lately experienced, so much reason as they had often
11783 had to be careless of their meals, she had never been obliged to go
11784 without her dinner before.
11785
11786 When the dessert and the wine were arranged, and Mrs. Dashwood and
11787 Elinor were left by themselves, they remained long together in a
11788 similarity of thoughtfulness and silence. Mrs. Dashwood feared to
11789 hazard any remark, and ventured not to offer consolation. She now
11790 found that she had erred in relying on Elinor's representation of
11791 herself; and justly concluded that every thing had been expressly
11792 softened at the time, to spare her from an increase of unhappiness,
11793 suffering as she then had suffered for Marianne. She found that she
11794 had been misled by the careful, the considerate attention of her
11795 daughter, to think the attachment, which once she had so well
11796 understood, much slighter in reality, than she had been wont to
11797 believe, or than it was now proved to be. She feared that under this
11798 persuasion she had been unjust, inattentive, nay, almost unkind, to her
11799 Elinor;--that Marianne's affliction, because more acknowledged, more
11800 immediately before her, had too much engrossed her tenderness, and led
11801 her away to forget that in Elinor she might have a daughter suffering
11802 almost as much, certainly with less self-provocation, and greater
11803 fortitude.
11804
11805
11806
11807 CHAPTER 48
11808
11809
11810 Elinor now found the difference between the expectation of an
11811 unpleasant event, however certain the mind may be told to consider it,
11812 and certainty itself. She now found, that in spite of herself, she had
11813 always admitted a hope, while Edward remained single, that something
11814 would occur to prevent his marrying Lucy; that some resolution of his
11815 own, some mediation of friends, or some more eligible opportunity of
11816 establishment for the lady, would arise to assist the happiness of all.
11817 But he was now married; and she condemned her heart for the lurking
11818 flattery, which so much heightened the pain of the intelligence.
11819
11820 That he should be married soon, before (as she imagined) he could be in
11821 orders, and consequently before he could be in possession of the
11822 living, surprised her a little at first. But she soon saw how likely
11823 it was that Lucy, in her self-provident care, in her haste to secure
11824 him, should overlook every thing but the risk of delay. They were
11825 married, married in town, and now hastening down to her uncle's. What
11826 had Edward felt on being within four miles from Barton, on seeing her
11827 mother's servant, on hearing Lucy's message!
11828
11829 They would soon, she supposed, be settled at Delaford.--Delaford,--that
11830 place in which so much conspired to give her an interest; which she
11831 wished to be acquainted with, and yet desired to avoid. She saw them
11832 in an instant in their parsonage-house; saw in Lucy, the active,
11833 contriving manager, uniting at once a desire of smart appearance with
11834 the utmost frugality, and ashamed to be suspected of half her
11835 economical practices;--pursuing her own interest in every thought,
11836 courting the favour of Colonel Brandon, of Mrs. Jennings, and of every
11837 wealthy friend. In Edward--she knew not what she saw, nor what she
11838 wished to see;--happy or unhappy,--nothing pleased her; she turned away
11839 her head from every sketch of him.
11840
11841 Elinor flattered herself that some one of their connections in London
11842 would write to them to announce the event, and give farther
11843 particulars,--but day after day passed off, and brought no letter, no
11844 tidings. Though uncertain that any one were to blame, she found fault
11845 with every absent friend. They were all thoughtless or indolent.
11846
11847 "When do you write to Colonel Brandon, ma'am?" was an inquiry which
11848 sprung from the impatience of her mind to have something going on.
11849
11850 "I wrote to him, my love, last week, and rather expect to see, than to
11851 hear from him again. I earnestly pressed his coming to us, and should
11852 not be surprised to see him walk in today or tomorrow, or any day."
11853
11854 This was gaining something, something to look forward to. Colonel
11855 Brandon must have some information to give.
11856
11857 Scarcely had she so determined it, when the figure of a man on
11858 horseback drew her eyes to the window. He stopt at their gate. It was
11859 a gentleman, it was Colonel Brandon himself. Now she could hear more;
11860 and she trembled in expectation of it. But--it was NOT Colonel
11861 Brandon--neither his air--nor his height. Were it possible, she must
11862 say it must be Edward. She looked again. He had just dismounted;--she
11863 could not be mistaken,--it WAS Edward. She moved away and sat down.
11864 "He comes from Mr. Pratt's purposely to see us. I WILL be calm; I WILL
11865 be mistress of myself."
11866
11867 In a moment she perceived that the others were likewise aware of the
11868 mistake. She saw her mother and Marianne change colour; saw them look
11869 at herself, and whisper a few sentences to each other. She would have
11870 given the world to be able to speak--and to make them understand that
11871 she hoped no coolness, no slight, would appear in their behaviour to
11872 him;--but she had no utterance, and was obliged to leave all to their
11873 own discretion.
11874
11875 Not a syllable passed aloud. They all waited in silence for the
11876 appearance of their visitor. His footsteps were heard along the gravel
11877 path; in a moment he was in the passage, and in another he was before
11878 them.
11879
11880 His countenance, as he entered the room, was not too happy, even for
11881 Elinor. His complexion was white with agitation, and he looked as if
11882 fearful of his reception, and conscious that he merited no kind one.
11883 Mrs. Dashwood, however, conforming, as she trusted, to the wishes of
11884 that daughter, by whom she then meant in the warmth of her heart to be
11885 guided in every thing, met with a look of forced complacency, gave him
11886 her hand, and wished him joy.
11887
11888 He coloured, and stammered out an unintelligible reply. Elinor's lips
11889 had moved with her mother's, and, when the moment of action was over,
11890 she wished that she had shaken hands with him too. But it was then too
11891 late, and with a countenance meaning to be open, she sat down again and
11892 talked of the weather.
11893
11894 Marianne had retreated as much as possible out of sight, to conceal her
11895 distress; and Margaret, understanding some part, but not the whole of
11896 the case, thought it incumbent on her to be dignified, and therefore
11897 took a seat as far from him as she could, and maintained a strict
11898 silence.
11899
11900 When Elinor had ceased to rejoice in the dryness of the season, a very
11901 awful pause took place. It was put an end to by Mrs. Dashwood, who
11902 felt obliged to hope that he had left Mrs. Ferrars very well. In a
11903 hurried manner, he replied in the affirmative.
11904
11905 Another pause.
11906
11907 Elinor resolving to exert herself, though fearing the sound of her own
11908 voice, now said,
11909
11910 "Is Mrs. Ferrars at Longstaple?"
11911
11912 "At Longstaple!" he replied, with an air of surprise.-- "No, my mother
11913 is in town."
11914
11915 "I meant," said Elinor, taking up some work from the table, "to inquire
11916 for Mrs. EDWARD Ferrars."
11917
11918 She dared not look up;--but her mother and Marianne both turned their
11919 eyes on him. He coloured, seemed perplexed, looked doubtingly, and,
11920 after some hesitation, said,--
11921
11922 "Perhaps you mean--my brother--you mean Mrs.--Mrs. ROBERT Ferrars."
11923
11924 "Mrs. Robert Ferrars!"--was repeated by Marianne and her mother in an
11925 accent of the utmost amazement;--and though Elinor could not speak,
11926 even HER eyes were fixed on him with the same impatient wonder. He
11927 rose from his seat, and walked to the window, apparently from not
11928 knowing what to do; took up a pair of scissors that lay there, and
11929 while spoiling both them and their sheath by cutting the latter to
11930 pieces as he spoke, said, in a hurried voice,
11931
11932 "Perhaps you do not know--you may not have heard that my brother is
11933 lately married to--to the youngest--to Miss Lucy Steele."
11934
11935 His words were echoed with unspeakable astonishment by all but Elinor,
11936 who sat with her head leaning over her work, in a state of such
11937 agitation as made her hardly know where she was.
11938
11939 "Yes," said he, "they were married last week, and are now at Dawlish."
11940
11941 Elinor could sit it no longer. She almost ran out of the room, and as
11942 soon as the door was closed, burst into tears of joy, which at first
11943 she thought would never cease. Edward, who had till then looked any
11944 where, rather than at her, saw her hurry away, and perhaps saw--or even
11945 heard, her emotion; for immediately afterwards he fell into a reverie,
11946 which no remarks, no inquiries, no affectionate address of Mrs.
11947 Dashwood could penetrate, and at last, without saying a word, quitted
11948 the room, and walked out towards the village--leaving the others in the
11949 greatest astonishment and perplexity on a change in his situation, so
11950 wonderful and so sudden;--a perplexity which they had no means of
11951 lessening but by their own conjectures.
11952
11953
11954
11955 CHAPTER 49
11956
11957
11958 Unaccountable, however, as the circumstances of his release might
11959 appear to the whole family, it was certain that Edward was free; and to
11960 what purpose that freedom would be employed was easily pre-determined
11961 by all;--for after experiencing the blessings of ONE imprudent
11962 engagement, contracted without his mother's consent, as he had already
11963 done for more than four years, nothing less could be expected of him in
11964 the failure of THAT, than the immediate contraction of another.
11965
11966 His errand at Barton, in fact, was a simple one. It was only to ask
11967 Elinor to marry him;--and considering that he was not altogether
11968 inexperienced in such a question, it might be strange that he should
11969 feel so uncomfortable in the present case as he really did, so much in
11970 need of encouragement and fresh air.
11971
11972 How soon he had walked himself into the proper resolution, however, how
11973 soon an opportunity of exercising it occurred, in what manner he
11974 expressed himself, and how he was received, need not be particularly
11975 told. This only need be said;--that when they all sat down to table at
11976 four o'clock, about three hours after his arrival, he had secured his
11977 lady, engaged her mother's consent, and was not only in the rapturous
11978 profession of the lover, but, in the reality of reason and truth, one
11979 of the happiest of men. His situation indeed was more than commonly
11980 joyful. He had more than the ordinary triumph of accepted love to
11981 swell his heart, and raise his spirits. He was released without any
11982 reproach to himself, from an entanglement which had long formed his
11983 misery, from a woman whom he had long ceased to love;--and elevated at
11984 once to that security with another, which he must have thought of
11985 almost with despair, as soon as he had learnt to consider it with
11986 desire. He was brought, not from doubt or suspense, but from misery to
11987 happiness;--and the change was openly spoken in such a genuine,
11988 flowing, grateful cheerfulness, as his friends had never witnessed in
11989 him before.
11990
11991 His heart was now open to Elinor, all its weaknesses, all its errors
11992 confessed, and his first boyish attachment to Lucy treated with all the
11993 philosophic dignity of twenty-four.
11994
11995 "It was a foolish, idle inclination on my side," said he, "the
11996 consequence of ignorance of the world--and want of employment. Had my
11997 mother given me some active profession when I was removed at eighteen
11998 from the care of Mr. Pratt, I think--nay, I am sure, it would never
11999 have happened; for though I left Longstaple with what I thought, at the
12000 time, a most unconquerable preference for his niece, yet had I then had
12001 any pursuit, any object to engage my time and keep me at a distance
12002 from her for a few months, I should very soon have outgrown the fancied
12003 attachment, especially by mixing more with the world, as in such case I
12004 must have done. But instead of having any thing to do, instead of
12005 having any profession chosen for me, or being allowed to chuse any
12006 myself, I returned home to be completely idle; and for the first
12007 twelvemonth afterwards I had not even the nominal employment, which
12008 belonging to the university would have given me; for I was not entered
12009 at Oxford till I was nineteen. I had therefore nothing in the world to
12010 do, but to fancy myself in love; and as my mother did not make my home
12011 in every respect comfortable, as I had no friend, no companion in my
12012 brother, and disliked new acquaintance, it was not unnatural for me to
12013 be very often at Longstaple, where I always felt myself at home, and
12014 was always sure of a welcome; and accordingly I spent the greatest part
12015 of my time there from eighteen to nineteen: Lucy appeared everything
12016 that was amiable and obliging. She was pretty too--at least I thought
12017 so THEN; and I had seen so little of other women, that I could make no
12018 comparisons, and see no defects. Considering everything, therefore, I
12019 hope, foolish as our engagement was, foolish as it has since in every
12020 way been proved, it was not at the time an unnatural or an inexcusable
12021 piece of folly."
12022
12023 The change which a few hours had wrought in the minds and the happiness
12024 of the Dashwoods, was such--so great--as promised them all, the
12025 satisfaction of a sleepless night. Mrs. Dashwood, too happy to be
12026 comfortable, knew not how to love Edward, nor praise Elinor enough, how
12027 to be enough thankful for his release without wounding his delicacy,
12028 nor how at once to give them leisure for unrestrained conversation
12029 together, and yet enjoy, as she wished, the sight and society of both.
12030
12031 Marianne could speak HER happiness only by tears. Comparisons would
12032 occur--regrets would arise;--and her joy, though sincere as her love
12033 for her sister, was of a kind to give her neither spirits nor language.
12034
12035 But Elinor--how are HER feelings to be described?--From the moment of
12036 learning that Lucy was married to another, that Edward was free, to the
12037 moment of his justifying the hopes which had so instantly followed, she
12038 was every thing by turns but tranquil. But when the second moment had
12039 passed, when she found every doubt, every solicitude removed, compared
12040 her situation with what so lately it had been,--saw him honourably
12041 released from his former engagement, saw him instantly profiting by the
12042 release, to address herself and declare an affection as tender, as
12043 constant as she had ever supposed it to be,--she was oppressed, she was
12044 overcome by her own felicity;--and happily disposed as is the human
12045 mind to be easily familiarized with any change for the better, it
12046 required several hours to give sedateness to her spirits, or any degree
12047 of tranquillity to her heart.
12048
12049 Edward was now fixed at the cottage at least for a week;--for whatever
12050 other claims might be made on him, it was impossible that less than a
12051 week should be given up to the enjoyment of Elinor's company, or
12052 suffice to say half that was to be said of the past, the present, and
12053 the future;--for though a very few hours spent in the hard labor of
12054 incessant talking will despatch more subjects than can really be in
12055 common between any two rational creatures, yet with lovers it is
12056 different. Between THEM no subject is finished, no communication is
12057 even made, till it has been made at least twenty times over.
12058
12059 Lucy's marriage, the unceasing and reasonable wonder among them all,
12060 formed of course one of the earliest discussions of the lovers;--and
12061 Elinor's particular knowledge of each party made it appear to her in
12062 every view, as one of the most extraordinary and unaccountable
12063 circumstances she had ever heard. How they could be thrown together,
12064 and by what attraction Robert could be drawn on to marry a girl, of
12065 whose beauty she had herself heard him speak without any admiration,--a
12066 girl too already engaged to his brother, and on whose account that
12067 brother had been thrown off by his family--it was beyond her
12068 comprehension to make out. To her own heart it was a delightful
12069 affair, to her imagination it was even a ridiculous one, but to her
12070 reason, her judgment, it was completely a puzzle.
12071
12072 Edward could only attempt an explanation by supposing, that, perhaps,
12073 at first accidentally meeting, the vanity of the one had been so worked
12074 on by the flattery of the other, as to lead by degrees to all the rest.
12075 Elinor remembered what Robert had told her in Harley Street, of his
12076 opinion of what his own mediation in his brother's affairs might have
12077 done, if applied to in time. She repeated it to Edward.
12078
12079 "THAT was exactly like Robert,"--was his immediate observation.--"And
12080 THAT," he presently added, "might perhaps be in HIS head when the
12081 acquaintance between them first began. And Lucy perhaps at first might
12082 think only of procuring his good offices in my favour. Other designs
12083 might afterward arise."
12084
12085 How long it had been carrying on between them, however, he was equally
12086 at a loss with herself to make out; for at Oxford, where he had
12087 remained for choice ever since his quitting London, he had had no means
12088 of hearing of her but from herself, and her letters to the very last
12089 were neither less frequent, nor less affectionate than usual. Not the
12090 smallest suspicion, therefore, had ever occurred to prepare him for
12091 what followed;--and when at last it burst on him in a letter from Lucy
12092 herself, he had been for some time, he believed, half stupified between
12093 the wonder, the horror, and the joy of such a deliverance. He put the
12094 letter into Elinor's hands.
12095
12096 "DEAR SIR,
12097
12098 "Being very sure I have long lost your affections,
12099 I have thought myself at liberty to bestow my own
12100 on another, and have no doubt of being as happy with
12101 him as I once used to think I might be with you;
12102 but I scorn to accept a hand while the heart was
12103 another's. Sincerely wish you happy in your choice,
12104 and it shall not be my fault if we are not always
12105 good friends, as our near relationship now makes
12106 proper. I can safely say I owe you no ill-will,
12107 and am sure you will be too generous to do us any
12108 ill offices. Your brother has gained my affections
12109 entirely, and as we could not live without one
12110 another, we are just returned from the altar, and
12111 are now on our way to Dawlish for a few weeks, which
12112 place your dear brother has great curiosity to see,
12113 but thought I would first trouble you with these
12114 few lines, and shall always remain,
12115
12116 "Your sincere well-wisher, friend, and sister,
12117 "LUCY FERRARS.
12118
12119 "I have burnt all your letters, and will return
12120 your picture the first opportunity. Please to destroy
12121 my scrawls--but the ring with my hair you are very
12122 welcome to keep."
12123
12124 Elinor read and returned it without any comment.
12125
12126 "I will not ask your opinion of it as a composition," said
12127 Edward.--"For worlds would not I have had a letter of hers seen by YOU
12128 in former days.--In a sister it is bad enough, but in a wife!--how I
12129 have blushed over the pages of her writing!--and I believe I may say
12130 that since the first half year of our foolish--business--this is the
12131 only letter I ever received from her, of which the substance made me
12132 any amends for the defect of the style."
12133
12134 "However it may have come about," said Elinor, after a pause,--"they
12135 are certainly married. And your mother has brought on herself a most
12136 appropriate punishment. The independence she settled on Robert,
12137 through resentment against you, has put it in his power to make his own
12138 choice; and she has actually been bribing one son with a thousand
12139 a-year, to do the very deed which she disinherited the other for
12140 intending to do. She will hardly be less hurt, I suppose, by Robert's
12141 marrying Lucy, than she would have been by your marrying her."
12142
12143 "She will be more hurt by it, for Robert always was her favourite.--She
12144 will be more hurt by it, and on the same principle will forgive him
12145 much sooner."
12146
12147 In what state the affair stood at present between them, Edward knew
12148 not, for no communication with any of his family had yet been attempted
12149 by him. He had quitted Oxford within four and twenty hours after
12150 Lucy's letter arrived, and with only one object before him, the nearest
12151 road to Barton, had had no leisure to form any scheme of conduct, with
12152 which that road did not hold the most intimate connection. He could do
12153 nothing till he were assured of his fate with Miss Dashwood; and by his
12154 rapidity in seeking THAT fate, it is to be supposed, in spite of the
12155 jealousy with which he had once thought of Colonel Brandon, in spite of
12156 the modesty with which he rated his own deserts, and the politeness
12157 with which he talked of his doubts, he did not, upon the whole, expect
12158 a very cruel reception. It was his business, however, to say that he
12159 DID, and he said it very prettily. What he might say on the subject a
12160 twelvemonth after, must be referred to the imagination of husbands and
12161 wives.
12162
12163 That Lucy had certainly meant to deceive, to go off with a flourish of
12164 malice against him in her message by Thomas, was perfectly clear to
12165 Elinor; and Edward himself, now thoroughly enlightened on her
12166 character, had no scruple in believing her capable of the utmost
12167 meanness of wanton ill-nature. Though his eyes had been long opened,
12168 even before his acquaintance with Elinor began, to her ignorance and a
12169 want of liberality in some of her opinions--they had been equally
12170 imputed, by him, to her want of education; and till her last letter
12171 reached him, he had always believed her to be a well-disposed,
12172 good-hearted girl, and thoroughly attached to himself. Nothing but
12173 such a persuasion could have prevented his putting an end to an
12174 engagement, which, long before the discovery of it laid him open to his
12175 mother's anger, had been a continual source of disquiet and regret to
12176 him.
12177
12178 "I thought it my duty," said he, "independent of my feelings, to give
12179 her the option of continuing the engagement or not, when I was
12180 renounced by my mother, and stood to all appearance without a friend in
12181 the world to assist me. In such a situation as that, where there
12182 seemed nothing to tempt the avarice or the vanity of any living
12183 creature, how could I suppose, when she so earnestly, so warmly
12184 insisted on sharing my fate, whatever it might be, that any thing but
12185 the most disinterested affection was her inducement? And even now, I
12186 cannot comprehend on what motive she acted, or what fancied advantage
12187 it could be to her, to be fettered to a man for whom she had not the
12188 smallest regard, and who had only two thousand pounds in the world.
12189 She could not foresee that Colonel Brandon would give me a living."
12190
12191 "No; but she might suppose that something would occur in your favour;
12192 that your own family might in time relent. And at any rate, she lost
12193 nothing by continuing the engagement, for she has proved that it
12194 fettered neither her inclination nor her actions. The connection was
12195 certainly a respectable one, and probably gained her consideration
12196 among her friends; and, if nothing more advantageous occurred, it would
12197 be better for her to marry YOU than be single."
12198
12199 Edward was, of course, immediately convinced that nothing could have
12200 been more natural than Lucy's conduct, nor more self-evident than the
12201 motive of it.
12202
12203 Elinor scolded him, harshly as ladies always scold the imprudence which
12204 compliments themselves, for having spent so much time with them at
12205 Norland, when he must have felt his own inconstancy.
12206
12207 "Your behaviour was certainly very wrong," said she; "because--to say
12208 nothing of my own conviction, our relations were all led away by it to
12209 fancy and expect WHAT, as you were THEN situated, could never be."
12210
12211 He could only plead an ignorance of his own heart, and a mistaken
12212 confidence in the force of his engagement.
12213
12214 "I was simple enough to think, that because my FAITH was plighted to
12215 another, there could be no danger in my being with you; and that the
12216 consciousness of my engagement was to keep my heart as safe and sacred
12217 as my honour. I felt that I admired you, but I told myself it was only
12218 friendship; and till I began to make comparisons between yourself and
12219 Lucy, I did not know how far I was got. After that, I suppose, I WAS
12220 wrong in remaining so much in Sussex, and the arguments with which I
12221 reconciled myself to the expediency of it, were no better than
12222 these:--The danger is my own; I am doing no injury to anybody but
12223 myself."
12224
12225 Elinor smiled, and shook her head.
12226
12227 Edward heard with pleasure of Colonel Brandon's being expected at the
12228 Cottage, as he really wished not only to be better acquainted with him,
12229 but to have an opportunity of convincing him that he no longer resented
12230 his giving him the living of Delaford--"Which, at present," said he,
12231 "after thanks so ungraciously delivered as mine were on the occasion,
12232 he must think I have never forgiven him for offering."
12233
12234 NOW he felt astonished himself that he had never yet been to the place.
12235 But so little interest had he taken in the matter, that he owed all his
12236 knowledge of the house, garden, and glebe, extent of the parish,
12237 condition of the land, and rate of the tithes, to Elinor herself, who
12238 had heard so much of it from Colonel Brandon, and heard it with so much
12239 attention, as to be entirely mistress of the subject.
12240
12241 One question after this only remained undecided, between them, one
12242 difficulty only was to be overcome. They were brought together by
12243 mutual affection, with the warmest approbation of their real friends;
12244 their intimate knowledge of each other seemed to make their happiness
12245 certain--and they only wanted something to live upon. Edward had two
12246 thousand pounds, and Elinor one, which, with Delaford living, was all
12247 that they could call their own; for it was impossible that Mrs.
12248 Dashwood should advance anything; and they were neither of them quite
12249 enough in love to think that three hundred and fifty pounds a-year
12250 would supply them with the comforts of life.
12251
12252 Edward was not entirely without hopes of some favourable change in his
12253 mother towards him; and on THAT he rested for the residue of their
12254 income. But Elinor had no such dependence; for since Edward would
12255 still be unable to marry Miss Morton, and his chusing herself had been
12256 spoken of in Mrs. Ferrars's flattering language as only a lesser evil
12257 than his chusing Lucy Steele, she feared that Robert's offence would
12258 serve no other purpose than to enrich Fanny.
12259
12260 About four days after Edward's arrival Colonel Brandon appeared, to
12261 complete Mrs. Dashwood's satisfaction, and to give her the dignity of
12262 having, for the first time since her living at Barton, more company
12263 with her than her house would hold. Edward was allowed to retain the
12264 privilege of first comer, and Colonel Brandon therefore walked every
12265 night to his old quarters at the Park; from whence he usually returned
12266 in the morning, early enough to interrupt the lovers' first tete-a-tete
12267 before breakfast.
12268
12269 A three weeks' residence at Delaford, where, in his evening hours at
12270 least, he had little to do but to calculate the disproportion between
12271 thirty-six and seventeen, brought him to Barton in a temper of mind
12272 which needed all the improvement in Marianne's looks, all the kindness
12273 of her welcome, and all the encouragement of her mother's language, to
12274 make it cheerful. Among such friends, however, and such flattery, he
12275 did revive. No rumour of Lucy's marriage had yet reached him:--he knew
12276 nothing of what had passed; and the first hours of his visit were
12277 consequently spent in hearing and in wondering. Every thing was
12278 explained to him by Mrs. Dashwood, and he found fresh reason to rejoice
12279 in what he had done for Mr. Ferrars, since eventually it promoted the
12280 interest of Elinor.
12281
12282 It would be needless to say, that the gentlemen advanced in the good
12283 opinion of each other, as they advanced in each other's acquaintance,
12284 for it could not be otherwise. Their resemblance in good principles
12285 and good sense, in disposition and manner of thinking, would probably
12286 have been sufficient to unite them in friendship, without any other
12287 attraction; but their being in love with two sisters, and two sisters
12288 fond of each other, made that mutual regard inevitable and immediate,
12289 which might otherwise have waited the effect of time and judgment.
12290
12291 The letters from town, which a few days before would have made every
12292 nerve in Elinor's body thrill with transport, now arrived to be read
12293 with less emotion than mirth. Mrs. Jennings wrote to tell the
12294 wonderful tale, to vent her honest indignation against the jilting
12295 girl, and pour forth her compassion towards poor Mr. Edward, who, she
12296 was sure, had quite doted upon the worthless hussy, and was now, by all
12297 accounts, almost broken-hearted, at Oxford.-- "I do think," she
12298 continued, "nothing was ever carried on so sly; for it was but two days
12299 before Lucy called and sat a couple of hours with me. Not a soul
12300 suspected anything of the matter, not even Nancy, who, poor soul! came
12301 crying to me the day after, in a great fright for fear of Mrs. Ferrars,
12302 as well as not knowing how to get to Plymouth; for Lucy it seems
12303 borrowed all her money before she went off to be married, on purpose we
12304 suppose to make a show with, and poor Nancy had not seven shillings in
12305 the world;--so I was very glad to give her five guineas to take her
12306 down to Exeter, where she thinks of staying three or four weeks with
12307 Mrs. Burgess, in hopes, as I tell her, to fall in with the Doctor
12308 again. And I must say that Lucy's crossness not to take them along
12309 with them in the chaise is worse than all. Poor Mr. Edward! I cannot
12310 get him out of my head, but you must send for him to Barton, and Miss
12311 Marianne must try to comfort him."
12312
12313 Mr. Dashwood's strains were more solemn. Mrs. Ferrars was the most
12314 unfortunate of women--poor Fanny had suffered agonies of
12315 sensibility--and he considered the existence of each, under such a
12316 blow, with grateful wonder. Robert's offence was unpardonable, but
12317 Lucy's was infinitely worse. Neither of them were ever again to be
12318 mentioned to Mrs. Ferrars; and even, if she might hereafter be induced
12319 to forgive her son, his wife should never be acknowledged as her
12320 daughter, nor be permitted to appear in her presence. The secrecy with
12321 which everything had been carried on between them, was rationally
12322 treated as enormously heightening the crime, because, had any suspicion
12323 of it occurred to the others, proper measures would have been taken to
12324 prevent the marriage; and he called on Elinor to join with him in
12325 regretting that Lucy's engagement with Edward had not rather been
12326 fulfilled, than that she should thus be the means of spreading misery
12327 farther in the family.-- He thus continued:
12328
12329 "Mrs. Ferrars has never yet mentioned Edward's name, which does not
12330 surprise us; but, to our great astonishment, not a line has been
12331 received from him on the occasion. Perhaps, however, he is kept silent
12332 by his fear of offending, and I shall, therefore, give him a hint, by a
12333 line to Oxford, that his sister and I both think a letter of proper
12334 submission from him, addressed perhaps to Fanny, and by her shewn to
12335 her mother, might not be taken amiss; for we all know the tenderness of
12336 Mrs. Ferrars's heart, and that she wishes for nothing so much as to be
12337 on good terms with her children."
12338
12339 This paragraph was of some importance to the prospects and conduct of
12340 Edward. It determined him to attempt a reconciliation, though not
12341 exactly in the manner pointed out by their brother and sister.
12342
12343 "A letter of proper submission!" repeated he; "would they have me beg
12344 my mother's pardon for Robert's ingratitude to HER, and breach of
12345 honour to ME?--I can make no submission--I am grown neither humble nor
12346 penitent by what has passed.--I am grown very happy; but that would not
12347 interest.--I know of no submission that IS proper for me to make."
12348
12349 "You may certainly ask to be forgiven," said Elinor, "because you have
12350 offended;--and I should think you might NOW venture so far as to
12351 profess some concern for having ever formed the engagement which drew
12352 on you your mother's anger."
12353
12354 He agreed that he might.
12355
12356 "And when she has forgiven you, perhaps a little humility may be
12357 convenient while acknowledging a second engagement, almost as imprudent
12358 in HER eyes as the first."
12359
12360 He had nothing to urge against it, but still resisted the idea of a
12361 letter of proper submission; and therefore, to make it easier to him,
12362 as he declared a much greater willingness to make mean concessions by
12363 word of mouth than on paper, it was resolved that, instead of writing
12364 to Fanny, he should go to London, and personally intreat her good
12365 offices in his favour.-- "And if they really DO interest themselves,"
12366 said Marianne, in her new character of candour, "in bringing about a
12367 reconciliation, I shall think that even John and Fanny are not entirely
12368 without merit."
12369
12370 After a visit on Colonel Brandon's side of only three or four days, the
12371 two gentlemen quitted Barton together.-- They were to go immediately to
12372 Delaford, that Edward might have some personal knowledge of his future
12373 home, and assist his patron and friend in deciding on what improvements
12374 were needed to it; and from thence, after staying there a couple of
12375 nights, he was to proceed on his journey to town.
12376
12377
12378
12379 CHAPTER 50
12380
12381
12382 After a proper resistance on the part of Mrs. Ferrars, just so violent
12383 and so steady as to preserve her from that reproach which she always
12384 seemed fearful of incurring, the reproach of being too amiable, Edward
12385 was admitted to her presence, and pronounced to be again her son.
12386
12387 Her family had of late been exceedingly fluctuating. For many years of
12388 her life she had had two sons; but the crime and annihilation of Edward
12389 a few weeks ago, had robbed her of one; the similar annihilation of
12390 Robert had left her for a fortnight without any; and now, by the
12391 resuscitation of Edward, she had one again.
12392
12393 In spite of his being allowed once more to live, however, he did not
12394 feel the continuance of his existence secure, till he had revealed his
12395 present engagement; for the publication of that circumstance, he
12396 feared, might give a sudden turn to his constitution, and carry him off
12397 as rapidly as before. With apprehensive caution therefore it was
12398 revealed, and he was listened to with unexpected calmness. Mrs.
12399 Ferrars at first reasonably endeavoured to dissuade him from marrying
12400 Miss Dashwood, by every argument in her power;--told him, that in Miss
12401 Morton he would have a woman of higher rank and larger fortune;--and
12402 enforced the assertion, by observing that Miss Morton was the daughter
12403 of a nobleman with thirty thousand pounds, while Miss Dashwood was only
12404 the daughter of a private gentleman with no more than THREE; but when
12405 she found that, though perfectly admitting the truth of her
12406 representation, he was by no means inclined to be guided by it, she
12407 judged it wisest, from the experience of the past, to submit--and
12408 therefore, after such an ungracious delay as she owed to her own
12409 dignity, and as served to prevent every suspicion of good-will, she
12410 issued her decree of consent to the marriage of Edward and Elinor.
12411
12412 What she would engage to do towards augmenting their income was next to
12413 be considered; and here it plainly appeared, that though Edward was now
12414 her only son, he was by no means her eldest; for while Robert was
12415 inevitably endowed with a thousand pounds a-year, not the smallest
12416 objection was made against Edward's taking orders for the sake of two
12417 hundred and fifty at the utmost; nor was anything promised either for
12418 the present or in future, beyond the ten thousand pounds, which had
12419 been given with Fanny.
12420
12421 It was as much, however, as was desired, and more than was expected, by
12422 Edward and Elinor; and Mrs. Ferrars herself, by her shuffling excuses,
12423 seemed the only person surprised at her not giving more.
12424
12425 With an income quite sufficient to their wants thus secured to them,
12426 they had nothing to wait for after Edward was in possession of the
12427 living, but the readiness of the house, to which Colonel Brandon, with
12428 an eager desire for the accommodation of Elinor, was making
12429 considerable improvements; and after waiting some time for their
12430 completion, after experiencing, as usual, a thousand disappointments
12431 and delays from the unaccountable dilatoriness of the workmen, Elinor,
12432 as usual, broke through the first positive resolution of not marrying
12433 till every thing was ready, and the ceremony took place in Barton
12434 church early in the autumn.
12435
12436 The first month after their marriage was spent with their friend at the
12437 Mansion-house; from whence they could superintend the progress of the
12438 Parsonage, and direct every thing as they liked on the spot;--could
12439 chuse papers, project shrubberies, and invent a sweep. Mrs. Jennings's
12440 prophecies, though rather jumbled together, were chiefly fulfilled; for
12441 she was able to visit Edward and his wife in their Parsonage by
12442 Michaelmas, and she found in Elinor and her husband, as she really
12443 believed, one of the happiest couples in the world. They had in fact
12444 nothing to wish for, but the marriage of Colonel Brandon and Marianne,
12445 and rather better pasturage for their cows.
12446
12447 They were visited on their first settling by almost all their relations
12448 and friends. Mrs. Ferrars came to inspect the happiness which she was
12449 almost ashamed of having authorised; and even the Dashwoods were at the
12450 expense of a journey from Sussex to do them honour.
12451
12452 "I will not say that I am disappointed, my dear sister," said John, as
12453 they were walking together one morning before the gates of Delaford
12454 House, "THAT would be saying too much, for certainly you have been one
12455 of the most fortunate young women in the world, as it is. But, I
12456 confess, it would give me great pleasure to call Colonel Brandon
12457 brother. His property here, his place, his house, every thing is in
12458 such respectable and excellent condition!--and his woods!--I have not
12459 seen such timber any where in Dorsetshire, as there is now standing in
12460 Delaford Hanger!--And though, perhaps, Marianne may not seem exactly
12461 the person to attract him--yet I think it would altogether be advisable
12462 for you to have them now frequently staying with you, for as Colonel
12463 Brandon seems a great deal at home, nobody can tell what may
12464 happen--for, when people are much thrown together, and see little of
12465 anybody else--and it will always be in your power to set her off to
12466 advantage, and so forth;--in short, you may as well give her a
12467 chance--You understand me."--
12468
12469 But though Mrs. Ferrars DID come to see them, and always treated them
12470 with the make-believe of decent affection, they were never insulted by
12471 her real favour and preference. THAT was due to the folly of Robert,
12472 and the cunning of his wife; and it was earned by them before many
12473 months had passed away. The selfish sagacity of the latter, which had
12474 at first drawn Robert into the scrape, was the principal instrument of
12475 his deliverance from it; for her respectful humility, assiduous
12476 attentions, and endless flatteries, as soon as the smallest opening was
12477 given for their exercise, reconciled Mrs. Ferrars to his choice, and
12478 re-established him completely in her favour.
12479
12480 The whole of Lucy's behaviour in the affair, and the prosperity which
12481 crowned it, therefore, may be held forth as a most encouraging instance
12482 of what an earnest, an unceasing attention to self-interest, however
12483 its progress may be apparently obstructed, will do in securing every
12484 advantage of fortune, with no other sacrifice than that of time and
12485 conscience. When Robert first sought her acquaintance, and privately
12486 visited her in Bartlett's Buildings, it was only with the view imputed
12487 to him by his brother. He merely meant to persuade her to give up the
12488 engagement; and as there could be nothing to overcome but the affection
12489 of both, he naturally expected that one or two interviews would settle
12490 the matter. In that point, however, and that only, he erred;--for
12491 though Lucy soon gave him hopes that his eloquence would convince her
12492 in TIME, another visit, another conversation, was always wanted to
12493 produce this conviction. Some doubts always lingered in her mind when
12494 they parted, which could only be removed by another half hour's
12495 discourse with himself. His attendance was by this means secured, and
12496 the rest followed in course. Instead of talking of Edward, they came
12497 gradually to talk only of Robert,--a subject on which he had always
12498 more to say than on any other, and in which she soon betrayed an
12499 interest even equal to his own; and in short, it became speedily
12500 evident to both, that he had entirely supplanted his brother. He was
12501 proud of his conquest, proud of tricking Edward, and very proud of
12502 marrying privately without his mother's consent. What immediately
12503 followed is known. They passed some months in great happiness at
12504 Dawlish; for she had many relations and old acquaintances to cut--and
12505 he drew several plans for magnificent cottages;--and from thence
12506 returning to town, procured the forgiveness of Mrs. Ferrars, by the
12507 simple expedient of asking it, which, at Lucy's instigation, was
12508 adopted. The forgiveness, at first, indeed, as was reasonable,
12509 comprehended only Robert; and Lucy, who had owed his mother no duty and
12510 therefore could have transgressed none, still remained some weeks
12511 longer unpardoned. But perseverance in humility of conduct and
12512 messages, in self-condemnation for Robert's offence, and gratitude for
12513 the unkindness she was treated with, procured her in time the haughty
12514 notice which overcame her by its graciousness, and led soon afterwards,
12515 by rapid degrees, to the highest state of affection and influence.
12516 Lucy became as necessary to Mrs. Ferrars, as either Robert or Fanny;
12517 and while Edward was never cordially forgiven for having once intended
12518 to marry her, and Elinor, though superior to her in fortune and birth,
12519 was spoken of as an intruder, SHE was in every thing considered, and
12520 always openly acknowledged, to be a favourite child. They settled in
12521 town, received very liberal assistance from Mrs. Ferrars, were on the
12522 best terms imaginable with the Dashwoods; and setting aside the
12523 jealousies and ill-will continually subsisting between Fanny and Lucy,
12524 in which their husbands of course took a part, as well as the frequent
12525 domestic disagreements between Robert and Lucy themselves, nothing
12526 could exceed the harmony in which they all lived together.
12527
12528 What Edward had done to forfeit the right of eldest son, might have
12529 puzzled many people to find out; and what Robert had done to succeed to
12530 it, might have puzzled them still more. It was an arrangement,
12531 however, justified in its effects, if not in its cause; for nothing
12532 ever appeared in Robert's style of living or of talking to give a
12533 suspicion of his regretting the extent of his income, as either leaving
12534 his brother too little, or bringing himself too much;--and if Edward
12535 might be judged from the ready discharge of his duties in every
12536 particular, from an increasing attachment to his wife and his home, and
12537 from the regular cheerfulness of his spirits, he might be supposed no
12538 less contented with his lot, no less free from every wish of an
12539 exchange.
12540
12541 Elinor's marriage divided her as little from her family as could well
12542 be contrived, without rendering the cottage at Barton entirely useless,
12543 for her mother and sisters spent much more than half their time with
12544 her. Mrs. Dashwood was acting on motives of policy as well as pleasure
12545 in the frequency of her visits at Delaford; for her wish of bringing
12546 Marianne and Colonel Brandon together was hardly less earnest, though
12547 rather more liberal than what John had expressed. It was now her
12548 darling object. Precious as was the company of her daughter to her,
12549 she desired nothing so much as to give up its constant enjoyment to her
12550 valued friend; and to see Marianne settled at the mansion-house was
12551 equally the wish of Edward and Elinor. They each felt his sorrows, and
12552 their own obligations, and Marianne, by general consent, was to be the
12553 reward of all.
12554
12555 With such a confederacy against her--with a knowledge so intimate of
12556 his goodness--with a conviction of his fond attachment to herself,
12557 which at last, though long after it was observable to everybody
12558 else--burst on her--what could she do?
12559
12560 Marianne Dashwood was born to an extraordinary fate. She was born to
12561 discover the falsehood of her own opinions, and to counteract, by her
12562 conduct, her most favourite maxims. She was born to overcome an
12563 affection formed so late in life as at seventeen, and with no sentiment
12564 superior to strong esteem and lively friendship, voluntarily to give
12565 her hand to another!--and THAT other, a man who had suffered no less
12566 than herself under the event of a former attachment, whom, two years
12567 before, she had considered too old to be married,--and who still sought
12568 the constitutional safeguard of a flannel waistcoat!
12569
12570 But so it was. Instead of falling a sacrifice to an irresistible
12571 passion, as once she had fondly flattered herself with expecting,--instead
12572 of remaining even for ever with her mother, and finding her only
12573 pleasures in retirement and study, as afterwards in her more calm and
12574 sober judgment she had determined on,--she found herself at nineteen,
12575 submitting to new attachments, entering on new duties, placed in a new
12576 home, a wife, the mistress of a family, and the patroness of a village.
12577
12578 Colonel Brandon was now as happy, as all those who best loved him,
12579 believed he deserved to be;--in Marianne he was consoled for every past
12580 affliction;--her regard and her society restored his mind to animation,
12581 and his spirits to cheerfulness; and that Marianne found her own
12582 happiness in forming his, was equally the persuasion and delight of
12583 each observing friend. Marianne could never love by halves; and her
12584 whole heart became, in time, as much devoted to her husband, as it had
12585 once been to Willoughby.
12586
12587 Willoughby could not hear of her marriage without a pang; and his
12588 punishment was soon afterwards complete in the voluntary forgiveness of
12589 Mrs. Smith, who, by stating his marriage with a woman of character, as
12590 the source of her clemency, gave him reason for believing that had he
12591 behaved with honour towards Marianne, he might at once have been happy
12592 and rich. That his repentance of misconduct, which thus brought its
12593 own punishment, was sincere, need not be doubted;--nor that he long
12594 thought of Colonel Brandon with envy, and of Marianne with regret. But
12595 that he was for ever inconsolable, that he fled from society, or
12596 contracted an habitual gloom of temper, or died of a broken heart, must
12597 not be depended on--for he did neither. He lived to exert, and
12598 frequently to enjoy himself. His wife was not always out of humour,
12599 nor his home always uncomfortable; and in his breed of horses and dogs,
12600 and in sporting of every kind, he found no inconsiderable degree of
12601 domestic felicity.
12602
12603 For Marianne, however--in spite of his incivility in surviving her
12604 loss--he always retained that decided regard which interested him in
12605 every thing that befell her, and made her his secret standard of
12606 perfection in woman;--and many a rising beauty would be slighted by him
12607 in after-days as bearing no comparison with Mrs. Brandon.
12608
12609 Mrs. Dashwood was prudent enough to remain at the cottage, without
12610 attempting a removal to Delaford; and fortunately for Sir John and Mrs.
12611 Jennings, when Marianne was taken from them, Margaret had reached an
12612 age highly suitable for dancing, and not very ineligible for being
12613 supposed to have a lover.
12614
12615 Between Barton and Delaford, there was that constant communication
12616 which strong family affection would naturally dictate;--and among the
12617 merits and the happiness of Elinor and Marianne, let it not be ranked
12618 as the least considerable, that though sisters, and living almost
12619 within sight of each other, they could live without disagreement
12620 between themselves, or producing coolness between their husbands.
12621
12622
12623
12624 THE END
12625